Use these links to rapidly review the document
ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. TABLE OF CONTENTS
ITEM 8. FINANCIAL STATEMENTS AND SUPPLEMENTARY DATA
ITEM 15. EXHIBITS AND FINANCIAL STATEMENT SCHEDULES

Table of Contents

UNITED STATES
SECURITIES AND EXCHANGE COMMISSION
Washington, D.C. 20549

FORM 10-K


ý

 

ANNUAL REPORT PURSUANT TO SECTION 13 OR 15(d) OF THE SECURITIES EXCHANGE ACT OF 1934

For the Fiscal Year Ended December 31, 2010

OR

o

 

TRANSITION REPORT PURSUANT TO SECTION 13 OR 15(d) OF THE SECURITIES EXCHANGE ACT OF 1934

For the transition period from                                    to                                   

Commission File No. 0-26456

ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD.
(Exact name of registrant as specified in its charter)

Bermuda
(State or other jurisdiction of
incorporation or organization)
  Not applicable
(I.R.S. Employer
Identification No.)

Wessex House, 45 Reid Street

 

 
Hamilton HM 12, Bermuda   (441) 278-9250
(Address of principal executive offices)   (Registrant's telephone number, including area code)

          Securities registered pursuant to Section 12(b) of the Exchange Act:

Title of each class   Name of each exchange on which registered
Common Shares, $0.01 par value per share   NASDAQ Stock Market (Common Shares)
8.000% Non-Cumulative Preferred Shares, Series A, $0.01 par value per share
7.875% Non-Cumulative Preferred Shares, Series B, $0.01 par value per share
  New York Stock Exchange

          Securities registered pursuant to Section 12(g) of the Exchange Act: None

          Indicate by check mark if the registrant is a well-known seasoned issuer, as defined in Rule 405 of the Securities Act. Yes ý    No o

          Indicate by check mark if the registrant is not required to file reports pursuant to Section 13 or Section 15(d) of the Exchange Act. Yes o    No ý

          Indicate by check mark whether the registrant (1) has filed all reports required to be filed by Section 13 or 15(d) of the Exchange Act during the preceding 12 months (or for such shorter period that the registrant was required to file such reports), and (2) has been subject to such filing requirements for the past 90 days. Yes ý    No o

          Indicate by check mark whether the registrant has submitted electronically and posted on its corporate Web site, if any, every Interactive Data File required to be submitted and posted pursuant to Rule 405 of Regulation S-T (§232.405 of this chapter) during the preceding 12 months (or for such shorter period that the registrant was required to submit and post such files). Yes ý    No o

          Indicate by check mark if disclosure of delinquent filers pursuant to Item 405 of Regulation S-K is not contained herein, and will not be contained, to the best of registrant's knowledge, in definitive proxy or information statements incorporated by reference in Part III of this Form 10-K or any amendment to this Form 10-K. o

          Indicate by check mark whether the registrant is a large accelerated filer, an accelerated filer, a non-accelerated filer, or a smaller reporting company. See the definitions of "large accelerated filer," "accelerated filer" and "smaller reporting company" in Rule 12b-2 of the Exchange Act.

Large accelerated Filer ý   Accelerated Filer o   Non-accelerated Filer o
(Do not check if a
smaller reporting company)
  Smaller reporting company o

          Indicate by check mark whether the registrant is a shell company (as defined in Rule 12b-2 of the Exchange Act). Yes o    No ý

          The aggregate market value of the voting and non-voting common equity held by non-affiliates, computed by reference to the closing price as reported by the NASDAQ Stock Market as of the last business day of the Registrant's most recently completed second fiscal quarter, was approximately $3.36 billion.

          As of February 24, 2011, there were 44,940,218 of the registrant's common shares outstanding.

DOCUMENTS INCORPORATED BY REFERENCE

          Portions of Part III and Part IV incorporate by reference our definitive proxy statement for the 2011 annual meeting of shareholders to be filed with the Securities and Exchange Commission pursuant to Regulation 14A before April 30, 2011.


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD.
TABLE OF CONTENTS

Item
   
  Page  

 

PART I

       

ITEM 1.

 

BUSINESS

    4  

ITEM 1A.

 

RISK FACTORS

    45  

ITEM 1B.

 

UNRESOLVED STAFF COMMENTS

    68  

ITEM 2.

 

PROPERTIES

    68  

ITEM 3.

 

LEGAL PROCEEDINGS

    68  

ITEM 4.

 

SUBMISSION OF MATTERS TO A VOTE OF SECURITY HOLDERS

    68  

 

PART II

       

ITEM 5.

 

MARKET FOR REGISTRANT'S COMMON EQUITY, RELATED STOCKHOLDER MATTERS AND ISSUER PURCHASES OF EQUITY SECURITIES

    69  

ITEM 6.

 

SELECTED FINANCIAL DATA

    72  

ITEM 7.

 

MANAGEMENT'S DISCUSSION AND ANALYSIS OF FINANCIAL CONDITION AND RESULTS OF OPERATIONS

    74  

ITEM 7A.

 

QUANTITATIVE AND QUALITATIVE DISCLOSURES ABOUT MARKET RISK

    128  

ITEM 8.

 

FINANCIAL STATEMENTS AND SUPPLEMENTARY DATA

    129  

ITEM 9.

 

CHANGES IN AND DISAGREEMENTS WITH ACCOUNTANTS ON ACCOUNTING AND FINANCIAL DISCLOSURE

    194  

ITEM 9A.

 

CONTROLS AND PROCEDURES

    194  

ITEM 9B.

 

OTHER INFORMATION

    195  

 

PART III

       

ITEM 10.

 

DIRECTORS, EXECUTIVE OFFICERS AND CORPORATE GOVERNANCE

    195  

ITEM 11.

 

EXECUTIVE COMPENSATION

    195  

ITEM 12.

 

SECURITY OWNERSHIP OF CERTAIN BENEFICIAL OWNERS AND MANAGEMENT AND RELATED STOCKHOLDER MATTERS

    195  

ITEM 13.

 

CERTAIN RELATIONSHIPS AND RELATED TRANSACTIONS, AND DIRECTOR INDEPENDENCE

    196  

ITEM 14.

 

PRINCIPAL ACCOUNTANT FEES AND SERVICES

    196  

 

PART IV

       

ITEM 15.

 

EXHIBITS AND FINANCIAL STATEMENT SCHEDULES

    197  

1


Table of Contents


CAUTIONARY NOTE REGARDING FORWARD-LOOKING STATEMENTS

        The Private Securities Litigation Reform Act of 1995 ("PLSRA") provides a "safe harbor" for forward-looking statements. This report or any other written or oral statements made by or on behalf of us may include forward-looking statements, which reflect our current views with respect to future events and financial performance. All statements other than statements of historical fact included in or incorporated by reference in this report are forward-looking statements. Forward-looking statements, for purposes of the PLSRA or otherwise, can generally be identified by the use of forward-looking terminology such as "may," "will," "expect," "intend," "estimate," "anticipate," "believe" or "continue" and similar statements of a future or forward-looking nature or their negative or variations or similar terminology.

        Forward-looking statements involve our current assessment of risks and uncertainties. Actual events and results may differ materially from those expressed or implied in these statements. Important factors that could cause actual events or results to differ materially from those indicated in such statements are discussed below, elsewhere in this report and in our periodic reports filed with the Securities and Exchange Commission ("SEC"), and include:

2


Table of Contents

        All subsequent written and oral forward-looking statements attributable to us or persons acting on our behalf are expressly qualified in their entirety by these cautionary statements. The foregoing review of important factors should not be construed as exhaustive and should be read in conjunction with other cautionary statements that are included herein or elsewhere. We undertake no obligation to publicly update or revise any forward-looking statement, whether as a result of new information, future events or otherwise.

3


Table of Contents

PART I

ITEM 1.    BUSINESS

        As used in this report, references to "we," "us," "our" or the "Company" refer to the consolidated operations of Arch Capital Group Ltd. ("ACGL") and its subsidiaries. Tabular amounts are in U.S. Dollars in thousands, except share amounts, unless otherwise noted. We refer you to Item 1A "Risk Factors" for a discussion of risk factors relating to our business.


OUR COMPANY

General

        Arch Capital Group Ltd. is a Bermuda public limited liability company with approximately $4.91 billion in capital at December 31, 2010 and, through operations in Bermuda, the United States, Europe and Canada, writes insurance and reinsurance on a worldwide basis. While we are positioned to provide a full range of property and casualty insurance and reinsurance lines, we focus on writing specialty lines of insurance and reinsurance. For 2010, we wrote $2.51 billion of net premiums and reported net income available to common shareholders of $816.7 million. Diluted book value per share was $89.98 at December 31, 2010, compared to $73.01 per share at December 31, 2009.

        ACGL's registered office is located at Clarendon House, 2 Church Street, Hamilton HM 11, Bermuda (telephone number: (441) 295-1422), and its principal executive offices are located at Wessex House, 45 Reid Street, Hamilton HM 12, Bermuda (telephone number: (441) 278-9250). ACGL makes available free of charge through its website, located at http://www.archcapgroup.bm, its annual reports on Form 10-K, quarterly reports on Form 10-Q, current reports on Form 8-K, and all amendments to those reports as soon as reasonably practicable after such material is electronically filed with, or furnished to, the SEC. The public may read and copy any materials ACGL files with the SEC at the SEC's Public Reference Room at 100 F Street, NE, Washington, D.C. 20549. The public may obtain information on the operation of the Public Reference Room by calling 1-800-SEC-0330. The SEC also maintains an Internet site that contains reports, proxy and information statements, and other information regarding issuers that file electronically with the SEC (such as ACGL) and the address of that site is http://www.sec.gov.

Our History

        Our current operations were built on an existing underwriting platform through an underwriting initiative in October 2001 to meet current and future demand in the global insurance and reinsurance markets. Since that time, we have attracted a proven management team with extensive industry experience and enhanced our existing global underwriting platform for our insurance and reinsurance businesses. It is our belief that our underwriting platform, our experienced management team and our strong capital base that is unencumbered by significant pre-2002 risks have enabled us to establish a strong presence in the insurance and reinsurance markets.

        Prior to the 2001 underwriting initiative, our insurance underwriting platform consisted of Arch Insurance (Bermuda), a division of Arch Reinsurance Ltd. ("Arch Re Bermuda"), our Bermuda-based reinsurer and insurer, and our U.S.-licensed insurers, Arch Insurance Company ("Arch Insurance"), Arch Excess & Surplus Insurance Company ("Arch E&S") and Arch Specialty Insurance Company ("Arch Specialty"). We established Arch Insurance Company (Europe) Limited ("Arch Insurance Company Europe"), our United Kingdom-based subsidiary, in 2004 and we expanded our North American presence when Arch Insurance opened a branch office in Canada in 2005. In 2009, we established a managing agent and syndicate at Lloyd's of London ("Lloyd's"). Our Lloyd's syndicate 2012 ("Arch Syndicate 2012") commenced underwriting in 2009. See "Operations—Insurance Operations" for further details on our insurance operations.

4


Table of Contents

        Prior to the 2001 underwriting initiative, our reinsurance underwriting platform consisted of Arch Re Bermuda and Arch Reinsurance Company ("Arch Re U.S."), our U.S.-licensed reinsurer. Our reinsurance operations in Europe began in November 2006 with the formation of a Swiss branch of Arch Re Bermuda, and the formation of a Danish underwriting agency in 2007. In addition to the U.S. reinsurance activities of Arch Re U.S., we launched our property facultative reinsurance underwriting operations in 2007, which underwrite in the U.S. and Canada and, commencing in 2011, throughout Europe. In addition, we formed Arch Reinsurance Europe Underwriting Limited ("Arch Re Europe"), our Ireland-based reinsurance company, in 2008. See "Operations—Reinsurance Operations" for further details on our reinsurance operations.

        In January 2008, Arch Re Bermuda and Gulf Investment Corporation GSC ("GIC") entered into a joint venture agreement for the purpose of forming a reinsurance company in the Dubai International Financial Centre. GIC is owned equally by the six member states of the Gulf Cooperation Council ("GCC"), which include Bahrain, Kuwait, Oman, Qatar, Saudi Arabia and the United Arab Emirates. In May 2008, we provided $100.0 million of funding to Gulf Reinsurance Limited ("Gulf Re"), a newly formed reinsurer based in the Dubai International Financial Centre, pursuant to the joint venture agreement with GIC. Gulf Re provides property and casualty reinsurance primarily in the member states of the GCC.

        The growth of our insurance and reinsurance platforms was supported through the net proceeds of: (1) an equity capital infusion of $763 million led by funds affiliated with Warburg Pincus LLC ("Warburg Pincus funds") and Hellman & Friedman LLC ("Hellman & Friedman funds") in late 2001; (2) a public offering of 7.5 million of our common shares with net proceeds of $179 million in April 2002; (3) the exercise of class A warrants by our principal shareholders and other investors in September 2002, which provided net proceeds of $74 million; (4) a March 2004 public offering of 4.7 million of our common shares with net proceeds of $179 million; (5) a May 2004 public offering of $300 million principal amount of our 7.35% senior notes due May 2034; (6) a February 2006 public offering of $200 million of our 8.00% series A non-cumulative preferred shares with a liquidation preference of $25.00 per share; and (7) a May 2006 public offering $125 million of our 7.875% series B non-cumulative preferred shares with a liquidation preference of $25.00 per share.

        In February 2011, the board of directors of ACGL authorized the investment of up to an additional $1.0 billion in ACGL's common shares through its share repurchase program. Repurchases under the share repurchase program may be effected from time to time in open market or privately negotiated transactions through December 31, 2012. Since the inception of the share repurchase program in February 2007 through February 24, 2011, ACGL has repurchased approximately 33.4 million common shares for an aggregate purchase price of $2.42 billion. At February 24, 2011, the total remaining authorization under the share repurchase program was $1.08 billion.

Operations

        We classify our businesses into two underwriting segments, insurance and reinsurance. For an analysis of our underwriting results by segment, see note 3, "Segment Information," of the notes accompanying our consolidated financial statements and "Management's Discussion and Analysis of Financial Condition and Results of Operations—Results of Operations."

        Our insurance operations are conducted in Bermuda, the United States, Europe, Canada, Australia and South Africa. Our insurance operations in Bermuda are conducted through Arch Insurance (Bermuda), a division of Arch Re Bermuda. In the U.S., our insurance group's principal insurance subsidiaries are Arch Insurance, Arch Specialty, Arch E&S and Arch Indemnity Insurance Company ("Arch Indemnity"). Arch Insurance is an admitted insurer in 50 states, the District of Columbia,

5


Table of Contents

Puerto Rico, the U.S. Virgin Islands and Guam with a branch office in Canada. Arch Specialty is an approved excess and surplus lines insurer in 49 states, the District of Columbia, Puerto Rico and the U.S. Virgin Islands and an admitted insurer in one state. Arch E&S, which is not currently writing business, is an approved excess and surplus lines insurer in 47 states and the District of Columbia and an admitted insurer in one state. Arch Indemnity, which is not currently writing business, is an admitted insurer in 49 states and the District of Columbia. The headquarters for our insurance group's U.S. support operations (excluding underwriting units) is in Jersey City, New Jersey. The insurance group has additional offices throughout the U.S., including four regional offices located in: Alpharetta, Georgia; Chicago, Illinois; New York, New York; and San Francisco, California. The headquarters for Arch Insurance's branch office in Canada is in Toronto, Ontario.

        Our insurance group's European operations are conducted on two platforms: Arch Insurance Company Europe and Arch Syndicate 2012 (the U.K. insurance operations are collectively referred to as "Arch Insurance Europe"). Arch Insurance Europe conducts is operations from London. Arch Insurance Company Europe is approved as an excess and surplus lines insurer in 17 states and the District of Columbia and also has branches in Denmark, Finland, Germany, Italy, Spain and Sweden. Arch Underwriting at Lloyd's Ltd ("AUAL") is the managing agent of Arch Syndicate 2012 and is responsible for the daily management of Arch Syndicate 2012. Arch Syndicate 2012 has enhanced our underwriting platform by providing us with access to Lloyd's extensive distribution network and worldwide licenses. Arch Underwriting at Lloyd's (Australia) Pty Ltd ("AUAL Australia"), based in Sydney, Australia, and Arch Underwriting at Lloyd's (South Africa) (Pty) Limited ("AUAL South Africa"), based in Johannesburg, South Africa, were each formed in 2009 as services companies to underwrite on behalf of Arch Syndicate 2012.

        As of February 15, 2011, our insurance group had approximately 1,100 employees.

        Strategy.    Our insurance group's strategy is to operate in lines of business in which underwriting expertise can make a meaningful difference in operating results. The insurance group focuses on talent-intensive rather than labor-intensive business and seeks to operate profitably (on both a gross and net basis) across all of its product lines. To achieve these objectives, our insurance group's operating principles are to:

6


Table of Contents

        Our insurance group writes business on both an admitted and non-admitted basis. Our insurance group focuses on the following areas:

7


Table of Contents

        Underwriting Philosophy.    Our insurance group's underwriting philosophy is to generate an underwriting profit (on both a gross and net basis) through prudent risk selection and proper pricing across all types of business. One key to this philosophy is the adherence to uniform underwriting standards across each product line that focuses on the following:

8


Table of Contents

        Premiums Written and Geographic Distribution.    Set forth below is summary information regarding net premiums written for our insurance group:

 
  Year Ended December 31,  
 
  2010   2009   2008  
 
  Amount   % of
Total
  Amount   % of
Total
  Amount   % of
Total
 

INSURANCE SEGMENT

                                     

Net premiums written

                                     

Property, energy, marine and aviation

  $ 321,529     19.4   $ 353,761     20.8   $ 334,635     20.2  

Programs

    273,076     16.5     274,735     16.1     270,449     16.3  

Professional liability

    240,345     14.5     235,892     13.8     246,891     14.9  

Executive assurance

    224,497     13.5     220,088     12.9     193,602     11.7  

Construction

    135,619     8.2     154,087     9.0     165,490     10.0  

Casualty

    107,962     6.5     103,546     6.1     116,096     7.0  

Travel and accident

    71,237     4.3     68,617     4.0     61,986     3.7  

National accounts casualty

    67,925     4.1     79,088     4.6     47,936     2.9  

Healthcare

    37,508     2.3     42,350     2.5     44,596     2.7  

Surety

    34,149     2.1     43,353     2.5     50,376     3.0  

Other(1)

    145,116     8.6     128,767     7.7     125,546     7.6  
                           

Total

  $ 1,658,963     100.0   $ 1,704,284     100.0   $ 1,657,603     100.0  
                           

Net premiums written by client location

                                     

United States

  $ 1,183,238     71.3   $ 1,268,347     74.4   $ 1,242,906     75.0  

Europe

    272,348     16.4     267,093     15.7     244,849     14.8  

Other

    203,377     12.3     168,844     9.9     169,848     10.2  
                           

Total

  $ 1,658,963     100.0   $ 1,704,284     100.0   $ 1,657,603     100.0  
                           

Net premiums written by underwriting location

                                     

United States

  $ 1,133,173     68.3   $ 1,243,063     72.9   $ 1,236,712     74.6  

Europe

    436,483     26.3     384,363     22.6     342,021     20.6  

Other

    89,307     5.4     76,858     4.5     78,870     4.8  
                           

Total

  $ 1,658,963     100.0   $ 1,704,284     100.0   $ 1,657,603     100.0  
                           

(1)
Includes excess workers' compensation, employers' liability, and collateral protection business.

        Marketing.    Our insurance group's products are marketed principally through a group of licensed independent retail and wholesale brokers. Clients (insureds) are referred to our insurance group through a large number of international, national and regional brokers and captive managers who receive from the insured or insurer a set fee or brokerage commission usually equal to a percentage of gross premiums. In the past, our insurance group also entered into contingent commission arrangements with some brokers that provide for the payment of additional commissions based on volume or profitability of business. Currently, some of our contracts with brokers provide for additional commissions based on volume. We have also entered into service agreements with select international brokers that provide access to their proprietary industry analytics. In general, our insurance group has no implied or explicit commitments to accept business from any particular broker and, neither brokers nor any other third parties have the authority to bind our insurance group, except in the case where underwriting authority may be delegated contractually to select program administrators. Such administrators are subject to a due diligence financial and operational review prior to any such delegation of authority and ongoing reviews and audits are carried out as deemed necessary by our

9


Table of Contents


insurance group to assure the continuing integrity of underwriting and related business operations. See "Risk Factors—Risks Relating to Our Company—We could be materially adversely affected to the extent that managing general agents, general agents and other producers in our program business exceed their underwriting authorities or otherwise breach obligations owed to us." For information on major brokers, see note 13, "Commitments and Contingencies—Concentrations of Credit Risk," of the notes accompanying our consolidated financial statements.

        Risk Management and Reinsurance.    In the normal course of business, our insurance group may cede a portion of its premium on a quota share or excess of loss basis through treaty or facultative reinsurance agreements. Reinsurance arrangements do not relieve our insurance group from its primary obligations to insureds. Reinsurance recoverables are recorded as assets, predicated on the reinsurers' ability to meet their obligations under the reinsurance agreements. If the reinsurers are unable to satisfy their obligations under the agreements, our insurance subsidiaries would be liable for such defaulted amounts. Our insurance subsidiaries, through their respective reinsurance security committees ("RSC"), are selective with regard to reinsurers, seeking to place reinsurance with only those reinsurers which meet and maintain specific standards of established criteria for financial strength. Each RSC evaluates the financial viability of its reinsurers through financial analysis, research and review of rating agencies' reports and also monitors reinsurance recoverables and collateral with unauthorized reinsurers. The financial analysis includes ongoing assessments of reinsurers, including a review of the financial stability, appropriate licensing, reputation, claims paying ability and underwriting philosophy of each reinsurer. Our insurance group will continue to evaluate its reinsurance requirements. See note 4, "Reinsurance," of the notes accompanying our consolidated financial statements.

        For catastrophe-exposed insurance business, our insurance group seeks to limit the amount of exposure to catastrophic losses it assumes through a combination of managing aggregate limits, underwriting guidelines and reinsurance. For a discussion of our risk management policies, see "Management's Discussion and Analysis of Financial Condition and Results of Operations—Critical Accounting Policies, Estimates and Recent Accounting Pronouncements—Ceded Reinsurance" and "Risk Factors—Risks Relating to Our Industry—The failure of any of the loss limitation methods we employ could have a material adverse effect on our financial condition or results of operations."

        Claims Management.    Our insurance group's claims management function is performed by claims professionals, as well as experienced external claims managers (third party administrators), where appropriate. In addition to investigating, evaluating and resolving claims, members of our insurance group's claims departments work with underwriting professionals as functional teams in order to develop products and services desired by the group's customers.

        Our reinsurance operations are conducted on a worldwide basis through our reinsurance subsidiaries, Arch Re Bermuda, Arch Re U.S. and Arch Re Europe. Arch Re Bermuda is a registered Class 4 insurer and long-term insurer and is headquartered in Hamilton, Bermuda. Arch Re U.S. is licensed or is an accredited or otherwise approved reinsurer in 50 states and the District of Columbia and operates out of its office in Morristown, New Jersey. Our property facultative reinsurance operations are conducted primarily through Arch Re U.S. with certain executive functions conducted through Arch Re Facultative Underwriters Inc. located in Farmington, Connecticut. The property facultative reinsurance operations have offices throughout the U.S. and Canada and through a property facultative division of Arch Re Europe which was established in 2011. Arch Re Europe, licensed and authorized as a non-life reinsurer and a life reinsurer, is headquartered in Dublin, Ireland with a branch office in Switzerland.

        As of February 15, 2011, our reinsurance group had approximately 180 employees.

10


Table of Contents

        Strategy.    Our reinsurance group's strategy is to capitalize on our financial capacity, experienced management and operational flexibility to offer multiple products through our operations. The reinsurance group's operating principles are to:

        Our reinsurance group writes business on both a proportional and non-proportional basis and writes both treaty and facultative business. In a proportional reinsurance arrangement (also known as pro rata reinsurance, quota share reinsurance or participating reinsurance), the reinsurer shares a proportional part of the original premiums and losses of the reinsured. The reinsurer pays the cedent a commission which is generally based on the cedent's cost of acquiring the business being reinsured (including commissions, premium taxes, assessments and miscellaneous administrative expenses) and may also include a profit factor. Non-proportional (or excess of loss) reinsurance indemnifies the reinsured against all or a specified portion of losses on underlying insurance policies in excess of a specified amount, which is called a "retention." Non-proportional business is written in layers and a reinsurer or group of reinsurers accepts a band of coverage up to a specified amount. The total coverage purchased by the cedent is referred to as a "program." Any liability exceeding the upper limit of the program reverts to the cedent.

        The reinsurance group's treaty operations generally seek to write significant lines on less commoditized classes of coverage, such as specialty property and casualty reinsurance treaties. However, with respect to other classes of coverage, such as property catastrophe and casualty clash, the reinsurance group's treaty operations participate in a relatively large number of treaties where they believe that they can underwrite and process the business efficiently. The reinsurance group's property facultative operations write reinsurance on a facultative basis whereby they assume part of the risk under a single insurance contract. Facultative reinsurance is typically purchased by ceding companies for individual risks not covered by their reinsurance treaties, for unusual risks or for amounts in excess of the limits on their reinsurance treaties.

        Our reinsurance group focuses on the following areas:

11


Table of Contents

        Underwriting Philosophy.    Our reinsurance group employs a disciplined, analytical approach to underwriting reinsurance risks that is designed to specify an adequate premium for a given exposure commensurate with the amount of capital it anticipates placing at risk. A number of our reinsurance group's underwriters are also actuaries. It is our reinsurance group's belief that employing actuaries on the front-end of the underwriting process gives it an advantage in evaluating risks and constructing a high quality book of business.

        As part of the underwriting process, our reinsurance group typically assesses a variety of factors, including:

12


Table of Contents

        Premiums Written and Geographic Distribution.    Set forth below is summary information regarding net premiums written for our reinsurance group:

 
  Year Ended December 31,  
 
  2010   2009   2008  
 
  Amount   % of
Total
  Amount   % of
Total
  Amount   % of
Total
 

REINSURANCE SEGMENT

                                     

Net premiums written

                                     

Property excluding property catastrophe(1)

  $ 249,791     29.3   $ 349,915     33.0   $ 328,684     28.6  

Property catastrophe

    202,989     23.8     237,445     22.4     231,146     20.1  

Casualty(2)

    186,774     21.9     325,699     30.8     347,198     30.2  

Other specialty

    131,158     15.4     65,189     6.2     146,452     12.8  

Marine and aviation

    77,063     9.0     77,677     7.3     90,733     7.9  

Other

    4,302     0.6     2,903     0.3     3,910     0.4  
                           

Total

  $ 852,077     100.0   $ 1,058,828     100.0   $ 1,148,123     100.0  
                           

Net premiums written by client location

                                     

United States

  $ 496,947     58.3   $ 668,985     63.2   $ 631,896     55.0  

Europe

    195,006     22.9     213,211     20.1     331,072     28.8  

Bermuda

    75,517     8.9     127,212     12.0     137,215     12.0  

Other

    84,607     9.9     49,420     4.7     47,940     4.2  
                           

Total

  $ 852,077     100.0   $ 1,058,828     100.0   $ 1,148,123     100.0  
                           

Net premiums written by underwriting location

                                     

Bermuda

  $ 461,890     54.2   $ 596,334     56.3   $ 662,896     57.7  

United States

    307,639     36.1     396,947     37.5     419,805     36.6  

Other

    82,548     9.7     65,547     6.2     65,422     5.7  
                           

Total

  $ 852,077     100.0   $ 1,058,828     100.0   $ 1,148,123     100.0  
                           

(1)
Includes facultative business.

(2)
Includes professional liability, executive assurance and healthcare business.

        Marketing.    Our reinsurance group generally markets its reinsurance products through brokers, except our property facultative reinsurance group, which generally deals directly with the ceding companies. Brokers do not have the authority to bind our reinsurance group with respect to reinsurance agreements, nor does our reinsurance group commit in advance to accept any portion of the business that brokers submit to them. Our reinsurance group generally pays brokerage fees to brokers based on negotiated percentages of the premiums written through such brokers. For information on major brokers, see note 13, "Commitments and Contingencies—Concentrations of Credit Risk," of the notes accompanying our consolidated financial statements.

        Risk Management and Retrocession.    Our reinsurance group currently purchases "common account" retrocessional arrangements for certain treaties. Such arrangements reduce the effect of individual or aggregate losses to all companies participating in such treaties, including the reinsurers. Our reinsurance group will continue to evaluate its retrocessional requirements. See note 4, "Reinsurance," of the notes accompanying our consolidated financial statements.

        For catastrophe exposed reinsurance business, our reinsurance group seeks to limit the amount of exposure it assumes from any one reinsured and the amount of the aggregate exposure to catastrophe

13


Table of Contents


losses from a single event in any one geographic zone. For a discussion of our risk management policies, see "Management's Discussion and Analysis of Financial Condition and Results of Operations—Critical Accounting Policies, Estimates and Recent Accounting Pronouncements—Ceded Reinsurance" and "Risk Factors—Risks Relating to Our Industry—The failure of any of the loss limitation methods we employ could have a material adverse effect on our financial condition or results of operations."

        Claims Management.    Claims management includes the receipt of initial loss reports, creation of claim files, determination of whether further investigation is required, establishment and adjustment of case reserves and payment of claims. Additionally, audits are conducted for both specific claims and overall claims procedures at the offices of selected ceding companies. Our reinsurance group makes use of outside consultants for claims work from time to time.

Employees

        As of February 15, 2011, ACGL and its subsidiaries employed approximately 1,340 full-time employees.

Reserves

        Reserve estimates are derived after extensive consultation with individual underwriters, actuarial analysis of the loss reserve development and comparison with industry benchmarks. Our reserves are established and reviewed by experienced internal actuaries. Generally, reserves are established without regard to whether we may subsequently contest the claim. We do not currently discount our loss reserves except for excess workers' compensation and employers' liability loss reserves in our insurance operations.

        Loss reserves represent estimates of what the insurer or reinsurer ultimately expects to pay on claims at a given time, based on facts and circumstances then known, and it is probable that the ultimate liability may exceed or be less than such estimates. Even actuarially sound methods can lead to subsequent adjustments to reserves that are both significant and irregular due to the nature of the risks written. Loss reserves are inherently subject to uncertainty. In establishing the reserves for losses and loss adjustment expenses, we have made various assumptions relating to the pricing of our reinsurance contracts and insurance policies and have also considered available historical industry experience and current industry conditions. The timing and amounts of actual claim payments related to recorded reserves vary based on many factors including large individual losses, changes in the legal environment, as well as general market conditions. The ultimate amount of the claim payments could differ materially from our estimated amounts. Certain lines of business written by us, such as excess casualty, have loss experience characterized as low frequency and high severity. This may result in significant variability in loss payment patterns and, therefore, may impact the related asset/liability investment management process in order to be in a position, if necessary, to make these payments. See "Management's Discussion and Analysis of Financial Condition and Results of Operations—Critical Accounting Policies, Estimates and Recent Accounting Pronouncements—Reserves for Losses and Loss Adjustment Expenses."

        The following table represents the development of loss reserves as determined under accounting principles generally accepted in the United States of America ("GAAP") for 2000 through 2010. With respect to 2000, no reserves are reported in the table below because all reserves for business written through May 5, 2000 were assumed by White Mountains Reinsurance Company of America ("WTM Re") in the May 5, 2000 asset sale, and we did not write or assume any business during 2000 subsequent to the asset sale. Activity subsequent to 2000 relates to acquisitions made by us and our underwriting initiatives that commenced in October 2001.

14


Table of Contents

        This table does not present accident or policy year development data and, instead, presents an analysis of the claim development of gross and net balance sheet reserves existing at each calendar year-end in subsequent calendar years. The top line of the table shows the reserves, net of reinsurance recoverables, at the balance sheet date for each of the indicated years. This represents the estimated amounts of net losses and loss adjustment expenses arising in all prior years that are unpaid at the balance sheet date, including incurred but not reported ("IBNR") reserves. The table also shows the re-estimated amount of the previously recorded reserves based on experience as of the end of each succeeding year. The estimate changes as more information becomes known about the frequency and severity of claims for individual years. The "cumulative redundancy (deficiency)" represents the aggregate change in the estimates over all prior years. The table also shows the cumulative amounts paid as of successive years with respect to that reserve liability. In addition, the table reflects the claim development of the gross balance sheet reserves for ending reserves at December 31, 2000 through

15


Table of Contents


December 31, 2009. With respect to the information in the table, it should be noted that each amount includes the effects of all changes in amounts for prior periods.


Development of GAAP Reserves
Cumulative Redundancy (Deficiency)

 
  Years Ended December 31,  
(U.S. dollars in millions)
  2000   2001   2002   2003   2004   2005   2006   2007   2008   2009   2010  

Reserve for losses and loss adjustment expenses, net of reinsurance recoverables

      $ 21   $ 381   $ 1,543   $ 2,875   $ 4,063   $ 4,911   $ 5,483   $ 5,938   $ 6,214   $ 6,395  

Cumulative net paid losses as of:

                                                                   
 

One year later

        15     82     278     449     745     843     954     1,167     1,106        
 

Two years later

        19     141     437     811     1,332     1,486     1,817     2,114              
 

Three years later

        24     172     596     1,110     1,688     2,040     2,308                    
 

Four years later

        26     204     706     1,300     1,993     2,375                          
 

Five years later

        26     218     787     1,478     2,249                                
 

Six years later

        25     233     853     1,629                                      
 

Seven years later

        25     243     930                                            
 

Eight years later

        25     257                                                  
 

Nine years later

        28                                                        
 

Ten years later

                                                                 

Net re-estimated reserve as of:

                                                                   
 

One year later

        25     340     1,444     2,756     3,986     4,726     5,173     5,749     6,067        
 

Two years later

        25     335     1,353     2,614     3,809     4,387     4,959     5,620              
 

Three years later

        27     335     1,259     2,487     3,541     4,164     4,849                    
 

Four years later

        27     313     1,237     2,353     3,381     4,107                          
 

Five years later

        28     316     1,187     2,305     3,359                                
 

Six years later

        26     302     1,183     2,291                                      
 

Seven years later

        25     291     1,191                                            
 

Eight years later

        26     292                                                  
 

Nine years later

        28                                                        
 

Ten years later

                                                                 

Cumulative net redundancy (deficiency)

      $ (7 ) $ 89   $ 352   $ 584   $ 704   $ 804   $ 634   $ 318   $ 147        
                                                 

Cumulative net redundancy (deficiency) as a percentage of net reserves

        (33.3 )   23.5     22.8     20.3     17.3     16.4     11.6     5.3     2.4        

Gross reserve for losses and loss adjustment expenses

      $ 111   $ 592   $ 1,912   $ 3,493   $ 5,453   $ 6,463   $ 7,092   $ 7,667   $ 7,873   $ 8,098  

Reinsurance recoverable

        (90 )   (211 )   (369 )   (618 )   (1,390 )   (1,552 )   (1,609 )   (1,729 )   (1,659 )   (1,703 )
                                               

Net reserve for losses and loss adjustment expenses

      $ 21   $ 381   $ 1,543   $ 2,875   $ 4,063   $ 4,911   $ 5,483   $ 5,938   $ 6,214   $ 6,395  
                                               

Gross re-estimated reserve

        181     518     1,491     2,812     4,697     5,441     6,331     7,222     7,721        

Re-estimated reinsurance recoverable

        (153 )   (226 )   (300 )   (521 )   (1,338 )   (1,334 )   (1,482 )   (1,602 )   (1,654 )      
                                                 

Net re-estimated reserve

        28     292     1,191     2,291     3,359     4,107     4,849     5,620     6,067        
                                                 

Gross re-estimated redundancy (deficiency)

      $ (70 ) $ 74   $ 421   $ 681   $ 756   $ 1,022   $ 761   $ 445   $ 152        
                                                 

16


Table of Contents

        The following table represents an analysis of losses and loss adjustment expenses and a reconciliation of the beginning and ending reserve for losses and loss adjustment expenses.

 
  Year Ended December 31,  
 
  2010   2009   2008  

Reserve for losses and loss adjustment expenses at beginning of year

  $ 7,873,412   $ 7,666,957   $ 7,092,452  

Unpaid losses and loss adjustment expenses recoverable

    1,659,500     1,729,135     1,609,619  
               

Net reserve for losses and loss adjustment expenses at beginning of year

    6,213,912     5,937,822     5,482,833  

Net incurred losses and loss adjustment expenses relating to losses occurring in:

                   
 

Current year

    1,664,411     1,843,875     2,158,914  
 

Prior years

    (146,696 )   (189,201 )   (310,170 )
               
   

Total net incurred losses and loss adjustment expenses

    1,517,715     1,654,674     1,848,744  

Foreign exchange (gains) losses

   
(29,089

)
 
60,506
   
(133,881

)

Net paid losses and loss adjustment expenses relating to losses occurring in:

                   
 

Current year

    (200,789 )   (272,295 )   (305,513 )
 

Prior years

    (1,106,496 )   (1,166,795 )   (954,361 )
               
   

Total net paid losses and loss adjustment expenses

    (1,307,285 )   (1,439,090 )   (1,259,874 )

Net reserve for losses and loss adjustment expenses at end of year

   
6,395,253
   
6,213,912
   
5,937,822
 

Unpaid losses and loss adjustment expenses recoverable

    1,703,201     1,659,500     1,729,135  
               

Reserve for losses and loss adjustment expenses at end of year

  $ 8,098,454   $ 7,873,412   $ 7,666,957  
               

        Our initial reserving method to date has to a large extent been the expected loss method, which is commonly applied when limited loss experience exists. We select the initial expected loss and loss adjustment expense ratios based on information derived by our underwriters and actuaries during the initial pricing of the business, supplemented by industry data where appropriate. These ratios consider, among other things, rate changes and changes in terms and conditions that have been observed in the market. Any estimates and assumptions made as part of the reserving process could prove to be inaccurate due to several factors, including the fact that relatively limited historical information has been reported to us through December 31, 2010. We employ a number of different reserving methods depending on the segment, the line of business, the availability of historical loss experience and the stability of that loss experience. Over time, we have given additional weight to our historical loss experience in our reserving process due to the continuing maturation of our reserves, and the increased availability and credibility of the historical experience. For additional information regarding the key underlying movements in our losses and loss adjustment expenses in 2008, 2009 and 2010 by segment, see "Management's Discussion and Analysis of Financial Condition and Results of Operations—Results of Operations."

        Unpaid and paid losses and loss adjustment expenses recoverable were approximately $1.76 billion at December 31, 2010. We are subject to credit risk with respect to our reinsurance and retrocessions because the ceding of risk to reinsurers and retrocessionaires does not relieve us of our liability to the clients or companies we insure or reinsure. Our failure to establish adequate reinsurance or retrocessional arrangements or the failure of our existing reinsurance or retrocessional arrangements to

17


Table of Contents


protect us from overly concentrated risk exposure could adversely affect our financial condition and results of operations. Although we monitor the financial condition of our reinsurers and retrocessionaires and attempt to place coverages only with substantial, financially sound carriers, we may not be successful in doing so.

Investments

        At December 31, 2010, consolidated cash and invested assets totaled approximately $11.84 billion, as summarized in the table below. See "Management's Discussion and Analysis of Financial Condition and Results of Operations—Financial Condition, Liquidity and Capital Resources—Financial Condition—Investable Assets" and note 7, "Investment Information," of the notes accompanying our financial statements.

        The following table summarizes the market value of our cash and invested assets at December 31, 2010 and 2009:

 
  December 31,  
 
  2010   2009  

Cash and short-term investments(1)

  $ 1,278,581   $ 910,054  
           

Fixed maturities and fixed maturities pledged under securities lending agreements, at market value(1):

             
 

Corporate bonds

    2,839,344     3,134,088  
 

Mortgage backed securities

    1,806,813     1,449,382  
 

Municipal bonds

    1,182,100     957,752  
 

Commercial mortgage backed securities

    1,167,299     1,185,799  
 

U.S. government and government agencies

    872,149     1,553,672  
 

Non-U.S. government securities

    732,666     752,215  
 

Asset backed securities

    558,032     567,844  
           
   

Sub-total

    9,158,403     9,600,752  
           

TALF investments, at market value(2)

    402,449     250,265  

Equity securities available for sale, at market value

    363,255     36,623  

Other investments

    349,272     135,549  

Investment funds accounted for using the equity method

    434,600     391,869  
           
   

Total cash and investments

    11,986,560     11,325,112  

Securities transactions entered into but not settled at the balance sheet date

    (144,047 )   50,790  
           
   

Total cash and invested assets

  $ 11,842,513   $ 11,375,902  
           

(1)
In our securities lending transactions, we receive collateral in excess of the market value of the fixed maturities and short-term investments pledged under securities lending agreements. For purposes of this table, we have excluded the investment of collateral received and reinvested at December 31, 2010 and 2009 of $69.7 million and $207.0 million, respectively, and included the $75.6 million and $212.8 million, respectively, of "fixed maturities and short-term investments pledged under securities lending agreements, at market value."

(2)
We participate in the Federal Reserve Bank of New York's ("FRBNY") Term Asset-Backed Securities Loan Facility ("TALF"). TALF provides secured financing for asset-backed securities backed by certain types of consumer and small business loans and for legacy commercial mortgage-backed securities. TALF financing is non-recourse to us, except in certain limited instances, and is collateralized by the purchased securities and provides financing for the purchase price of the

18


Table of Contents

        Our current investment guidelines and approach stress preservation of capital, market liquidity and diversification of risk. Our investments are subject to market-wide risks and fluctuations, as well as to risks inherent in particular securities. While maintaining our emphasis on preservation of capital and liquidity, we expect our portfolio to become more diversified and, as a result, we may expand into areas which are not currently part of our investment strategy. At December 31, 2010, approximately 94% of our fixed maturities and fixed maturities pledged under securities lending agreements were rated investment grade by the major rating agencies, primarily Standard & Poor's Rating Services ("Standard & Poor's"), compared to 95% at December 31, 2009. At December 31, 2010 and 2009, our fixed maturities, fixed maturities pledged under securities lending agreements and short-term investments had an average credit quality rating of "AA+". Our investment portfolio had an average effective duration of approximately 2.83 years and 2.87 years at December 31, 2010 and 2009, respectively.

        The credit quality distribution of our fixed maturities and fixed maturities pledged under securities lending agreements, excluding TALF investments, at December 31, 2010 and 2009 are shown below:

 
  December 31,  
 
  2010   2009  
Rating(1)
  Estimated
Market Value
  % of
Total
  Estimated
Market Value
  % of
Total
 

AAA

  $ 6,531,757     71.3   $ 7,072,381     73.7  

AA

    1,053,666     11.5     1,281,377     13.3  

A

    605,483     6.6     547,104     5.7  

BBB

    388,564     4.2     231,988     2.4  

BB

    133,673     1.5     85,952     0.9  

B

    242,479     2.6     209,417     2.2  

Lower than B

    109,596     1.2     80,871     0.8  

Not rated

    93,185     1.1     91,662     1.0  
                   
 

Total

  $ 9,158,403     100.0   $ 9,600,752     100.0  
                   

(1)
Ratings as assigned by the major rating agencies.

        For 2010, 2009 and 2008, set forth below is the pre-tax total return (before investment expenses) of our investment portfolio (including fixed maturities, short-term investments and fixed maturities and short-term investments pledged under securities lending agreements) compared to the benchmark return against which we measured our portfolio during the year. The benchmark return index is a customized combination of indices intended to approximate a target portfolio by asset mix and average credit quality while also matching the approximate estimated duration and currency mix of our

19


Table of Contents


insurance and reinsurance liabilities (see "Management's Discussion and Analysis of Financial Condition and Results of Operations—General—Financial Measures—Total Return on Investments").

 
  Arch
Portfolio(1)
  Benchmark
Return Index
 

Pre-tax total return (before investment expenses):

             
 

Year ended December 31, 2010

    7.00 %   6.38 %
 

Year ended December 31, 2009

    11.28 %   9.71 %
 

Year ended December 31, 2008

    (2.84 )%   (1.42 )%

(1)
Our investment expenses were approximately 0.19% of average invested assets in 2010, compared to 0.20% in 2009 and 0.14% in 2008.

Ratings

        Our ability to underwrite business is dependent upon the quality of our claims paying ability and financial strength ratings as evaluated by independent agencies. Such ratings from third party internationally recognized statistical rating organizations or agencies are instrumental in establishing the competitive positions of companies in our industry. We believe that the primary users of such ratings include commercial and investment banks, policyholders, brokers, ceding companies and investors. Insurance ratings are also used by insurance and reinsurance intermediaries as an important means of assessing the financial strength and quality of insurers and reinsurers, and have become an increasingly important factor in establishing the competitive position of insurance and reinsurance companies. These ratings are often an important factor in the decision by an insured or intermediary of whether to place business with a particular insurance or reinsurance provider. Periodically, rating agencies evaluate us to confirm that we continue to meet their criteria for the ratings assigned to us by them. A.M. Best Company ("A.M. Best") maintains a letter scale rating system ranging from "A++" (Superior) to "F" (In Liquidation). Moody's Investors Service ("Moody's") maintains a letter scale rating from "Aaa" (Exceptional) to "NP" (Not Prime). Standard & Poor's maintains a letter scale rating system ranging from "AAA" (Extremely Strong) to "R" (Under Regulatory Supervision). Fitch Ratings ("Fitch") maintains a letter scale rating system ranging from "AAA" (Exceptionally Strong) to "C" (Distressed).

        Our reinsurance subsidiaries, Arch Re U.S., Arch Re Bermuda and Arch Re Europe (Standard & Poor's and Fitch only), and our principal insurance subsidiaries, Arch Insurance, Arch E&S, Arch Specialty and Arch Insurance Company Europe, each currently has a financial strength rating of "A" (Excellent, the third highest out of fifteen rating levels) with a positive outlook from A.M. Best, "A2" (Good, the sixth highest out of 21 rating levels) with a stable outlook from Moody's, "A+" (Strong, the fifth highest out of 21 rating levels) with a stable outlook from Standard & Poor's, and "A+" (Strong, the fifth highest out of 24 rating levels) with a stable outlook from Fitch. A.M. Best has assigned a financial strength rating of "NR-3" (Rating Procedure Inapplicable") to Arch Indemnity, which is not writing business currently. Lloyd's has financial strength ratings of "A" (Excellent) with a stable outlook from A.M. Best, "A+" (Strong) with a stable outlook from Standard & Poor's and "A+" (Strong) with a stable outlook from Fitch.

        ACGL has received counterparty (issuer) credit ratings of "A-" (seventh highest out of 21 rating levels) with a stable outlook from Standard & Poor's, "Baa1" (eighth highest out of 21 rating levels) with a stable outlook from Moody's and "A" long term issuer rating (sixth highest out of 23 rating levels) with a stable outlook from Fitch. A counterparty credit rating provides an opinion on an issuer's overall capacity and willingness to meet its financial commitments as they become due, but is not specific to a particular financial obligation.

        The financial strength ratings assigned by rating agencies to insurance and reinsurance companies represent independent opinions of financial strength and ability to meet policyholder obligations and

20


Table of Contents


are not directed toward the protection of investors, nor are they recommendations to buy, hold or sell any securities. We can offer no assurances that our ratings will remain at their current levels, or that our security will be accepted by brokers and our insureds and reinsureds. A ratings downgrade or the potential for such a downgrade, or failure to obtain a necessary rating, could adversely affect both our relationships with agents, brokers, wholesalers and other distributors of our existing products and services and new sales of our products and services. In addition, under certain of the reinsurance agreements assumed by our reinsurance operations, upon the occurrence of a ratings downgrade or other specified triggering event with respect to our reinsurance operations, such as a reduction in surplus by specified amounts during specified periods, our ceding company clients may be provided with certain rights, including, among other things, the right to terminate the subject reinsurance agreement and/or to require that our reinsurance operations post additional collateral. In the event of a ratings downgrade or other triggering event, the exercise of such contract rights by our clients could have a material adverse effect on our financial condition and results of operations, as well as our ongoing business and operations. See "Management's Discussion and Analysis of Financial Condition and Results of Operations—Financial Condition, Liquidity and Capital Resources—Liquidity and Capital Resources."

Competition

        The worldwide reinsurance and insurance businesses are highly competitive. We compete, and will continue to compete, with major U.S. and non-U.S. insurers and reinsurers, some of which have greater financial, marketing and management resources than we have and have had longer-term relationships with insureds and brokers than us. We compete with other insurers and reinsurers primarily on the basis of overall financial strength, ratings assigned by independent rating agencies, geographic scope of business, strength of client relationships, premiums charged, contract terms and conditions, products and services offered, speed of claims payment, reputation, employee experience, and qualifications and local presence.

        In our insurance business, we compete with insurers that provide specialty property and casualty lines of insurance, including: ACE Limited, Allied World Assurance Company, Ltd., Alterra Capital Holdings Limited, Argo Insurance Group, AXIS Capital Holdings Limited, Berkshire Hathaway, Inc., Chartis, Inc., Chubb Corporation, Endurance Specialty Holdings Ltd., The Hartford Financial Services Group, Inc., HCC Insurance Holdings, Inc., Ironshore Inc., Lloyd's, The Travelers Companies, Validus Holdings Ltd, W.R. Berkley Corp., XL Capital Ltd. and Zurich Insurance Group. In our reinsurance business, we compete with reinsurers that provide property and casualty lines of reinsurance, including ACE Limited, Alterra Capital Holdings Limited, Argo International Holdings, Ltd., AXIS Capital Holdings Limited, Berkshire Hathaway, Inc., Endurance Specialty Holdings Ltd., Everest Re Group Ltd., Hannover Rückversicherung AG, Lloyd's, Montpelier Re Holdings Ltd., Munich Re Group, PartnerRe Ltd., Platinum Underwriters Holdings, Ltd., RenaissanceRe Holdings Ltd., Swiss Reinsurance Company, Transatlantic Holdings, Inc., Validus Holdings Ltd and XL Capital Ltd. We do not believe that we have a significant market share in any of our markets.

Enterprise Risk Management

        Enterprise Risk Management ("ERM") is a key element in our philosophy, strategy and culture. We employ an ERM framework that includes underwriting, reserving, investment, credit and operational risks. Risk appetite and exposure limits are set by our executive management team, reviewed with our board of directors and board level committees and routinely discussed with business unit management. These limits are integrated into our operating guidelines and the exposures are aggregated and monitored periodically by our corporate risk management team. The reporting, review and approval of risk management information is integrated into our annual planning process, capital modeling and allocation, reinsurance purchasing strategy and reviewed at insurance business reviews,

21


Table of Contents


reinsurance underwriting meetings and board level committees. For a discussion of our risk management policies, see "Management's Discussion and Analysis of Financial Condition and Results of Operations—Critical Accounting Policies, Estimates and Recent Accounting Pronouncements—Ceded Reinsurance" and "Risk Factors—Risks Relating to Our Industry—The failure of any of the loss limitation methods we employ could have a material adverse effect on our financial condition or results of operations."

Regulation

        General.    In common with other insurers, our U.S.-based subsidiaries are subject to extensive governmental regulation and supervision in the various states and jurisdictions in which they are domiciled and licensed and/or approved to conduct business. The laws and regulations of the state of domicile have the most significant impact on operations. This regulation and supervision is designed to protect policyholders rather than investors. Generally, regulatory authorities have broad regulatory powers over such matters as licenses, standards of solvency, premium rates, policy forms, marketing practices, claims practices, investments, security deposits, methods of accounting, form and content of financial statements, reserves and provisions for unearned premiums, unpaid losses and loss adjustment expenses, reinsurance, minimum capital and surplus requirements, dividends and other distributions to shareholders, periodic examinations and annual and other report filings. In addition, transactions among affiliates, including reinsurance agreements or arrangements, as well as certain third party transactions, require prior regulatory approval from, or prior notice to, the applicable regulator under certain circumstances. Certain insurance regulatory requirements are highlighted below. In addition, regulatory authorities conduct periodic financial, claims and market conduct examinations. Arch Insurance Company Europe is also subject to certain governmental regulation and supervision in the various states where it has been approved as an excess and surplus lines insurer.

        Although there is still pending certain civil litigation arising out of the investigation by the New York Attorney General and others into contingent commission payments to brokers (and the disclosures relating to such payments), alleged "bid-rigging," alleged "steering," and other practices in the insurance industry, a number of brokers announced that they have reached agreement with the New York Attorney General and other state insurance regulatory authorities that would allow them to collect contingent commissions once again. However, we cannot predict the effect that this agreement, the pending civil litigation, any current or future government investigations or prosecutions and/or resulting changes in insurance practices (including future legislation and/or regulations that may become applicable to our business) will have on the insurance industry, the regulatory framework or our business. See "Risk Factors—Risks Relating to Our Industry—Our reliance on brokers subjects us to their credit risk." Although certain brokers have announced new fee structures in response to the industry investigations and, as part of these new initiatives, have requested that our insurance subsidiaries enter into standardized payment arrangements, we have determined to negotiate payment arrangements with our brokers on a case by case basis. However, this has not affected certain agreements between our insurance subsidiaries and managing general agents providing for the payment to such agents of additional commissions based upon the profitability of the business produced by those agents.

        Credit for Reinsurance.    Arch Re U.S. is subject to insurance regulation and supervision that is similar to the regulation of licensed primary insurers. However, except for certain mandated provisions that must be included in order for a ceding company to obtain credit for reinsurance ceded, the terms and conditions of reinsurance agreements generally are not subject to regulation by any governmental authority. This contrasts with admitted primary insurance policies and agreements, the rates and terms of which generally are regulated by state insurance regulators. As a practical matter, however, the rates charged by primary insurers do have an effect on the rates that can be charged by reinsurers.

22


Table of Contents

        A primary insurer ordinarily will enter into a reinsurance agreement only if it can obtain credit for the reinsurance ceded on its U.S. statutory-basis financial statements. In general, credit for reinsurance is allowed in the following circumstances:

        As a result of the requirements relating to the provision of credit for reinsurance, Arch Re U.S. and Arch Re Bermuda are indirectly subject to certain regulatory requirements imposed by jurisdictions in which ceding companies are licensed.

        Arch Re U.S. is licensed or is an accredited or otherwise approved reinsurer in 50 states and the District of Columbia. Arch Insurance is licensed as an insurer in 50 states, the District of Columbia, Puerto Rico, the U.S. Virgin Islands and Guam with a branch office in Canada. Arch Specialty is licensed in one state and approved as an excess and surplus lines insurer in 49 states, the District of Columbia, Puerto Rico and the U.S. Virgin Islands. Arch E&S is licensed in one state and approved as an excess and surplus lines insurer in 47 states and the District of Columbia. Arch Indemnity is licensed as an insurer in 49 states and the District of Columbia. Arch Insurance Company Europe is approved as an excess and surplus lines insurer in 17 states and the District of Columbia. Neither Arch Re Bermuda nor Arch Re Europe expects to become licensed, accredited or so approved in any U.S. jurisdiction.

        Holding Company Acts.    All states have enacted legislation that regulates insurance holding company systems. These regulations generally provide that each insurance company in the system is required to register with the insurance department of its state of domicile and furnish information concerning the operations of companies within the holding company system which may materially affect the operations, management or financial condition of the insurers within the system. All transactions within a holding company system affecting insurers must be fair and reasonable. Notice to the insurance departments is required prior to the consummation of transactions affecting the ownership or control of an insurer and of certain material transactions between an insurer and any entity in its holding company system. In addition, certain of such transactions cannot be consummated without the applicable insurance department's prior approval. In 2010, the NAIC approved the Insurance Holding Company System Regulatory Act, which proposes to revise the current framework for evaluating risks of an insurer within a holding company group. This legislation has been sent to the members of the NAIC for adoption.

        Regulation of Dividends and Other Payments from Insurance Subsidiaries.    The ability of an insurer to pay dividends or make other distributions is subject to insurance regulatory limitations of the insurance company's state of domicile. Generally, such laws limit the payment of dividends or other distributions above a specified level. Dividends or other distributions in excess of such thresholds are "extraordinary" and are subject to prior regulatory approval. Such dividends or distributions may be subject to applicable withholding or other taxes. See "Management's Discussion and Analysis of

23


Table of Contents


Financial Condition and Results of Operations—Financial Condition, Liquidity and Capital Resources—Liquidity and Capital Resources" and note 18, "Statutory Information," of the notes accompanying our financial statements.

        Insurance Regulatory Information System Ratios.    The National Association of Insurance Commissioners ("NAIC") Insurance Regulatory Information System ("IRIS") was developed by a committee of state insurance regulators and is intended primarily to assist state insurance departments in executing their statutory mandates to oversee the financial condition of insurance companies operating in their respective states. IRIS identifies 13 industry ratios (referred to as "IRIS ratios") and specifies "usual values" for each ratio. Departure from the usual values of the IRIS ratios can lead to inquiries from individual state insurance commissioners as to certain aspects of an insurer's business. For 2010, certain of our U.S.-based subsidiaries generated IRIS ratios that were outside of the usual values. To date, none of these subsidiaries has received any notice of regulatory review but there is no assurance that we may not be notified in the future.

        Accreditation.    The NAIC has instituted its Financial Regulation Accreditation Standards Program ("FRASP") in response to federal initiatives to regulate the business of insurance. FRASP provides a set of standards designed to establish effective state regulation of the financial condition of insurance companies. Under FRASP, a state must adopt certain laws and regulations, institute required regulatory practices and procedures, and have adequate personnel to enforce such items in order to become an "accredited" state. If a state is not accredited, other states may not accept certain financial examination reports of insurers prepared solely by the regulatory agency in such unaccredited state. The respective states in which Arch Re U.S., Arch Insurance, Arch E&S, Arch Specialty and Arch Indemnity are domiciled are accredited states.

        Risk-Based Capital Requirements.    In order to enhance the regulation of insurer solvency, the NAIC adopted in December 1993 a formula and model law to implement risk-based capital requirements for property and casualty insurance companies. These risk-based capital requirements are designed to assess capital adequacy and to raise the level of protection that statutory surplus provides for policyholder obligations. The risk-based capital model for property and casualty insurance companies measures three major areas of risk facing property and casualty insurers:

        An insurer will be subject to varying degrees of regulatory action depending on how its statutory surplus compares to its risk-based capital calculation. For equity investments in an insurance company affiliate, the risk-based capital requirements for the equity securities of such affiliate would generally be our U.S.-based subsidiaries' proportionate share of the affiliate's risk-based capital requirement.

        Under the approved formula, an insurer's total adjusted capital is compared to its authorized control level risk-based capital. If this ratio is above a minimum threshold, no company or regulatory action is necessary. Below this threshold are four distinct action levels at which a regulator can intervene with increasing degrees of authority over an insurer as the ratio of surplus to risk-based capital requirement decreases. The four action levels include:

24


Table of Contents

        Each of our U.S. subsidiaries' surplus (as calculated for statutory purposes) is above the risk-based capital thresholds that would require either company or regulatory action.

        Guaranty Funds and Assigned Risk Plans.    Most states require all admitted insurance companies to participate in their respective guaranty funds which cover certain claims against insolvent insurers. Solvent insurers licensed in these states are required to cover the losses paid on behalf of insolvent insurers by the guaranty funds and are generally subject to annual assessments in the states by the guaranty funds to cover these losses. Participation in state-assigned risk plans may take the form of reinsuring a portion of a pool of policies or the direct issuance of policies to insureds. The calculation of an insurer's participation in these plans is usually based on the amount of premium for that type of coverage that was written by the insurer on a voluntary basis. Assigned risk pools tend to produce losses which result in assessments to insurers writing the same lines on a voluntary basis.

        Federal Regulation.    Although state regulation is the dominant form of regulation for insurance and reinsurance business, the federal government has shown concern over the adequacy of state regulation. It is not possible to predict the future impact of any potential federal regulations or other possible laws or regulations on our U.S.-based subsidiaries' capital and operations, and such laws or regulations could materially adversely affect their business. In addition, a number of federal laws affect and apply to the insurance industry, including various privacy laws and the economic and trade sanctions implemented by the Office of Foreign Assets Control ("OFAC"). OFAC maintains and enforces economic sanctions against certain foreign countries and groups and prohibits U.S. persons from engaging in certain transactions with certain persons or entities.

        Terrorism Risk Insurance Program Reauthorization Act of 2007.    The Terrorism Risk Insurance Act of 2002 was amended and extended by the Terrorism Risk Insurance Extension Act of 2005 and amended and extended again by the Terrorism Risk Insurance Program Reauthorization Act of 2007 ("TRIPRA") through December 31, 2014. TRIPRA provides a federal backstop for insurance-related losses resulting from any act of terrorism on U.S. soil or against certain U.S. air carriers, vessels or foreign missions. Under TRIPRA, all U.S.-based property and casualty insurers are required to make terrorism insurance coverage available in specified commercial property and casualty insurance lines. Under TRIPRA, the federal government will pay 85% of covered losses after an insurer's losses exceed a deductible determined by a statutorily prescribed formula, up to a combined annual aggregate limit for the federal government and all insurers of $100 billion. If an act (or acts) of terrorism result in covered losses exceeding the $100 billion annual limit, insurers with losses exceeding their deductibles will not be responsible for additional losses. The deductible for each year is based on the insurer's direct commercial earned premiums for property and casualty insurance, excluding certain lines of business such as commercial auto, surety, professional liability and earthquake lines of business, for the prior calendar year multiplied by 20%. The specified percentages for prior periods were 15% for 2005, 17.5% for 2006, 20% for 2007, 20% for 2008 through 2010.

        Our U.S.-based property and casualty insurers, Arch Insurance, Arch Specialty, Arch E&S and Arch Indemnity, are subject to TRIPRA. TRIPRA specifically excludes reinsurance business and, accordingly, does not apply to our reinsurance operations. Our insurance group's deductible for 2010 was approximately $247.0 million (i.e., 20.0% of earned premiums). Based on 2010 direct commercial earned premiums, our insurance group's deductible for 2011 will be approximately $232.2 million (i.e., 20.0% of such earned premiums). TRIPRA extends through 2014.

        The Gramm-Leach-Bliley Act.    The Gramm-Leach-Bliley Act of 1999 ("GLBA"), which implements fundamental changes in the regulation of the financial services industry in the United States, was enacted on November 12, 1999. The GLBA permits the transformation of the already converging banking, insurance and securities industries by permitting mergers that combine commercial banks, insurers and securities firms under one holding company, a "financial holding company." Bank holding companies and other entities that qualify and elect to be treated as financial holding companies may

25


Table of Contents


engage in activities, and acquire companies engaged in activities, that are "financial" in nature or "incidental" or "complementary" to such financial activities. Such financial activities include acting as principal, agent or broker in the underwriting and sale of life, property, casualty and other forms of insurance and annuities.

        Until the passage of the GLBA, the Glass-Steagall Act of 1933 had limited the ability of banks to engage in securities-related businesses, and the Bank Holding Company Act of 1956 had restricted banks from being affiliated with insurers. With the passage of the GLBA, among other things, bank holding companies may acquire insurers, and insurance holding companies may acquire banks. The ability of banks to affiliate with insurers may affect our U.S. subsidiaries' product lines by substantially increasing the number, size and financial strength of potential competitors.

        The Dodd-Frank Wall Street Reform and Consumer Protection Act.    The Dodd-Frank Wall Street Reform and Consumer Protection Act ("Dodd-Frank"), which includes provisions relating to regulating financial institutions and the business of insurance, was enacted July 21, 2010. Dodd-Frank creates the Federal Insurance Office within the Department of Treasury which is not a federal regulator or supervisor of insurance, but will monitor the insurance industry for systemic risk, administer the TRIPRA, consult with the states regarding insurance matters and develop federal policy on aspects of international insurance matters. Effective 12 months from the date of enactment, Dodd-Frank also creates a uniform system for non-admitted insurance premium tax payments which will be based on the home state of the policyholder and provides for single state regulation for financial solvency and credit for reinsurance.

        Legislative and Regulatory Proposals.    From time to time various regulatory and legislative changes have been proposed in the insurance and reinsurance industry. Among the proposals that have in the past been or are at present being considered are the possible introduction of federal regulation in addition to, or in lieu of, the current system of state regulation of insurers. In addition, there are a variety of proposals being considered by various state legislatures. One ongoing initiative is the Solvency Modernization Initiative ("SMI"), which is a self-examination of the U.S. insurance solvency regulation framework being undertaken by the NAIC. This includes a review of international developments regarding supervision, banking supervision, international accounting standards and their potential use in U.S. insurance regulation. The SMI is focusing on five key areas: capital requirements, governance and risk management, group supervision, statutory accounting and financial reporting and reinsurance.

        The NAIC adopted its Reinsurance Regulatory Modernization Framework Proposal (the "Reinsurance Proposal") in December 2008. The Reinsurance Proposal is intended to eliminate the universal 100 percent collateral requirement presently imposed on foreign reinsurers, such as Arch Re Bermuda, and establishes instead a sliding scale percentage rating system for assessing collateral obligations. To this end, the Reinsurance Proposal creates two new classes of reinsurers in the United States: "national" reinsurers and "port of entry" ("POE") reinsurers. A national reinsurer is licensed and domiciled in a U.S. home state and approved by such state to transact reinsurance business across the U.S. while submitting solely to the regulatory authority of the home state supervisor. A POE reinsurer is defined as a non-U.S. assuming reinsurer that is certified in a port of entry state and approved by such state to provide creditable reinsurance to the U.S. market. The Reinsurance Proposal also creates a single regulatory body, the Reinsurance Supervision Review Department ("RSRD"), that will establish uniform standards for evaluating reinsurance regulations of the United States and foreign countries. Through the use of uniform standards, the RSRD will determine whether POE reinsurers qualify for reduced collateral requirements. The Reinsurance Proposal, however, is not self-executing and does not become effective until Congress enacts legislation that preempts state laws that impose higher collateral requirements than the domestic or port of entry states require. To date, the NAIC has not found significant support in Congress. In response to the lack of support for federal legislation, many states, such as New York and Florida, have enacted state regulations aimed at reducing collateral

26


Table of Contents


requirements on foreign insurers. There are several other states which have introduced similar legislation similar to the Reinsurance Proposal.

        We are unable to predict whether any of these proposed laws and regulations will be adopted, the form in which any such laws and regulations would be adopted, or the effect, if any, these developments would have on our operations and financial condition. See "—U.S. Insurance Regulation—General."

        The Insurance Act 1978, as Amended, and Related Regulations of Bermuda (the "Insurance Act").    As a holding company, ACGL is not subject to Bermuda insurance regulations. The Insurance Act, which regulates the insurance business of Arch Re Bermuda, provides that no person shall carry on any insurance business in or from within Bermuda unless registered as an insurer under the Insurance Act by the Bermuda Monetary Authority (the "BMA"), which is responsible for the day-to-day supervision of insurers. Under the Insurance Act, insurance business includes reinsurance business. The registration of an applicant as an insurer is subject to its complying with the terms of its registration and such other conditions as the BMA may impose from time to time.

        The Insurance Act imposes solvency and liquidity standards and auditing and reporting requirements on Bermuda insurance companies and grants to the BMA powers to supervise, investigate and intervene in the affairs of insurance companies. Certain significant aspects of the Bermuda insurance regulatory framework are set forth below.

        Classification of Insurers.    The Insurance Act distinguishes between insurers carrying on long-term business and insurers carrying on general business. There are six classifications of insurers carrying on general business, with Class 4 insurers subject to the strictest regulation. Arch Re Bermuda is registered as both a long-term insurer and a Class 4 insurer in Bermuda and is regulated as such under the Insurance Act.

        The Bermuda Insurance Amendment (No. 3) Act 2010, among other things, creates five new classes of long-term insurers (being Classes A to E), with Class E insurers expected to be subject to the strictest regulation. Prior to September 30, 2011 Arch Re Bermuda will be required to apply to be re-registered as either a Class C, Class D, or Class E insurer, with the Class being determined based upon the total assets of Arch Re Bermuda. It is anticipated that in due course, each Class C, Class D and Class E long term insurer, including Arch Re Bermuda, will be required to maintain total statutory capital and surplus equal to or exceeding its target capital level based on enhanced capital requirements calculated using a risk based capital model currently being developed by the BMA for long-term insurers. Arch Re Bermuda will also be subject to a new minimum margin of solvency, based on its re-classification as a Class C, Class D or Class E insurer as described above. The minimum margin of solvency:

        Cancellation of Insurer's Registration.    An insurer's registration may be canceled by the BMA on certain grounds specified in the Insurance Act, including failure of the insurer to comply with its obligations under the Insurance Act or if, in the opinion of the BMA, the insurer has not been carrying on business in accordance with sound insurance principles. We believe we are in compliance with applicable regulations under the Insurance Act.

27


Table of Contents

        Principal Representative.    An insurer is required to maintain a principal office in Bermuda and to appoint and maintain a principal representative in Bermuda. It is the duty of the principal representative upon reaching the view that there is a likelihood of the insurer for which the principal representative acts becoming insolvent or that a reportable "event" has, to the principal representative's knowledge, occurred or is believed to have occurred, to immediately notify the BMA and to make a report in writing to the BMA within 14 days of the prior notification setting out all the particulars of the case that are available to the principal representative.

        Approved Independent Auditor.    A Class 4 insurer must appoint an independent auditor who annually audits and reports on the insurer's financial statements prepared under generally accepted accounting principles or international financial reporting standards ("GAAP financial statements") and statutory financial statements and the statutory financial return of the insurer, all of which, in the case of Arch Re Bermuda, are required to be filed annually with the BMA. The independent auditor must be approved by the BMA.

        Approved Actuary.    Arch Re Bermuda, as a registered long-term insurer, is required to submit an annual actuary's certificate when filing its statutory financial returns. The actuary, who is normally a qualified life actuary, must be approved by the BMA.

        Approved Loss Reserve Specialist.    As a registered Class 4 insurer, Arch Re Bermuda is required to submit an opinion of its approved loss reserve specialist with its statutory financial return in respect of its loss and loss expense provisions. The loss reserve specialist, who will normally be a qualified casualty actuary, must be approved by the BMA.

        Annual Financial Statements, Annual Statutory Financial Return and Annual Capital and Solvency Return.    Arch Re Bermuda must prepare annual statutory financial statements as prescribed in the Insurance Act with respect to both its general business and its long-term business. The statutory financial statements are distinct from the annual GAAP basis financial statements referred to below. Arch Re Bermuda is also required to prepare and file with the BMA statutory financial returns with respect to its general business and long-term business. The statutory financial return for a Class 4 insurer includes, among other things, a report of the approved independent auditor on the statutory financial statement of such insurer, solvency certificates, the statutory financial statements for the general business, the opinion of the loss reserve specialist and a schedule of reinsurance ceded. The statutory financial return for a long-term insurer shall include a report of the approved independent auditor on the statutory financial statements of such insurer, the statutory financial statements related to the long-term business, a declaration of the statutory ratios, the long-term business solvency certificate and a certificate from the approved actuary. Arch Re Bermuda is also required to file audited GAAP basis annual financial statements, which must be available to the public. In addition, Arch Re Bermuda is required to file a capital and solvency return which shall include the regulatory risk based capital model, a schedule of fixed income investments by rating categories, a schedule of net reserves for losses and loss expense provisions by line of business, a schedule of premiums written by line of business, a schedule of risk management and a schedule of fixed income securities.

        Minimum Solvency Margin, Enhanced Capital Requirement and Restrictions on Dividends and Distributions.    Under the Insurance Act, Arch Re Bermuda must ensure that the value of its general business assets exceeds the amount of its general business liabilities by an amount greater than the prescribed minimum solvency margin and enhanced capital requirement. As a Class 4 insurer and long-term insurer, Arch Re Bermuda:

28


Table of Contents

        Minimum Liquidity Ratio.    The Insurance Act provides a minimum liquidity ratio for general business insurers such as Arch Re Bermuda. An insurer engaged in general business is required to maintain the value of its relevant assets at not less than 75% of the amount of its relevant liabilities. Relevant assets include cash and time deposits, quoted investments, unquoted bonds and debentures, first liens on real estate, investment income due and accrued, accounts and premiums receivable and reinsurance balances receivable. The relevant liabilities are total general business insurance reserves and total other liabilities less deferred income tax and sundry liabilities (by interpretation, those not specifically defined).

        Long-Term Business Fund.    An insurer carrying on long-term business is required to keep its accounts in respect of its long-term business separate from any accounts kept in respect of any other business and all receipts of its long-term business form part of its long-term business fund. No payment may be made directly or indirectly from an insurer's long-term business fund for any purpose other than a purpose related to the insurer's long-term business, unless such payment can be made out of any

29


Table of Contents


surplus certified by the insurer's approved actuary to be available for distribution otherwise than to policyholders. Arch Re Bermuda may not declare or pay a dividend to any person other than a policyholder unless the value of the assets in its long-term business fund, as certified by its approved actuary, exceeds the liabilities of the insurer's long-term business (as certified by the insurer's approved actuary) by the amount of the dividend and at least the $250,000 minimum solvency margin prescribed by the Insurance Act, and the amount of any such dividend may not exceed the aggregate of that excess (excluding the said $250,000) and any other funds properly available for payment of dividends, such as funds arising out of business of the insurer other than long-term business.

        Restrictions on Transfer of Business and Winding-Up.    Arch Re Bermuda, as a long-term insurer, is subject to the following provisions of the Insurance Act:

        Supervision, Investigation and Intervention.    The BMA may appoint an inspector with extensive powers to investigate the affairs of an insurer if the BMA believes that an investigation is required in the interest of the insurer's policyholders or persons who may become policyholders. In order to verify or supplement information otherwise provided to the BMA, the BMA may direct an insurer to produce documents or information relating to matters connected with the insurer's business.

        If it appears to the BMA that there is a risk of the insurer becoming insolvent, or that it is in breach of the Insurance Act or any conditions imposed upon its registration, the BMA may, among other things, direct the insurer (1) not to take on any new insurance business, (2) not to vary any insurance contract if the effect would be to increase the insurer's liabilities, (3) not to make certain investments, (4) to realize certain investments, (5) to maintain in, or transfer to the custody of, a specified bank, certain assets, (6) not to declare or pay any dividends or other distributions or to restrict the making of such payments, (7) to limit its premium income, (8) not to enter into specified transactions with any specified person or persons of a specified class, (9) to provide such written particulars relating to the financial circumstances of the insurer as the BMA thinks fit, (10) to obtain the opinion of a loss reserve specialist and submit it to the BMA and/or (11) to remove a controller or officer.

        Group Supervision.    The BMA has chosen Arch Re Bermuda as the designated insurer for the purposes of group supervision, and the BMA will act as group supervisor. As group supervisor, the BMA will gather relevant and essential information on and assess the financial situation of the group, and coordinate the dissemination of such information to other relevant competent authorities for the purposes of assisting in their regulatory functions and the enforcement of regulatory action against the group or any of its members. The BMA may establish rules applicable to group supervision that will regulate group solvency, risk concentration and intra-group transactions, and the systems of governance and risk management applicable to the group. ACGL is not an insurer and, as such, is not regulated in Bermuda. However, pursuant to its functions as group supervisor, the BMA may include any member of the group within its group supervision, including ACGL.

        Shareholder Controllers.    Any person who, directly or indirectly, becomes a holder of at least 10%, 20%, 33% or 50% of the common shares of ACGL must notify the BMA in writing within 45 days of becoming such a holder. The BMA may, by written notice, object to such a person if it appears to the BMA that the person is not fit and proper to be such a holder. The BMA may require the holder to reduce their holding of common shares in ACGL and direct, among other things, that voting rights attaching to the common shares shall not be exercisable. A person that does not comply with such a notice or direction from the BMA will be guilty of an offense.

30


Table of Contents

        For as long as ACGL has a subsidiary that is an insurer registered under the Insurance Act, the BMA may at any time, by written notice, object to a person holding 10% or more of its common shares if it appears to the BMA that the person is not or is no longer fit and proper to be such a holder. In such a case, the BMA may require the shareholder to reduce its holding of common shares in ACGL and direct, among other things, that such shareholder's voting rights attaching to the common shares shall not be exercisable. A person who does not comply with such a notice or direction from the BMA will be guilty of an offense.

        Insurance Code of Conduct.    Arch Re Bermuda will be subject to the Insurance Code of Conduct (the "Code"), which establishes duties and standards which must be complied with by all insurers registered under the Insurance Act, including the procedures and sound principles to be observed by such insurers. The Code is expected to become effective on June 30, 2011. Failure to comply with the requirements under the Code will be a factor taken into account by the BMA in determining whether an insurer is conducting its business in a sound and prudent manner as prescribed by the Insurance Act. Such failure to comply with the requirements of the Code could result in the BMA exercising its powers of intervention (see Supervision, Intervention and Investigation above) and will be a factor in calculating the operational risk charge applicable in accordance with that insurer's risk based capital model.

        ACGL and Arch Re Bermuda have been designated as non-resident for exchange control purposes by the BMA and are required to obtain the permission of the BMA for the issue and transfer of all of their shares. The BMA has given its consent for:

        Transfers and issues of ACGL's common shares to any resident in Bermuda for exchange control purposes may require specific prior approval under the Exchange Control Act 1972. Arch Re Bermuda's common shares cannot be issued or transferred without the consent of the BMA. Because we are designated as non-resident for Bermuda exchange control purposes, we are allowed to engage in transactions, and to pay dividends to Bermuda non-residents who are holders of our common shares, in currencies other than the Bermuda Dollar.

        In accordance with Bermuda law, share certificates are issued only in the names of corporations or individuals. In the case of an applicant acting in a special capacity (for example, as an executor or trustee), certificates may, at the request of the applicant, record the capacity in which the applicant is acting. Notwithstanding the recording of any such special capacity, we are not bound to investigate or incur any responsibility in respect of the proper administration of any such estate or trust. We will take no notice of any trust applicable to any of our common shares whether or not we have notice of such trust.

        ACGL and Arch Re Bermuda are incorporated in Bermuda as "exempted companies." As a result, they are exempt from Bermuda laws restricting the percentage of share capital that may be held by non-Bermudians, but they may not participate in certain business transactions, including (1) the acquisition or holding of land in Bermuda (except that required for their business and held by way of lease or tenancy for terms of not more than 50 years) without the express authorization of the Bermuda legislature, (2) the taking of mortgages on land in Bermuda to secure an amount in excess of $50,000 without the consent of the Minister of Finance, (3) the acquisition of any bonds or debentures

31


Table of Contents


secured by any land in Bermuda, other than certain types of Bermuda government securities or (4) the carrying on of business of any kind in Bermuda, except in furtherance of their business carried on outside Bermuda or under license granted by the Minister of Finance. While an insurer is permitted to reinsure risks undertaken by any company incorporated in Bermuda and permitted to engage in the insurance and reinsurance business, generally it is not permitted without a special license granted by the Minister of Finance to insure Bermuda domestic risks or risks of persons of, in or based in Bermuda.

        ACGL and Arch Re Bermuda also need to comply with the provisions of The Bermuda Companies Act 1981, as amended (the "Companies Act") regulating the payment of dividends and making distributions from contributed surplus. A company shall not declare or pay a dividend, or make a distribution out of contributed surplus, if there are reasonable grounds for believing that: (a) the company is, or would after the payment be, unable to pay its liabilities as they become due; or (b) the realizable value of the company's assets would thereby be less than the aggregate of its liabilities and its issued share capital and share premium accounts. See "Management's Discussion and Analysis of Financial Condition and Results of Operations—Financial Condition, Liquidity and Capital Resources—Liquidity and Capital Resources" and note 18, "Statutory Information," of the notes accompanying our financial statements.

        Under Bermuda law, only persons who are Bermudians, spouses of Bermudians, holders of a permanent resident's certificate or holders of a working resident's certificate ("exempted persons") may engage in gainful occupation in Bermuda without an appropriate governmental work permit. Our success may depend in part upon the continued services of key employees in Bermuda. Certain of our current key employees are not exempted persons and, as such, require specific approval to work for us in Bermuda. A work permit may be granted or extended upon showing that, after proper public advertisement, no exempted person is available who meets the minimum standards reasonably required by the employer. The Bermuda government has a policy that places a six-year term limit on individuals with work permits, subject to certain exemptions for key employees.

        General.    The Financial Services Authority (the "FSA") regulates insurance and reinsurance companies operating in the U.K. under the Financial Services and Markets Act 2000 (the "FSMA"). In May 2004, Arch Insurance Company Europe was licensed and authorized by the FSA. It holds the relevant permissions for the classes of insurance business which it underwrites in the U.K. In 2009, AUAL was licensed and authorized by the FSA and the Lloyd's Franchise Board. AUAL holds the relevant permissions for the classes of insurance business which are underwritten in the U.K. by the Arch Syndicate 2012. Arch Syndicate 2012 has one member, Arch Syndicate Investments Ltd. All U.K. companies are also subject to a range of statutory provisions, including the laws and regulations of the Companies Acts 1985 and 2006 (as amended) (the "U.K. Companies Acts").

        The primary statutory goals of the FSA are to maintain and promote confidence in the U.K. financial system, secure the appropriate degree of protection for consumers and reduce financial crime. The FSA regulatory regime imposes risk management, solvency and capital requirements on U.K. insurance companies. The FSA has broad authority to supervise and regulate insurance companies which extends to enforcement of the provisions of the FSMA and intervention in the operations of an insurance company. The FSA regime is based on principles from which all of its rules and guidance derive. Among these principles, the FSA increasingly emphasizes a "culture of compliance" in those firms it regulates. The FSA carries out regular Advanced Risk Responsive Operating Framework ("ARROW") assessments of regulated firms to ensure that compliance with its rules and guidance. The FSA conducted risk assessments of Arch Insurance Company Europe in 2006 and 2008, and will continue to do so again approximately every two years, including the operations of AUAL and the Arch Syndicate 2012. The assessments provided the FSA's views on Arch Insurance Company Europe's risk

32


Table of Contents


profile and its regulatory capital requirements. In some cases, the FSA may require remedial action or adjustments to a company's management, operations, capital requirements, claims management or business plan. The FSA has announced that greater focus will be placed on senior management arrangements, systems and controls, the fair treatment of clients and making further progress towards the development of enhanced risk-based minimum capital requirements for non life insurance companies, working together with the regulatory bodies of the Member States of the European Union ("EU") and the European Commission, which acts as the initiator of action and executive body of the EU. The U.K. government announced in 2010 that the FSA will be replaced by two new agencies, the Prudential Regulation Authority ("PRA") and the Consumer Protection and Markets Authority ("CPMA"). The PRA will be responsible for prudential regulation of banks and insurers, while the CPMA will be responsible for the conduct of business regulation and the wholesale and retail markets. The legislation covering this change is anticipated during the course of 2012. Arch Insurance Company Europe and, it is anticipated, AUAL, will be subject to regulation by both the PRA and CPMA.

        Lloyd's Supervision.    The operations of AUAL and related Arch Syndicate 2012 and its corporate member, Arch Syndicate Investments Ltd ("ASIC"), are subject to the byelaws and regulations made by (or on behalf of) the Council of Lloyd's, and requirements made under those byelaws. The Council of Lloyd's, established in 1982 by Lloyd's Act 1982, has overall responsibility and control of Lloyd's. Those byelaws, regulations and requirements provide a framework for the regulation of the Lloyd's market, including specifying conditions in relation to underwriting and claims operations of Lloyd's participants. Lloyd's is also subject to the provisions of the FSMA and is itself authorized and regulated as an insurer by the FSA. Those entities acting within the Lloyd's market are required to comply with the requirements of the FSMA and provisions of the FSA's rules, although the FSA has delegated certain of it powers, including some of those relating to prudential requirements, to Lloyd's. ASIC, as a member of Lloyd's, is required to contribute 2.0% of Arch Syndicate 2012's premium income limit for each year of account to the Lloyd's central fund, which will reduce to 0.5% in 2012. The Lloyd's central fund is available if members of Lloyd's assets are not sufficient to meet claims for which the member is liable. As a member of Lloyd's ASIC may also be required to contribute to the central fund by way of a supplement to a callable lawyer of up to 3% of Arch Syndicate 2012's premium income limit for the relevant year of account. In addition, AUAL, on behalf of Arch Syndicate 2012, is approved to underwrite excess and surplus lines insurance in most states in the U.S. through Lloyd's licenses. Such activities must be in compliance with the Lloyd's requirements.

        Financial Resources.    Arch Insurance Europe is required to demonstrate to the FSA that it has adequate financial assets to meet the financial resources requirement for its category. On a periodic basis, Arch Insurance Europe is required to provide the FSA and Lloyd's with its own risk-based assessment of its capital needs, taking into account comprehensive risk factors, including market, credit, operational, liquidity and group risks to generate a revised calculation of its expected liabilities which, in turn, enable the FSA to provide individual capital guidance to Arch Insurance Europe. Arch Insurance Europe's surplus is above the risk-based capital threshold allowed by the FSA's individual capital assessment of Arch Insurance Europe. The FSA requires that Arch Insurance Europe maintain a margin of solvency calculation based on the classes of business for which it is authorized and within its premium income projections applied to its worldwide general business.

        Reporting Requirements.    Like all U.K. companies, Arch Insurance Europe must file and submit its annual audited financial statements in accordance with International Financial Reporting Standards ("IFRS") and related reports to the Registrar of Companies under the U.K. Companies Acts together with an annual return of certain core corporate information and changes from the prior year. This requirement is in addition to the regulatory returns required to be filed annually with the FSA and, in the case of AUAL and ASIC, Lloyd's.

33


Table of Contents

        Restrictions on Payment of Dividends.    Under English law, all companies are restricted from declaring a dividend to their shareholders unless they have "profits available for distribution." The calculation as to whether a company has sufficient profits is based on its accumulated realized profits minus its accumulated realized losses. U.K. insurance regulatory laws do not prohibit the payment of dividends, but the FSA requires that insurance companies maintain certain solvency margins and may restrict the payment of a dividend by Arch Insurance Company Europe, AUAL or ASIC. See "Management's Discussion and Analysis of Financial Condition and Results of Operations—Financial Condition, Liquidity and Capital Resources—Liquidity and Capital Resources" and note 18, "Statutory Information," of the notes accompanying our financial statements.

        European Union Considerations.    Through their respective authorizations in the U.K., a Member State of the EU, Arch Insurance Company Europe's and AUAL's authorizations are recognized throughout the European Economic Area ("EEA"), subject only to certain notification and application requirements. This authorization enables Arch Insurance Company Europe and AUAL to establish a branch in any other Member State of the EU, where it will be subject to the insurance regulations of each such Member State with respect to the conduct of its business in such Member State, but remain subject only to the financial and operational supervision by the FSA. The framework for the establishment of branches in Member States of the EU other than the U.K. was generally set forth, and remains subject to, directives adopted by the European Council, the legislative body of the EU, which directives are then implemented in each Member State. Arch Insurance Company Europe currently has branches in Denmark, Finland, Germany, Italy, Spain and Sweden and may establish branches in other Member States of the EU in the future. Further, through its authorizations in an EU Member State, Arch Insurance Company Europe and AUAL have the freedom to provide insurance services anywhere in the EEA subject to compliance with certain rules governing such provision, including notification to the FSA.

        In addition, the European Commission, which acts as the initiator of action and executive body of the EU, has introduced a new directive on insurance regulation and solvency requirements known as Solvency II. This directive was approved by the European Parliament in April 2009 and adopted by the European Council in November 2009. Currently, the European Commission, with the assistance of the European Insurance and Occupational Pensions Authority ("EIOPA" and formerly the Committee of European Insurance Occupational Pensions Supervisors), is advising the European Commission on implementation of the Directive and undertaking a three stage process of consultation with Member State regulators and insurance firms. This is following a time table that envisages implementation of Solvency II from November 1, 2012 (with an expected deferral to January 1, 2013 with potential transitional provisions). Solvency II is a new regulatory regime which will impose economic risk-based solvency requirements across all EU Member States and consists of three pillars: (1) Pillar I—quantitative capital requirements, based on a valuation of the entire balance sheet; (2) Pillar II—qualitative regulatory review, which includes governance, internal controls, enterprise risk management and supervisory review process and (3) Pillar III—market discipline, which is accomplished through reporting of the insurer's financial condition to regulators and the public. Arch Insurance Europe will be required to comply with Solvency II requirements.

        The Canadian branch office of Arch Insurance is subject to federal, as well as provincial and territorial, regulation in Canada. The Office of the Superintendent of Financial Institutions ("OSFI") is the federal regulatory body that, under the Insurance Companies Act (Canada), regulates federal Canadian and non-Canadian insurance companies operating in Canada. The primary goal of OSFI is to supervise the safety and soundness of insurance companies with the aim of securing the appropriate level of protection of insureds by imposing risk management, solvency and capital requirements on such companies. In addition, the Canadian branch is subject to regulation in the provinces and territories in

34


Table of Contents

which it underwrites insurance, and the primary goal of insurance regulation at the provincial and territorial levels is to govern the market conduct of insurance companies. The Canadian branch is licensed to carry on insurance business by OSFI and in each province and territory, except for Prince Edward Island.

        Under the Insurance Companies Act (Canada), the Canadian branch office is required to maintain an adequate margin of assets over liabilities in Canada, calculated in accordance with a test promulgated by OSFI called the Branch Adequacy of Assets Test (or BAAT). The Canadian branch office is also required to file financial information with OSFI on an ongoing basis, including annual audited financial statements in accordance with Canadian generally accepted accounting principles and other returns and quarterly unaudited financial statements. The Canadian branch office's appointed actuary must report annually on the adequacy of the branch's reserves. OSFI's continuing supervision includes analysis of this information and periodic examinations of the Canadian branch office. OSFI has implemented a risk-based methodology for assessing insurance companies operating in Canada known as its "Supervisory Framework". In applying the Supervisory Framework, OSFI considers the inherent risks of the business and the quality of risk management for each significant activity of operating entity.

        General.    The Central Bank of Ireland ("CBOI", which replaced the Irish Financial Services Regulatory Authority) regulates insurance and reinsurance companies authorized in Ireland, including Arch Re Europe, which was licensed and authorized by the CBOI as a non-life reinsurer in October 2008 and as a life reinsurer in November 2009.

        Arch Re Europe must also comply with the European Communities (Reinsurance) Regulations, 2006, rules made thereunder and, insofar as relevant to reinsurance, the Irish Insurance Acts 1909 to 2000, regulations promulgated thereunder, regulations relating to reinsurance business promulgated under the European Communities Act 1972, the Irish Central Bank Acts 1942 to 2004 as amended, regulations promulgated thereunder and directions, guidelines and codes of conduct issued by the CBOI. Irish authorized reinsurers, such as Arch Re Europe, are also subject to the general body of Irish laws and regulations including the provisions of the Companies Acts 1963-2009.

        Financial Resources.    Arch Re Europe is required to maintain reserves, particularly in respect of underwriting liabilities and a solvency margin as provided for in the European Communities (Reinsurance) Regulations, 2006, related guidance and the European Communities Insurance Accounts Regulations, 1996. Assets constituting statutory reserves must comply with certain principles including obligations to secure sufficiency, liquidity, security, quality, profitability and currency matching of investments. Statutory reserves must be actuarially certified annually.

        Reporting Requirements.    Like most Irish companies, Arch Re Europe must file and submit its annual audited financial statements in accordance with Irish generally accepted accounting principles and related reports to the Registrar of Companies ("Registrar") under the Companies Acts 1963-2009 together with an annual return of certain core corporate information. Changes to core corporate information during the year must also be notified to the Registrar. These requirements are in addition to the regulatory returns required to be filed annually with the CBOI.

        Restrictions on Payment of Dividends.    Under Irish company law, Arch Re Europe is permitted to make distributions only out of profits available for distribution. A company's profits available for distribution are its accumulated, realized profits, so far as not previously utilized by distribution or capitalization, less its accumulated, realized losses, so far as not previously written off in a reduction or reorganization of capital duly made. Further, the CBOI has powers to intervene if a dividend payment were to lead to a breach of regulatory capital requirements. See "Management's Discussion and

35


Table of Contents


Analysis of Financial Condition and Results of Operations—Financial Condition, Liquidity and Capital Resources—Liquidity and Capital Resources" and note 18, "Statutory Information," of the notes accompanying our financial statements.

        European Union Considerations.    As a reinsurance company authorized in Ireland, a Member State of the EU, Arch Re Europe's authorization is recognized throughout the EEA, subject only to any notification requirements imposed by other EU Member States. This authorization enables Arch Re Europe to provide reinsurance services, or to establish a branch, in any other Member State of the EEA. Although, in doing so, it may be subject to the laws of such Member States with respect to the conduct of its business in such Member State, company law registrations and other matters, it will remain subject to financial and operational supervision by the CBOI only. Arch Re Bermuda has a branch in Denmark, Arch Re Accident & Health ApS ("Arch Re Denmark"), an underwriting agency. Arch Re Denmark underwrites accident and health business for Arch Re Europe. Arch Re Europe also has a branch outside the EEA, Arch Reinsurance Europe Underwriting Limited, Dublin (Ireland), Zurich Branch ("Arch Re Europe Swiss Branch").

        In November 2006, Arch Re Bermuda opened Arch Reinsurance Ltd., Hamilton (Bermuda), European Branch Zurich ("Arch Re Bermuda Swiss Branch"). In December 2008, Arch Re Europe opened Arch Re Europe Swiss Branch as a branch office. Upon the opening of this branch in the fourth quarter of 2008, the operations of Arch Re Bermuda Swiss Branch were transferred to Arch Re Europe Swiss Branch. Arch Re Bermuda Swiss Branch was formally de-registered from the commercial register of the Canton of Zurich in early 2009. As both Arch Re Europe and Arch Re Bermuda are domiciled outside of Switzerland and their activities were and are limited to reinsurance, their respective branches in Switzerland were and are not required to be licensed by the Swiss insurance regulatory authorities.

        The single system established in the EU for regulation and supervision of the general insurance sector and its single passport regime had until 2007 applied only to direct insurance, and there was no common regulation of reinsurance in the EU. However, direct insurers established in a Member State of the EEA who were also authorized by their domestic regulatory authorities to transact reinsurance have had freedom to establish branches in and provide insurance services to all EEA states and that freedom has in practice been extended to their reinsurance activities. In December 2005, the EU published the Reinsurance Directive (the "Directive") as a first step in harmonization of reinsurance regulation in the single market. Member States of the EU and the EEA were required to implement the Directive by December 2007. Several Member States were late in the implementation of the Directive and, in a few cases, further legislation is still necessary. Pure reinsurers established in a Member State of the EU now have freedom to establish branches in and provide services to all EEA states under a regime comparable to that enjoyed by direct insurers and they will be subject to similar rules in relation to licensing and financial supervision.

        Arch Insurance Company Europe and AUAL, being established in the U.K. and authorized by the FSA, are able, subject to regulatory notifications and there being no objection from the FSA and the Member States concerned, to establish branches and provide insurance and reinsurance services in all EEA Member States. Arch Re Europe, being established in Ireland and authorized by the CBOI to write reinsurance, is able, subject to similar regulatory notifications and there being no objection from the CBOI and the Member States concerned, to establish branches and provide reinsurance services in those EEA states which have implemented the Directive. The Directive itself does not prohibit EEA insurers from obtaining reinsurance from reinsurers licensed outside the EEA, such as Arch Re Bermuda. As such, and subject to the specific rules in particular Member States, Arch Re Bermuda

36


Table of Contents


may do business from Bermuda with insurers in EEA Member States, but it may not directly operate its reinsurance business within the EEA. Unless agreement is reached between the European Commission and Bermuda to accord Bermuda based reinsurers with market access on the basis of the equivalent nature of Bermuda regulation, each individual EEA Member State may impose conditions on reinsurance provided by Bermuda based reinsurers which could restrict their future provision of reinsurance to the EEA Member State concerned. A number of EEA Member States currently restrict the extent to which Bermudian reinsurers may promote their services in those Member States and a few have certain prohibitions on the purchase of insurance from reinsurers not authorized in the EEA.


TAX MATTERS

        The following summary of the taxation of ACGL and the taxation of our shareholders is based upon current law and is for general information only. Legislative, judicial or administrative changes may be forthcoming that could affect this summary.

        The following legal discussion (including and subject to the matters and qualifications set forth in such summary) of certain tax considerations (a) under "—Taxation of ACGL—Bermuda" and "—Taxation of Shareholders—Bermuda Taxation" is based upon the advice of Conyers Dill & Pearman Limited, Hamilton, Bermuda and (b) under "—Taxation of ACGL—United States," "—Taxation of Shareholders—United States Taxation," "—Taxation of Our U.S. Shareholders" and "—United States Taxation of Non-U.S. Shareholders" is based upon the advice of Cahill Gordon & Reindel LLP, New York, New York (the advice of such firms does not include accounting matters, determinations or conclusions relating to the business or activities of ACGL). The summary is based upon current law and is for general information only. The tax treatment of a holder of our shares (common shares, series A non-cumulative preferred shares or series B non-cumulative preferred shares), or of a person treated as a holder of our shares for U.S. federal income, state, local or non-U.S. tax purposes, may vary depending on the holder's particular tax situation. Legislative, judicial or administrative changes or interpretations may be forthcoming that could be retroactive and could affect the tax consequences to us or to holders of our shares.

Taxation of ACGL

        Under current Bermuda law, ACGL is not subject to tax on income or capital gains. ACGL has obtained from the Minister of Finance under the Exempted Undertakings Tax Protection Act 1966 an assurance that, in the event that Bermuda enacts legislation imposing tax computed on profits, income, any capital asset, gain or appreciation, or any tax in the nature of estate duty or inheritance, the imposition of any such tax shall not be applicable to ACGL or to any of our operations or our shares, debentures or other obligations until March 28, 2016. We could be subject to taxes in Bermuda after that date. This assurance will be subject to the proviso that it is not to be construed so as to prevent the application of any tax or duty to such persons as are ordinarily resident in Bermuda (we are not so currently affected) or to prevent the application of any tax payable in accordance with the provisions of the Land Tax Act 1967 or otherwise payable in relation to any property leased to us or our insurance subsidiary. We pay annual Bermuda government fees, and our Bermuda insurance and reinsurance subsidiary pays annual insurance license fees. In addition, all entities employing individuals in Bermuda are required to pay a payroll tax and other sundry taxes payable, directly or indirectly, to the Bermuda government.

        ACGL and its non-U.S. subsidiaries intend to conduct their operations in a manner that will not cause them to be treated as engaged in a trade or business in the United States and, therefore, will not

37


Table of Contents

be required to pay U.S. federal income taxes (other than U.S. excise taxes on insurance and reinsurance premium and withholding taxes on dividends and certain other U.S. source investment income). However, because definitive identification of activities which constitute being engaged in a trade or business in the U.S. is not provided by the Internal Revenue Code of 1986, as amended (the "Code"), or regulations or court decisions, there can be no assurance that the U.S. Internal Revenue Service will not contend successfully that ACGL or its non-U.S. subsidiaries are or have been engaged in a trade or business in the United States. A foreign corporation deemed to be so engaged would be subject to U.S. income tax, as well as the branch profits tax, on its income, which is treated as effectively connected with the conduct of that trade or business unless the corporation is entitled to relief under the permanent establishment provisions of a tax treaty. Such income tax, if imposed, would be based on effectively connected income computed in a manner generally analogous to that applied to the income of a domestic corporation, except that deductions and credits generally are not permitted unless the foreign corporation has timely filed a U.S. federal income tax return in accordance with applicable regulations. Penalties may be assessed for failure to file tax returns. The 30% branch profits tax is imposed on net income after subtracting the regular corporate tax and making certain other adjustments.

        Under the income tax treaty between Bermuda and the United States (the "Treaty"), ACGL's Bermuda insurance subsidiaries will be subject to U.S. income tax on any insurance premium income found to be effectively connected with a U.S. trade or business only if that trade or business is conducted through a permanent establishment in the United States. No regulations interpreting the Treaty have been issued. While there can be no assurances, ACGL does not believe that any of its Bermuda insurance subsidiaries has a permanent establishment in the United States. Such subsidiaries would not be entitled to the benefits of the Treaty if (i) less than 50% of ACGL's shares were beneficially owned, directly or indirectly, by Bermuda residents or U.S. citizens or residents, or (ii) any such subsidiary's income were used in substantial part to make disproportionate distributions to, or to meet certain liabilities to, persons who are not Bermuda residents or U.S. citizens or residents. While there can be no assurances, ACGL believes that its Bermuda insurance subsidiaries are eligible for Treaty benefits.

        The Treaty clearly applies to premium income, but may be construed as not protecting investment income. If ACGL's Bermuda insurance subsidiaries were considered to be engaged in a U.S. trade or business and were entitled to the benefits of the Treaty in general, but the Treaty were not found to protect investment income, a portion of such subsidiaries' investment income could be subject to U.S. federal income tax.

        Non-U.S. insurance companies carrying on an insurance business within the United States have a certain minimum amount of effectively connected net investment income, determined in accordance with a formula that depends, in part, on the amount of U.S. risk insured or reinsured by such companies. If any of ACGL's non-U.S. insurance subsidiaries is considered to be engaged in the conduct of an insurance business in the United States, a significant portion of such company's investment income could be subject to U.S. income tax.

        Non-U.S. corporations not engaged in a trade or business in the United States are nonetheless subject to U.S. income tax on certain "fixed or determinable annual or periodic gains, profits and income" derived from sources within the United States as enumerated in Section 881(a) of the Code (such as dividends and certain interest on investments), subject to exemption under the Code or reduction by applicable treaties.

        The United States also imposes an excise tax on insurance and reinsurance premiums paid to non-U.S. insurers or reinsurers with respect to risks located in the United States. The rates of tax, unless reduced by an applicable U.S. tax treaty, are 4% for non-life insurance premiums and 1% for life insurance and all reinsurance premiums.

38


Table of Contents

        Our U.K. subsidiaries are companies incorporated in the U.K. and are therefore resident in the U.K. for corporation tax purposes and will be subject to U.K. corporate tax on their respective worldwide profits. The current rate of U.K. corporation tax is 28% on profits, but with progressive decreases to take effect on April 1, 2011 through 2015 from 27% to 24%.

        In January 2005, Arch Insurance received its federal license to commence underwriting in Canada and began writing business in the first quarter of 2005 through its branch operation. The branch operation is taxed on net business income earned in Canada. The general federal corporate income tax rate in Canada is currently 16.5%. The general federal corporate income tax rate in Canada is legislated to be reduced to 15% in 2012. Provincial and territorial corporate income tax rates are added to the general federal corporate income tax rate and generally vary between 10% and 16%. Canadian income taxes are also creditable to our U.S. operations.

        Arch Re Europe was licensed and authorized by the CBOI as a non-life reinsurer in October 2008 and as a life reinsurer in November 2009. Arch Re Europe is incorporated and resident in Ireland for corporation tax purposes and will be subject to Irish corporate tax on its worldwide profits, including profits of its Swiss branch operations. Any Swiss tax payable will be creditable against Arch Re Europe's Irish corporate tax liability. The current rate of Irish corporation tax applicable to such profits is 12.5%.

        Arch Re Bermuda Swiss Branch was established as a branch office of Arch Re Bermuda, but was de-registered from the commercial register of the Canton of Zurich in the first quarter of 2009. Its operations were transferred to Arch Re Europe's Swiss branch in the fourth quarter of 2008. Arch Re Bermuda Swiss Branch was, and Arch Re Europe Swiss Branch is, subject to Swiss corporation tax on the profit which is allocated to the branch. The effective tax rate is approximately 21.17% for Swiss federal, cantonal and communal corporation taxes on the profit. The effective tax for the annual cantonal and communal capital taxes on the equity which is allocated to Arch Re Bermuda is approximately 0.172%.

        Arch Re Denmark, established as a subsidiary of Arch Re Bermuda, is subject to Danish corporation taxes on its profits at a rate of 25%.

Taxation of Shareholders

        The following summary sets forth certain United States federal income tax considerations related to the purchase, ownership and disposition of our common shares and our series A non-cumulative preferred shares and our series B non-cumulative preferred shares (collectively referred to as the "preferred shares"). Unless otherwise stated, this summary deals only with shareholders ("U.S. Holders") that are United States Persons (as defined below) who hold their common shares and preferred shares as capital assets and as beneficial owners. The following discussion is only a general summary of the United States federal income tax matters described herein and does not purport to address all of the United States federal income tax consequences that may be relevant to a particular shareholder in light of such shareholder's specific circumstances. In addition, the following summary does not describe the United States federal income tax consequences that may be relevant to certain

39


Table of Contents


types of shareholders, such as banks, insurance companies, regulated investment companies, real estate investment trusts, financial asset securitization investment trusts, dealers in securities or traders that adopt a mark-to-market method of tax accounting, tax exempt organizations, expatriates or persons who hold the common shares or preferred shares as part of a hedging or conversion transaction or as part of a straddle, who may be subject to special rules or treatment under the Code. This discussion is based upon the Code, the Treasury regulations promulgated thereunder and any relevant administrative rulings or pronouncements or judicial decisions, all as in effect on the date of this annual report and as currently interpreted, and does not take into account possible changes in such tax laws or interpretations thereof, which may apply retroactively. This discussion does not include any description of the tax laws of any state or local governments within the United States, or of any foreign government, that may be applicable to our common shares or preferred shares or the shareholders. Persons considering making an investment in the common shares or preferred shares should consult their own tax advisors concerning the application of the United States federal tax laws to their particular situations as well as any tax consequences arising under the laws of any state, local or foreign taxing jurisdiction prior to making such investment.

        If a partnership holds our common shares or preferred shares, the tax treatment of a partner will generally depend upon the status of the partner and the activities of the partnership. If you are a partner of a partnership holding our common shares or preferred shares, you should consult your tax advisor.

        For purposes of this discussion, the term "United States Person" means:

        Currently, there is no Bermuda withholding tax on dividends paid by us.

        Taxation of Dividends.    The preferred shares should be properly classified as equity rather than debt for U.S. federal income tax purposes. Subject to the discussions below relating to the potential application of the CFC, "related person insurance income" ("RPII") and PFIC rules, as defined below, cash distributions, if any, made with respect to our common shares or preferred shares will constitute dividends for U.S. federal income tax purposes to the extent paid out of our current or accumulated earnings and profits (as computed using U.S. tax principles). If a U.S. Holder of our common shares or our preferred shares is an individual or other non-corporate holder, dividends paid, if any, to that holder in taxable years beginning before January 1, 2013 that constitute qualified dividend income will be taxable at the rate applicable for long-term capital gains (generally up to 15%), provided that such person meets a holding period requirement. Generally in order to meet the holding period

40


Table of Contents

requirement, the United States Person must hold the common shares for more than 60 days during the 121-day period beginning 60 days before the ex-dividend date and must hold preferred shares for more than 90 days during the 181-day period beginning 90 days before the ex-dividend date. Dividends paid, if any, with respect to common shares or preferred shares generally will be qualified dividend income, provided the common shares or preferred shares are readily tradable on an established securities market in the U.S. in the year in which the shareholder receives the dividend (which should be the case for shares that are listed on the NASDAQ Stock Market or the New York Stock Exchange) and ACGL is not considered to be a passive foreign investment company in either the year of the distribution or the preceding taxable year. No assurance can be given that the preferred shares will be considered readily tradable on an established securities market in the United States. See "—Taxation of Our U.S. Shareholders" below. After December 31, 2012, qualified dividend income will no longer be taxed at the rate applicable for long-term capital gains unless Congress enacts legislation providing otherwise.

        For taxable years beginning after December 31, 2012, a U.S. Holder that is an individual, estate or a trust that does not fall into a special class of trusts that is exempt from such tax, will be subject to a 3.8% tax on the lesser of (1) the U.S. Holder's "net investment income" for the relevant taxable year and (2) the excess of the U.S. Holder's modified adjusted gross income for the taxable year over a certain threshold (which in the case of individual will be between $125,000 and $250,000, depending on the individual's circumstances). A U.S. Holder's net investment income will generally include its dividend income and its net gains from the disposition of our common shares and preferred shares, unless such dividend income or net gains are derived in the ordinary course of the conduct of a trade or business (other than a trade or business that consists of certain passive or trading activities).

        Distributions with respect to the common shares and the preferred shares will not be eligible for the dividends-received deduction allowed to U.S. corporations under the Code. To the extent distributions on our common shares and preferred shares exceed our earnings and profits, they will be treated first as a return of the U.S. Holder's basis in our common shares and our preferred shares to the extent thereof, and then as gain from the sale of a capital asset.

        Sale, Exchange or Other Disposition.    Subject to the discussions below relating to the potential application of the CFC, RPII and PFIC rules, holders of common shares and preferred shares generally will recognize capital gain or loss for U.S. federal income tax purposes on the sale, exchange or disposition of common shares or preferred shares, as applicable.

        Redemption of Preferred Shares.    A redemption of the preferred shares will be treated under section 302 of the Code as a dividend if we have sufficient earnings and profits, unless the redemption satisfies one of the tests set forth in section 302(b) of the Code enabling the redemption to be treated as a sale or exchange, subject to the discussion herein relating to the potential application of the CFC, RPII and PFIC rules. Under the relevant Code section 302(b) tests, the redemption should be treated as a sale or exchange only if it (1) is substantially disproportionate, (2) constitutes a complete termination of the holder's stock interest in us or (3) is "not essentially equivalent to a dividend." In determining whether any of these tests are met, shares considered to be owned by the holder by reason of certain constructive ownership rules set forth in the Code, as well as shares actually owned, must generally be taken into account. It may be more difficult for a United States Person who owns, actually or constructively by operation of the attribution rules, any of our other shares to satisfy any of the above requirements. The determination as to whether any of the alternative tests of section 302(b) of the Code is satisfied with respect to a particular holder of the preference shares depends on the facts and circumstances as of the time the determination is made.

41


Table of Contents

Taxation of Our U.S. Shareholders

        Under our bye-laws, the 9.9% voting restriction applicable to the Controlled Shares of a U.S. Person (as defined in our bye-laws) generally does not apply to certain of our investors. Depending upon the ownership of these investors and as a result of certain attribution rules, we and our foreign subsidiaries could be controlled foreign corporations ("CFCs"). That status as a CFC would not cause us or any of our subsidiaries to be subject to U.S. federal income tax. Such status also would have no adverse U.S. federal income tax consequences for any U.S. Holder that is considered to own less than 10% of the total combined voting power of our shares or those of our foreign subsidiaries. Only U.S. Holders that are considered to own 10% or more of the total combined voting power of our shares or those of our foreign subsidiaries (taking into account shares actually owned by such U.S. Holder as well as shares attributed to such U.S. Holder under the Code or the regulations thereunder) (a "10% U.S. Voting Shareholder") would be affected by our status as a CFC. The preferred shares generally should not be considered voting stock for purposes of determining whether a United States Person would be a "10% U.S. Voting Shareholder." The shares may, however, become entitled to vote (as a class along with any other class of preferred shares of ACGL then outstanding) for the election of two additional members of the board of directors of ACGL if ACGL does not declare and pay dividends for the equivalent of six or more dividend periods. In such case, the preferred shares should be treated as voting stock for as long as such voting rights continue. Our bye-laws are intended to prevent any U.S. Holder from being considered a 10% U.S. Voting Shareholder by limiting the votes conferred by the Controlled Shares (as defined in our bye-laws) of any U.S. Person to 9.9% of the total voting power of all our shares entitled to vote. However, because under our bye-laws certain funds associated with Warburg Pincus and Hellman & Friedman generally are entitled to vote their directly owned common shares in full, a U.S. Holder that is attributed (under the Code or the regulations thereunder) common shares owned by such funds may be considered a 10% U.S. Voting Shareholder. If you are a direct or indirect investor in a fund associated with Warburg Pincus or Hellman & Friedman, additional common shares could be attributed to you for purposes of determining whether you are considered to be a 10% U.S. Voting Shareholder. If we are a CFC, a U.S. Holder that is considered a 10% U.S. Voting Shareholder would be subject to current U.S. federal income taxation (at ordinary income tax rates) to the extent of all or a portion of the undistributed earnings and profits of ACGL and our subsidiaries attributable to "subpart F income" (including certain insurance premium income and investment income) and may be taxable at ordinary income tax rates on any gain realized on a sale or other disposition (including by way of repurchase or liquidation) of our shares to the extent of the current and accumulated earnings and profits attributable to such shares.

        While our bye-laws are intended to prevent any member from being considered a 10% U.S. Voting Shareholder (except as described above), there can be no assurance that a U.S. Holder will not be treated as a 10% U.S. Voting Shareholder, by attribution or otherwise, under the Code or any applicable regulations thereunder. See "Risk Factors—Risks Relating to Taxation—U.S. persons who hold our common shares or preferred shares may be subject to U.S. income taxation at ordinary income rates on our undistributed earnings and profits."

        Generally, we do not expect the gross RPII (related person insurance income) of any of our non-U.S. subsidiaries to equal or exceed 20% of its gross insurance income in any taxable year for the foreseeable future and do not expect the direct or indirect insureds (and related persons) of any such subsidiary to directly or indirectly own 20% or more of either the voting power or value of our stock. Consequently, we do not expect any U.S. person owning common shares or preferred shares to be required to include in gross income for U.S. federal income tax purposes RPII income, but there can be no assurance that this will be the case.

42


Table of Contents

        Section 953(c)(7) of the Code generally provides that Section 1248 of the Code (which generally would require a U.S. Holder to treat certain gains attributable to the sale, exchange or disposition of common shares or preferred shares as a dividend) will apply to the sale or exchange by a U.S. shareholder of shares in a foreign corporation that is characterized as a CFC under the RPII rules if the foreign corporation would be taxed as an insurance company if it were a domestic corporation, regardless of whether the U.S. shareholder is a 10% U.S. Voting Shareholder or whether the corporation qualifies for either the RPII 20% ownership exception or the RPII 20% gross income exception. Although existing Treasury Department regulations do not address the question, proposed Treasury regulations issued in April 1991 create some ambiguity as to whether Section 1248 and the requirement to file Form 5471 would apply when the foreign corporation has a foreign insurance subsidiary that is a CFC for RPII purposes and that would be taxed as an insurance company if it were a domestic corporation. We believe that Section 1248 and the requirement to file Form 5471 will not apply to a less than 10% U.S. Shareholder because ACGL is not directly engaged in the insurance business. There can be no assurance, however, that the U.S. Internal Revenue Service will interpret the proposed regulations in this manner or that the Treasury Department will not take the position that Section 1248 and the requirement to file Form 5471 will apply to dispositions of our common shares or our preferred shares.

        If the U.S. Internal Revenue Service or U.S. Treasury Department were to make Section 1248 and the Form 5471 filing requirement applicable to the sale of our shares, we would notify shareholders that Section 1248 of the Code and the requirement to file Form 5471 will apply to dispositions of our shares. Thereafter, we would send a notice after the end of each calendar year to all persons who were shareholders during the year notifying them that Section 1248 and the requirement to file Form 5471 apply to dispositions of our shares by U.S. Holders. We would attach to this notice a copy of Form 5471 completed with all our information and instructions for completing the shareholder information.

        Tax-exempt entities may be required to treat certain Subpart F insurance income, including RPII, that is includible in income by the tax-exempt entity as unrelated business taxable income. Prospective investors that are tax exempt entities are urged to consult their tax advisors as to the potential impact of the unrelated business taxable income provisions of the Code.

        Sections 1291 through 1298 of the Code contain special rules applicable with respect to foreign corporations that are "passive foreign investment companies" ("PFICs"). In general, a foreign corporation will be a PFIC if 75% or more of its income constitutes "passive income" or 50% or more of its assets produce passive income. If we were to be characterized as a PFIC, U.S. Holders would be subject to a penalty tax at the time of their sale of (or receipt of an "excess distribution" with respect to) their common shares or preferred shares. In general, a shareholder receives an "excess distribution" if the amount of the distribution is more than 125% of the average distribution with respect to the shares during the three preceding taxable years (or shorter period during which the taxpayer held the stock). In general, the penalty tax is equivalent to an interest charge on taxes that are deemed due during the period the shareholder owned the shares, computed by assuming that the excess distribution or gain (in the case of a sale) with respect to the shares was taxable in equal portions throughout the holder's period of ownership. The interest charge is equal to the applicable rate imposed on underpayments of U.S. federal income tax for such period. A U.S. shareholder may avoid some of the adverse tax consequences of owning shares in a PFIC by making a qualified electing fund ("QEF")

43


Table of Contents

election. A QEF election is revocable only with the consent of the IRS and has the following consequences to a shareholder:

        The PFIC statutory provisions contain an express exception for income "derived in the active conduct of an insurance business by a corporation which is predominantly engaged in an insurance business..." This exception is intended to ensure that income derived by a bona fide insurance company is not treated as passive income, except to the extent such income is attributable to financial reserves in excess of the reasonable needs of the insurance business. The PFIC statutory provisions contain a look-through rule that states that, for purposes of determining whether a foreign corporation is a PFIC, such foreign corporation shall be treated as if it "received directly its proportionate share of the income" and as if it "held its proportionate share of the assets" of any other corporation in which it owns at least 25% of the stock. We believe that we are not a PFIC, and we will use reasonable best efforts to cause us and each of our non-U.S. insurance subsidiaries not to constitute a PFIC.

        No regulations interpreting the substantive PFIC provisions have yet been issued. Each U.S. Holder should consult his tax advisor as to the effects of these rules.

United States Taxation of Non-U.S. Shareholders

        Cash distributions, if any, made with respect to common shares or preferred shares held by shareholders who are not United States Persons ("Non-U.S. holders") generally will not be subject to United States withholding tax.

        Non-U.S. holders of common shares or preferred shares generally will not be subject to U.S. federal income tax with respect to gain realized upon the sale, exchange or other disposition of such shares unless such gain is effectively connected with a U.S. trade or business of the Non-U.S. holder in the United States or such person is present in the United States for 183 days or more in the taxable year the gain is realized and certain other requirements are satisfied.

        Non-U.S. holders of common shares or preferred shares will not be subject to U.S. information reporting or backup withholding with respect to dispositions of common shares effected through a non-U.S. office of a broker, unless the broker has certain connections to the United States or is a United States person. No U.S. backup withholding will apply to payments of dividends, if any, on our common shares or our preferred shares.

        Shareholders should consult their own tax advisors with respect to the applicability to them of the tax laws of other jurisdictions.

44


Table of Contents

ITEM 1A.    RISK FACTORS

        Set forth below are risk factors relating to our business. You should also refer to the other information provided in this report, including our "Management's Discussion and Analysis of Financial Condition and Results of Operations" and our accompanying consolidated financial statements, as well as the information under the heading "Cautionary Note Regarding Forward-Looking Statements."

Risks Relating to Our Industry

We operate in a highly competitive environment, and we may not be able to compete successfully in our industry.

        The insurance and reinsurance industry is highly competitive. We compete with major U.S. and non-U.S. insurers and reinsurers, many of which have greater financial, marketing and management resources than we do, as well as other potential providers of capital willing to assume insurance and/or reinsurance risk. We also compete with new companies that continue to be formed to enter the insurance and reinsurance markets. In our insurance business, we compete with insurers that provide specialty property and casualty lines of insurance, including ACE Limited, Allied World Assurance Company, Ltd., Alterra Capital Holdings Limited, Argo Insurance Group, AXIS Capital Holdings Limited, Berkshire Hathaway, Inc., Chartis Inc., Chubb Corporation, Endurance Specialty Holdings Ltd., The Hartford Financial Services Group, Inc., HCC Insurance Holdings, Inc., Ironshore Inc., Lloyd's, The Travelers Companies, Validus Holdings Ltd, W.R. Berkley Corp., XL Capital Ltd. and Zurich Insurance Group. In our reinsurance business, we compete with reinsurers that provide property and casualty lines of reinsurance, including ACE Limited, Alterra Capital Holdings Limited, Argo International Holdings, Ltd., AXIS Capital Holdings Limited, Berkshire Hathaway, Inc., Endurance Specialty Holdings Ltd., Everest Re Group Ltd., Hannover Rückversicherung AG, Lloyd's, Montpelier Re Holdings Ltd., Munich Re Group, PartnerRe Ltd., Platinum Underwriters Holdings, Ltd., RenaissanceRe Holdings Ltd., Swiss Reinsurance Company, Transatlantic Holdings, Inc., Validus Holdings Ltd and XL Capital Ltd. We do not believe that we have a significant market share in any of our markets.

        Financial institutions and other capital markets participants also offer alternative products and services similar to our own or alternative products that compete with insurance and reinsurance products. In addition, we may not be aware of other companies that may be planning to enter the segments of the insurance and reinsurance market in which we operate.

        Our competitive position is based on many factors, including our perceived overall financial strength, ratings assigned by independent rating agencies, geographic scope of business, client and broker relationships, premiums charged, contract terms and conditions, products and services offered (including the ability to design customized programs), speed of claims payment, reputation, experience and qualifications of employees and local presence. We may not be successful in competing with others on any of these bases, and the intensity of competition in our industry may erode profitability and result in less favorable policy terms and conditions for insurance and reinsurance companies generally, including us.

The insurance and reinsurance industry is highly cyclical, and we expect to continue to experience periods characterized by excess underwriting capacity and unfavorable premium rates.

        Historically, insurers and reinsurers have experienced significant fluctuations in operating results due to competition, frequency of occurrence or severity of catastrophic events, levels of capacity, general economic conditions, changes in equity, debt and other investment markets, changes in legislation, case law and prevailing concepts of liability and other factors. In particular, demand for reinsurance is influenced significantly by the underwriting results of primary insurers and prevailing general economic conditions. The supply of insurance and reinsurance is related to prevailing prices

45


Table of Contents


and levels of surplus capacity that, in turn, may fluctuate in response to changes in rates of return being realized in the insurance and reinsurance industry on both underwriting and investment sides. As a result, the insurance and reinsurance business historically has been a cyclical industry characterized by periods of intense price competition due to excessive underwriting capacity as well as periods when shortages of capacity permitted favorable premium levels and changes in terms and conditions. The supply of insurance and reinsurance has increased over the past several years and may increase further, either as a result of capital provided by new entrants or by the commitment of additional capital by existing insurers or reinsurers. Continued increases in the supply of insurance and reinsurance may have consequences for us, including fewer contracts written, lower premium rates, increased expenses for customer acquisition and retention, and less favorable policy terms and conditions.

We could face unanticipated losses from war, terrorism and political instability, and these or other unanticipated losses could have a material adverse effect on our financial condition and results of operations.

        We have substantial exposure to unexpected, large losses resulting from future man-made catastrophic events, such as acts of war, acts of terrorism and political instability. These risks are inherently unpredictable. It is difficult to predict the timing of such events with statistical certainty or estimate the amount of loss any given occurrence will generate. In certain instances, we specifically insure and reinsure risks resulting from acts of terrorism. Even in cases where we attempt to exclude losses from terrorism and certain other similar risks from some coverages written by us, we may not be successful in doing so. Moreover, irrespective of the clarity and inclusiveness of policy language, there can be no assurance that a court or arbitration panel will not limit enforceability of policy language or otherwise issue a ruling adverse to us. Accordingly, while we believe our reinsurance programs, together with the coverage provided under TRIPRA, are sufficient to reasonably limit our net losses relating to potential future terrorist attacks, we can offer no assurance that our available capital will be adequate to cover losses when they materialize. To the extent that an act of terrorism is certified by the Secretary of the Treasury, our U.S. insurance operations may be covered under TRIPRA for up to 85% of its losses for 2010 and future years, in each case subject to a mandatory deductible of 20% for 2010 through 2014. If an act (or acts) of terrorism result in covered losses exceeding the $100 billion annual limit, insurers with losses exceeding their deductibles will not be responsible for additional losses. It is not possible to completely eliminate our exposure to unforecasted or unpredictable events, and to the extent that losses from such risks occur, our financial condition and results of operations could be materially adversely affected.

The insurance and reinsurance industry is subject to regulatory and legislative initiatives or proposals from time to time which could adversely affect our business.

        From time to time, various regulatory and legislative changes have been proposed in the insurance and reinsurance industry. Among the proposals that have in the past been or are at present being considered are the possible introduction of federal regulation in addition to, or in lieu of, the current system of state regulation of insurers.

        The extreme turmoil in the financial markets has increased the likelihood of changes in the way the financial services industry is regulated. Governmental authorities in the U.S. and worldwide have become increasingly interested in potential risks posed by the insurance industry as a whole, and to commercial and financial systems in general. While we cannot predict the exact nature, timing or scope of possible governmental initiatives, there may be increased regulatory intervention in our industry in the future. For example, the U.S. federal government has increased its scrutiny of the insurance regulatory framework in recent years, and some state legislators have considered or enacted laws that will alter and likely increase state regulation of insurance and reinsurance companies and holding companies. Moreover, the NAIC, which is an association of the insurance commissioners of all 50 states and the District of Columbia and state regulators, regularly reexamine existing laws and

46


Table of Contents


regulations. There are also a variety of proposals being considered by various state legislatures. Solvency II, the EU regulatory regime which was enacted in November 2009, imposes new solvency and governance requirements across all EU Member States and is expected to be implemented in January 2013. Solvency II imposes significant requirements for our EU-based regulated companies which require substantial documentation and implementation effort. Regulators in Bermuda and other jurisdictions in which we operate are also considering various proposals for financial and regulatory reform. The BMA has implemented and is expected to propose additional requirements on the companies it regulates, such as Arch Re Bermuda, as part of its efforts to achieve equivalence under Solvency II. The future impact of such initiatives, if any, on our results of operations or our financial condition cannot be determined at this time. We are unable to predict whether any of these laws and regulations will be adopted, the form in which any such laws and regulations would be adopted, or the effect, if any, these developments would have on our operations and financial condition.

Claims for catastrophic events could cause large losses and substantial volatility in our results of operations, and, as a result, the value of our securities, including our common shares and preferred shares, may fluctuate widely, and could have a material adverse effect on our financial position and results of operations.

        We have large aggregate exposures to natural and man-made catastrophic events. Catastrophes can be caused by various events, including hurricanes, floods, windstorms, earthquakes, hailstorms, tornados, explosions, severe winter weather, fires, droughts and other natural disasters. Catastrophes can also cause losses in non-property business such as workers' compensation or general liability. In addition to the nature of the property business, we believe that economic and geographic trends affecting insured property, including inflation, property value appreciation and geographic concentration tend to generally increase the size of losses from catastrophic events over time. Our actual losses from catastrophic events which may occur may vary materially from our current estimates due to the inherent uncertainties in making such determinations resulting from several factors, including the potential inaccuracies and inadequacies in the data provided by clients, brokers and ceding companies, the modeling techniques and the application of such techniques, the contingent nature of business interruption exposures, the effects of any resultant demand surge on claims activity and attendant coverage issues.

        In addition, over the past several years, changing weather patterns and climatic conditions, such as global warming, have added to the unpredictability and frequency of natural disasters in certain parts of the world and created additional uncertainty as to future trends and exposures. Although the loss experience of catastrophe insurers and reinsurers has historically been characterized as low frequency, there is a growing consensus today that climate change increases the frequency and severity of extreme weather events and, in recent years, the frequency of major catastrophes appears to have increased. Claims for catastrophic events could expose us to large losses and cause substantial volatility in our results of operations, which could cause the value of our securities, including our common shares and preferred shares, to fluctuate widely.

Underwriting claims and reserving for losses are based on probabilities and related modeling, which are subject to inherent uncertainties.

        Our success is dependent upon our ability to assess accurately the risks associated with the businesses that we insure and reinsure. We establish reserves for losses and loss adjustment expenses which represent estimates involving actuarial and statistical projections, at a given point in time, of our expectations of the ultimate settlement and administration costs of losses incurred. We utilize actuarial models as well as available historical insurance industry loss ratio experience and loss development patterns to assist in the establishment of loss reserves. Actual losses and loss adjustment expenses paid will deviate, perhaps substantially, from the reserve estimates reflected in our financial statements.

47


Table of Contents

        If our loss reserves are determined to be inadequate, we will be required to increase loss reserves at the time of such determination with a corresponding reduction in our net income in the period in which the deficiency becomes known. It is possible that claims in respect of events that have occurred could exceed our claim reserves and have a material adverse effect on our results of operations, in a particular period, or our financial condition in general. As a compounding factor, although most insurance contracts have policy limits, the nature of property and casualty insurance and reinsurance is such that losses can exceed policy limits for a variety of reasons and could significantly exceed the premiums received on the underlying policies, thereby further adversely affecting our financial condition.

        As of December 31, 2010, our reserves for unpaid losses and loss adjustment expenses, net of unpaid losses and loss adjustment expenses recoverable, were approximately $6.40 billion. Such reserves were established in accordance with applicable insurance laws and GAAP. Loss reserves are inherently subject to uncertainty. In establishing the reserves for losses and loss adjustment expenses, we have made various assumptions relating to the pricing of our reinsurance contracts and insurance policies and have also considered available historical industry experience and current industry conditions. Any estimates and assumptions made as part of the reserving process could prove to be inaccurate due to several factors, including the fact that relatively limited historical information has been reported to us through December 31, 2010.

The failure of any of the loss limitation methods we employ could have a material adverse effect on our financial condition or results of operations.

        We have large aggregate exposures to natural and man-made catastrophic events. Catastrophes can be caused by various events, including hurricanes, floods, windstorms, earthquakes, hailstorms, tornados, explosions, severe winter weather, fires, droughts and other natural disasters. Catastrophes can also cause losses in non-property business such as workers' compensation or general liability. In addition to the nature of property business, we believe that economic and geographic trends affecting insured property, including inflation, property value appreciation and geographic concentration, tend to generally increase the size of losses from catastrophic events over time.

        We have substantial exposure to unexpected, large losses resulting from future man-made catastrophic events, such as acts of war, acts of terrorism and political instability. These risks are inherently unpredictable. It is difficult to predict the timing of such events with statistical certainty or estimate the amount of loss any given occurrence will generate. It is not possible to completely eliminate our exposure to unforecasted or unpredictable events and, to the extent that losses from such risks occur, our financial condition and results of operations could be materially adversely affected. Therefore, claims for natural and man-made catastrophic events could expose us to large losses and cause substantial volatility in our results of operations, which could cause the value of our common shares to fluctuate widely. In certain instances, we specifically insure and reinsure risks resulting from terrorism. Even in cases where we attempt to exclude losses from terrorism and certain other similar risks from some coverages written by us, we may not be successful in doing so. Moreover, irrespective of the clarity and inclusiveness of policy language, there can be no assurance that a court or arbitration panel will limit enforceability of policy language or otherwise issue a ruling adverse to us.

        We seek to limit our loss exposure by writing a number of our reinsurance contracts on an excess of loss basis, adhering to maximum limitations on reinsurance written in defined geographical zones, limiting program size for each client and prudent underwriting of each program written. In the case of proportional treaties, we may seek per occurrence limitations or loss ratio caps to limit the impact of losses from any one or series of events. In our insurance operations, we seek to limit our exposure through the purchase of reinsurance. We cannot be certain that any of these loss limitation methods will be effective. We also seek to limit our loss exposure by geographic diversification. Geographic zone limitations involve significant underwriting judgments, including the determination of the area of the

48


Table of Contents


zones and the inclusion of a particular policy within a particular zone's limits. There can be no assurance that various provisions of our policies, such as limitations or exclusions from coverage or choice of forum, will be enforceable in the manner we intend. Disputes relating to coverage and choice of legal forum may also arise. Underwriting is inherently a matter of judgment, involving important assumptions about matters that are inherently unpredictable and beyond our control, and for which historical experience and probability analysis may not provide sufficient guidance. One or more catastrophic or other events could result in claims that substantially exceed our expectations, which could have a material adverse effect on our financial condition or our results of operations, possibly to the extent of eliminating our shareholders' equity.

        For our natural catastrophe exposed business, we seek to limit the amount of exposure we will assume from any one insured or reinsured and the amount of the exposure to catastrophe losses from a single event in any geographic zone. We monitor our exposure to catastrophic events, including earthquake and wind, and periodically reevaluate the estimated probable maximum pre-tax loss for such exposures. Our estimated probable maximum pre-tax loss is determined through the use of modeling techniques, but such estimate does not represent our total potential loss for such exposures. Our models employ both proprietary and vendor-based systems and include cross-line correlations for property, marine, offshore energy, aviation, workers compensation and personal accident. We seek to limit the probable maximum pre-tax loss to a specific level for severe catastrophic events. Currently, we seek to limit our 1-in-250 year return period net probable maximum loss from a severe catastrophic event in any geographic zone to approximately 25% of total shareholders' equity. We reserve the right to change this threshold at any time. Net probable maximum loss estimates are net of expected reinsurance recoveries, before income tax and before excess reinsurance reinstatement premiums. Loss estimates are reflective of the zone indicated and not the entire portfolio. Since hurricanes and windstorms can affect more than one zone and make multiple landfalls, our loss estimates include clash estimates from other zones. Our loss estimates do not represent our maximum exposures and it is highly likely that our actual incurred losses would vary materially from the modeled estimates. There can be no assurances that we will not suffer pre-tax losses greater than 25% of our total shareholders' equity from one or more catastrophic events due to several factors, including the inherent uncertainties in estimating the frequency and severity of such events and the margin of error in making such determinations resulting from potential inaccuracies and inadequacies in the data provided by clients and brokers, the modeling techniques and the application of such techniques or as a result of a decision to change the percentage of shareholders' equity exposed to a single catastrophic event. Catastrophe modeling is a relatively new discipline that utilizes a mix of historical data, scientific theory and mathematical methods. We believe that there is considerable uncertainty in the data and parameter inputs for insurance industry catastrophe models. In that regard, there is no universal standard in the preparation of insured data for use in the models and the running of modeling software. In our view, the accuracy of the models depends heavily on the availability of detailed insured loss data from actual recent large catastrophes. Due to the limited number of events, there is significant potential for substantial differences between the modeled loss estimate and actual company experience for a single large catastrophic event. This potential difference could be even greater for perils with less modeled annual frequency, such as U.S. earthquake, or less modeled annual severity, such as European windstorm. We are also reliant upon third-party estimates of industry insured exposures and there is significant variation possible around the relationship between our loss and that of the industry following a catastrophic event. In addition, actual losses may increase if our reinsurers fail to meet their obligations to us or the reinsurance protections purchased by us are exhausted or are otherwise unavailable. See "Risk Factors—Risk Relating to Our Industry" and "Management's Discussion and Analysis of Financial Condition and Results of Operations—Natural and Man-Made Catastrophic Events." Depending on business opportunities and the mix of business that may comprise our insurance and reinsurance portfolio, we may seek to adjust our self-imposed limitations on probable maximum pre-tax loss for catastrophe exposed business.

49


Table of Contents

The risk associated with reinsurance underwriting could adversely affect us.

        Like other reinsurers, our reinsurance group does not separately evaluate each of the individual risks assumed under reinsurance treaties. Therefore, we are largely dependent on the original underwriting decisions made by ceding companies. We are subject to the risk that the ceding companies may not have adequately evaluated the risks to be reinsured and that the premiums ceded may not adequately compensate us for the risks we assume.

While reinsurance and retrocessional coverage will be used to limit our exposure to risks, the availability of such arrangements may be limited, and counterparty credit and other risks associated with our reinsurance arrangements may result in losses which could adversely affect our financial condition and results of operations.

        For the purposes of managing risk, we use reinsurance and also may use retrocessional arrangements. In the normal course of business, our insurance subsidiaries cede a portion of their premiums through pro rata, excess of loss and facultative reinsurance agreements. Our reinsurance subsidiaries purchase a limited amount of retrocessional coverage as part of their aggregate risk management program. In addition, our reinsurance subsidiaries participate in "common account" retrocessional arrangements for certain pro rata treaties. Such arrangements reduce the effect of individual or aggregate losses to all companies participating on such treaties, including the reinsurers, such as our reinsurance subsidiaries, and the ceding company. The availability and cost of reinsurance and retrocessional protection is subject to market conditions, which are beyond our control. As a result of such market conditions and other factors, we may not be able to successfully mitigate risk through reinsurance and retrocessional arrangements.

        Further, we are subject to credit risk with respect to our reinsurance and retrocessions because the ceding of risk to reinsurers and retrocessionaires does not relieve us of our liability to the clients or companies we insure or reinsure. We monitor the financial condition of our reinsurers and attempt to place coverages only with carriers we view as substantial and financially sound. Although we have not experienced any material credit losses to date, an inability of our reinsurers or retrocessionnaires to meet their obligations to us could have a material adverse effect on our financial condition and results of operations. Our losses for a given event or occurrence may increase if our reinsurers or retrocessionaires dispute or fail to meet their obligations to us or the reinsurance or retrocessional protections purchased by us are exhausted or are otherwise unavailable for any reason. Our failure to establish adequate reinsurance or retrocessional arrangements or the failure of our existing reinsurance or retrocessional arrangements to protect us from overly concentrated risk exposure could adversely affect our financial condition and results of operations.

Our reliance on brokers subjects us to their credit risk.

        In accordance with industry practice, we generally pay amounts owed on claims under our insurance and reinsurance contracts to brokers, and these brokers, in turn, pay these amounts to the clients that have purchased insurance or reinsurance from us. In some jurisdictions, if a broker fails to make such payment, we may remain liable to the insured or ceding insurer for the deficiency. Likewise, in certain jurisdictions, when the insured or ceding company pays the premiums for these contracts to brokers for payment to us, these premiums are considered to have been paid and the insured or ceding company will no longer be liable to us for those amounts, whether or not we have actually received the premiums from the broker. Consequently, we assume a degree of credit risk associated with our brokers. To date, we have not experienced any losses related to this credit risk.

50


Table of Contents


We cannot predict the effect that certain investigations and litigation currently being conducted by state insurance regulatory authorities and others will have on the industry or our business, and the effects of emerging claims and coverage issues and certain proposed legislation are uncertain.

        Although there is still pending certain civil litigation arising out of the investigation by the New York Attorney General and others into contingent commission payments to brokers (and the disclosures relating to such payments), alleged "bid-rigging," alleged "steering," and other practices in the insurance industry, a number of brokers announced that they have reached agreement with the New York Attorney General and other state insurance regulatory authorities that would allow them to collect contingent commissions once again. However, we cannot predict the effect that this agreement, the pending civil litigation, any current or future government investigations or prosecutions and/or resulting changes in insurance practices (including future legislation and/or regulations that may become applicable to our business) will have on the insurance industry, the regulatory framework or our business.

        The effects of emerging claims and coverage issues are uncertain. The insurance industry is also affected by political, judicial and legal developments which have in the past resulted in new or expanded theories of liability. These or other changes could impose new financial obligations on us by extending coverage beyond our underwriting intent or otherwise require us to make unplanned modifications to the products and services that we provide, or cause the delay or cancellation of products and services that we provide. In some instances, these changes may not become apparent until some time after we have issued insurance or reinsurance contracts that are affected by the changes. As a result, the full extent of liability under our insurance or reinsurance contracts may not be known for many years after a contract is issued. The effects of unforeseen developments or substantial government intervention could adversely impact our ability to achieve our goals.

Changes in current accounting practices and future pronouncements may materially impact our reported financial results.

        Developments in accounting practices, for example a convergence of U.S. GAAP with IFRS may require considerable additional expense to comply with, particularly if we are required to prepare information relating to prior periods for comparable purposes or to apply the new requirements retroactively. The impact of changes in current accounting practices and future pronouncements cannot be predicted, but may affect the results of our operations, including among other things, the calculation of net income.

Risks Relating to Our Company

Our success will depend on our ability to maintain and enhance effective operating procedures and internal controls and ERM program.

        We continue to enhance our operating procedures and internal controls (including the timely and successful implementation of our information technology initiatives, which include the implementation of improved computerized systems and programs to replace and support manual systems, and including controls over financial reporting) to effectively support our business and our regulatory and reporting requirements. Our management does not expect that our disclosure controls or our internal controls will prevent all errors and all fraud. A control system, no matter how well conceived and operated, can provide only reasonable, not absolute, assurance that the objectives of the control system are met. Further, the design of a control system must reflect the fact that there are resource constraints, and the benefits of controls must be considered relative to their costs. As a result of the inherent limitations in all control systems, no evaluation of controls can provide absolute assurance that all control issues and instances of fraud, if any, within the company have been detected. These inherent limitations include the realities that judgments in decision-making can be faulty, and that breakdowns can occur because of

51


Table of Contents


simple error or mistake. Additionally, controls can be circumvented by the individual acts of some persons or by collusion of two or more people. The design of any system of controls also is based in part upon certain assumptions about the likelihood of future events, and there can be no assurance that any design will succeed in achieving its stated goals under all potential future conditions; over time, controls may become inadequate because of changes in conditions, or the degree of compliance with the policies or procedures may deteriorate. As a result of the inherent limitations in a cost-effective control system, misstatement due to error or fraud may occur and not be detected. Accordingly, our disclosure controls and procedures are designed to provide reasonable, not absolute, assurance that the disclosure controls and procedures are met.

        We operate within an ERM framework designed to assess and monitor our risks. However, there can be no assurance that we can effectively review and monitor all risks or that all of our employees will operate within the ERM framework. There can be no assurance that our ERM framework will result in us accurately identifying all risks and accurately limiting our exposures based on our assessments.

A downgrade in our ratings or our inability to obtain a rating for our operating insurance and reinsurance subsidiaries may adversely affect our relationships with clients and brokers and negatively impact sales of our products.

        Our operating insurance and reinsurance subsidiaries are rated by ratings agencies. Brokers negotiate contracts of insurance between insured and insurer on behalf of the insured and intermediaries negotiate contracts of reinsurance between a primary insurer and reinsurer, on behalf of the primary insurer. Third-party rating agencies, such as A.M. Best, assess and rate the financial strength of insurers and reinsurers based upon criteria established by the rating agencies, which criteria are subject to change. Ratings are an important factor in establishing the competitive position of insurance and reinsurance companies. Insureds, insurers, ceding insurers and intermediaries use these ratings as one measure by which to assess the financial strength and quality of insurers and reinsurers. These ratings are often an important factor in the decision by an insured, ceding insurer, broker or intermediary of whether to place business with a particular insurance or reinsurance provider. Our financial strength ratings are subject to periodic review as rating agencies evaluate us to confirm that we continue to meet their criteria for ratings assigned to us by them. Such ratings may be revised downward or revoked at the sole discretion of such ratings agencies in response to a variety of factors, including a minimum capital adequacy ratio, management, earnings, capitalization and risk profile. We can offer no assurances that our ratings will remain at their current levels. A ratings downgrade or the potential for such a downgrade, or failure to obtain a necessary rating, could adversely affect both our relationships with agents, brokers, wholesalers, intermediaries and other distributors of our existing products and services and new sales of our products and services. In addition, under certain of the reinsurance agreements assumed by our reinsurance operations, upon the occurrence of a ratings downgrade or other specified triggering event with respect to our reinsurance operations, such as a reduction in surplus by specified amounts during specified periods, our ceding company clients may be provided with certain rights, including, among other things, the right to terminate the subject reinsurance agreement and/or to require that our reinsurance operations post additional collateral. Any ratings downgrade or failure to obtain a necessary rating could adversely affect our ability to compete in our markets, could cause our premiums and earnings to decrease and have a material adverse impact on our financial condition and results of operations. In addition, a downgrade in ratings of certain of our operating subsidiaries would in certain cases constitute an event of default under our credit facilities. See "Management's Discussion and Analysis of Financial Condition and Results of Operations—Contractual Obligations and Commercial Commitments—Letter of Credit and Revolving Credit Facilities" for a discussion of our credit facilities.

52


Table of Contents

        In light of the difficulties experienced recently by many financial institutions, including our competitors in the insurance industry, we believe it is possible that rating agencies may heighten the level of scrutiny they apply when analyzing companies in our industry, may increase the frequency and scope of their reviews, may request additional information from the companies that they rate (including additional information regarding the valuation of investment securities held), and may adjust upward the capital and other requirements employed in their models for maintenance of certain rating levels.

The loss of our key employees or our inability to retain them could negatively impact our business.

        Our success has been, and will continue to be, dependent on our ability to retain the services of our existing key executive officers and to attract and retain additional qualified personnel in the future. The pool of talent from which we actively recruit is limited. Although, to date, we have not experienced difficulties in attracting and retaining key personnel, the inability to attract and retain qualified personnel when available and the loss of services of key personnel could have a material adverse effect on our financial condition and results of operations. In addition, our underwriting staff is critical to our success in the production of business. While we do not consider any of our key executive officers or underwriters to be irreplaceable, the loss of the services of our key executive officers or underwriters or the inability to hire and retain other highly qualified personnel in the future could delay or prevent us from fully implementing our business strategy which could affect our financial performance. We are not aware of any intentions of any of our key personnel that would cause them no longer to provide their professional services to us in the near future.

The preparation of our financial statements requires us to make many estimates and judgments, which are even more difficult than those made in a mature company since relatively limited historical information has been reported to us through December 31, 2010.

        The preparation of consolidated financial statements requires us to make many estimates and judgments that affect the reported amounts of assets, liabilities (including reserves), revenues and expenses, and related disclosures of contingent liabilities. On an ongoing basis, we evaluate our estimates, including those related to revenue recognition, insurance and other reserves, reinsurance recoverables, investment valuations, intangible assets, bad debts, income taxes, contingencies and litigation. We base our estimates on historical experience, where possible, and on various other assumptions that we believe to be reasonable under the circumstances, which form the basis for our judgments about the carrying values of assets and liabilities that are not readily apparent from other sources. Estimates and judgments for a relatively new insurance and reinsurance company, like our company, are even more difficult to make than those made in a mature company since relatively limited historical information has been reported to us through December 31, 2010. Instead, our current loss reserves are primarily based on estimates involving actuarial and statistical projections of our expectations of the ultimate settlement and administration costs of claims incurred but not yet reported. We utilize actuarial models as well as historical insurance industry loss development patterns to establish our initial loss reserves. Over time, other common reserving methodologies have begun to be employed. Actual claims and claim expenses paid may deviate, perhaps substantially, from the reserve estimates reflected in our financial statements.

The price of our common shares may be volatile.

        There has been significant volatility in the market for equity securities. During 2010 and 2009, the price of our common shares fluctuated from a low of $65.70 to a high of $92.05 and from a low of $44.68 to a high of $72.25, respectively. On February 24, 2011, our common shares closed at a price of $87.56. The price of our common shares may not remain at or exceed current levels. The following

53


Table of Contents


factors, in addition to those described in other risk factors above, may have an adverse impact on the market price of our common stock:

        Stock markets in the United States continue to experience volatile price and volume fluctuations. Such fluctuations, as well as general political conditions, the current poor economic conditions or interest rate or currency rate fluctuations, could adversely affect the market price of our stock.

Adverse developments in the financial markets could have a material adverse effect on our results of operations, financial position and our businesses, and may also limit our access to capital; our policyholders, reinsurers and retrocessionaires may also be affected by such developments, which could adversely affect their ability to meet their obligations to us.

        Adverse developments in the financial markets, such as disruptions, uncertainty or volatility in the capital and credit markets, may result in realized and unrealized capital losses that could have a material adverse effect on our results of operations, financial position and our businesses, and may also limit our access to capital required to operate our business. Depending on market conditions, we could incur additional realized and unrealized losses on our investment portfolio in future periods, which could have a material adverse effect on our results of operations, financial condition and business. Current economic conditions could also have a material impact on the frequency and severity of claims and therefore could negatively impact our underwriting returns. In addition, our policyholders, reinsurers and retrocessionaires may be affected by such developments in the financial markets, which could adversely affect their ability to meet their obligations to us. The volatility in the financial markets could continue to significantly affect our investment returns, reported results and shareholders' equity.

Our business is dependent upon insurance and reinsurance brokers and intermediaries, and the loss of important broker relationships could materially adversely affect our ability to market our products and services.

        We market our insurance and reinsurance products primarily through brokers and intermediaries. We derive a significant portion of our business from a limited number of brokers. During 2010, approximately 18.8% and 15.1% of our gross premiums written were generated from or placed by Aon Corporation and its subsidiaries and Marsh & McLennan Companies and its subsidiaries, respectively. No other broker and no one insured or reinsured accounted for more than 10% of gross premiums written for 2010. Some of our competitors have had longer term relationships with the brokers we use than we have, and the brokers may promote products offered by companies that may offer a larger variety of products than we do. Loss of all or a substantial portion of the business provided by these brokers could have a material adverse effect on us.

54


Table of Contents


We could be materially adversely affected to the extent that managing general agents, general agents and other producers exceed their underwriting authorities or if our agents, our insureds or other third parties commit fraud or otherwise breach obligations owed to us.

        For certain business conducted by our insurance group, following our underwriting, financial, claims and information technology due diligence reviews, we authorize managing general agents, general agents and other producers to write business on our behalf within underwriting authorities prescribed by us. We rely on the underwriting controls of these agents to write business within the underwriting authorities provided by us. Although we monitor such business on an ongoing basis, our monitoring efforts may not be adequate or our agents may exceed their underwriting authorities or otherwise breach obligations owed to us. In addition, our agents, our insureds or other their parties may commit fraud or otherwise breach their obligations to us. To the extent that our agents, our insureds or other third parties exceed their underwriting authorities, commit fraud or otherwise breach obligations owed to us in the future, our financial condition and results of operations could be materially adversely affected.

We are exposed to credit risk in certain of our business operations.

        In addition to exposure to credit risk related to our investment portfolio, reinsurance recoverables and reliance on brokers (each discussed elsewhere in this section), we are exposed to credit risk in other areas of our business related to policyholders. We are exposed to credit risk in our insurance group's surety unit where we guarantee to a third party that our policyholder will satisfy certain performance or financial obligations. If our policyholder defaults, we may suffer losses and be unable to be reimbursed by our policyholder. We are exposed to credit risk in our insurance group's construction and national accounts casualty units where we write large deductible insurance policies. Under these policies we are typically obligated to pay the claimant the full amount of the claim. We are subsequently reimbursed by the policyholder for the deductible amount, which can be a set amount per claim and/or an aggregate amount for all covered claims. As such, we are exposed to credit risk to the policyholder. Additionally, we write retrospectively rated policies (i.e., policies in which premiums are adjusted after the policy period based on the actual loss experience of the policyholder during the policy period). In this instance, we are exposed to credit risk to the extent the adjusted premium is greater than the original premium. While we generally seek to mitigate this risk through collateral agreements that require the posting of collateral in such forms as cash and letters of credit from banks, our efforts to mitigate the credit risk that we have to our policyholders may not be successful. Although we have not experienced any material credit losses to date, an increased inability of our policyholders to meet their obligations to us could have a material adverse effect on our financial condition and results of operations.

Our investment performance may affect our financial results and ability to conduct business.

        Our operating results depend in part on the performance of our investment portfolio. A significant portion of our cash and invested assets consists of fixed maturities (77.3% as of December 31, 2010). Although our current investment guidelines and approach stress preservation of capital, market liquidity and diversification of risk, our investments are subject to market-wide risks and fluctuations. In addition, we are subject to risks inherent in particular securities or types of securities, as well as sector concentrations. We may not be able to realize our investment objectives, which could have a material adverse effect on our financial results. In the event that we are unsuccessful in correlating our investment portfolio with our expected insurance and reinsurance liabilities, we may be forced to liquidate our investments at times and prices that are not optimal, which could have a material adverse effect on our financial results and ability to conduct our business.

55


Table of Contents


We may be adversely affected by changes in economic conditions, including interest rate changes, as well as legislative changes.

        Our operating results are affected, in part, by the performance of our investment portfolio. Our investment portfolio contains fixed and floating rate securities and instruments, such as bonds, which may be adversely affected by changes in interest rates. Changes in interest rates could also have a material adverse effect on our financial results. For example, if interest rates increase, the value of our investment portfolio may decline. Although lower interest rates may increase the value of our portfolio, our investment income might suffer from the lower rates at which new cash could be deployed.

        In addition, our investment portfolio includes residential mortgage-backed securities ("MBS"). As of December 31, 2010, MBS constituted approximately 15.3% of our cash and invested assets. As with other fixed income investments, the market value of these securities fluctuates depending on market and other general economic conditions and the interest rate environment. Changes in interest rates can expose us to changes in the prepayment rate on these investments. In periods of declining interest rates, mortgage prepayments generally increase and MBS are prepaid more quickly, requiring us to reinvest the proceeds at the then current market rates. Conversely, in periods of rising rates, mortgage prepayments generally fall, preventing us from taking full advantage of the higher level of rates. However, current economic conditions may curtail prepayment activity as refinancing becomes more difficult, thus limiting prepayments on MBS.

        Interest rates are highly sensitive to many factors, including the fiscal and monetary policies of the U.S. and other major economies, inflation, economic and political conditions and other factors beyond our control. Although we attempt to take measures to manage the risks of investing in changing interest rate environments, we may not be able to mitigate interest rate sensitivity effectively. Despite our mitigation efforts, an increase in interest rates could have a material adverse effect on our book value.

        Since 2007, the residential mortgage market in the U.S. has experienced a variety of difficulties. During this time, delinquencies and losses with respect to residential mortgage loans generally have increased and may continue to increase, particularly in the subprime sector. In addition, during this period, residential property values in many states have declined or remained stable, after extended periods during which those values appreciated. A continued decline or an extended flattening in those values may result in additional increases in delinquencies and losses on residential mortgage loans generally, especially with respect to second homes and investment properties, and with respect to any residential mortgage loans where the aggregate loan amounts (including any subordinate loans) are close to or greater than the related property values. These developments may have a significant adverse effect on the prices of loans and securities, including those in our investment portfolio. The situation continues to have wide ranging consequences, including downward pressure on economic growth and the potential for increased insurance and reinsurance exposures, which could have an adverse impact on our results of operations, financial condition, business and operations. Our portfolio includes commercial mortgage backed securities ("CMBS"). At December 31, 2010, CMBS constituted approximately 9.9% of our cash and invested assets. The commercial real estate market has recently experienced price deterioration, which could lead to increased delinquencies and defaults on commercial real estate mortgages.

Certain of our investments are illiquid and are difficult to sell, or to sell in significant amounts at acceptable prices, to generate cash to meet our needs.

        Our investments in certain securities, including certain fixed income and structured securities, investments in funds accounted for using the equity method, other investments and our investment in Gulf Re (joint venture) may be illiquid due to contractual provisions or investment market conditions. If we require significant amounts of cash on short notice in excess of anticipated cash requirements,

56


Table of Contents


then we may have difficulty selling these investments in a timely manner or may be forced to sell or terminate them at unfavorable values.

The determination of the amount of allowances and impairments taken on our investments is highly subjective and could materially impact our results of operations or financial position.

        On a quarterly basis, we perform reviews of our investments to determine whether declines in market value below the cost basis are considered other-than-temporary in accordance with applicable accounting guidance regarding the recognition and presentation of other-than-temporary impairments. The process of determining whether a security is other-than-temporarily impaired requires judgment and involves analyzing many factors. These factors include (i) an analysis of the liquidity, business prospects and overall financial condition of the issuer, (ii) the time period in which there was a significant decline in value, (iii) the significance of the decline, and (iv) the analysis of specific credit events. We evaluate the unrealized losses of our equity securities by issuer and determine if we can forecast a reasonable period of time by which the fair value of the securities would increase and we would recover our cost. If we are unable to forecast a reasonable period of time in which to recover the cost of our equity securities, we record a net impairment loss in earnings equivalent to the entire unrealized loss. There can be no assurance that our management has accurately assessed the level of impairments taken and allowances reflected in our financial statements. Furthermore, additional impairments may need to be taken or allowances provided for in the future. Historical trends may not be indicative of future impairments or allowances.

We may require additional capital in the future, which may not be available or only available on unfavorable terms.

        We monitor our capital adequacy on a regular basis. The capital requirements of our business depend on many factors, including our ability to write new business successfully and to establish premium rates and reserves at levels sufficient to cover losses. Our ability to underwrite is largely dependent upon the quality of our claims paying and financial strength ratings as evaluated by independent rating agencies. To the extent that our existing capital is insufficient to fund our future operating requirements and/or cover claim losses, we may need to raise additional funds through financings or limit our growth. Any equity or debt financing, if available at all, may be on terms that are unfavorable to us. In the case of equity financings, dilution to our shareholders could result, and, in any case, such securities may have rights, preferences and privileges that are senior to those of our outstanding securities. Disruptions, uncertainty or volatility in the capital and credit markets may also limit our access to capital required to operate our business. Such market conditions may limit our ability to access the capital necessary to develop our business and replace, in a timely manner, our letters of credit facilities upon maturity. As such, we may be forced to delay raising capital or bear an unattractive cost of capital which could decrease our profitability and significantly reduce our financial flexibility. If we are not able to obtain adequate capital, our business, results of operations and financial condition could be adversely affected. See "Management's Discussion and Analysis of Financial Condition and Results of Operations—Financial Condition, Liquidity and Capital Resources—Liquidity and Capital Resources."

We sold our prior reinsurance operations in May 2000 and may have liability to the purchaser and continuing liability from those reinsurance operations if the purchaser should fail to make payments on the reinsurance liabilities it assumed.

        On May 5, 2000, we sold our prior reinsurance operations to WTM Re. The WTM Re transaction was structured as a transfer and assumption agreement (and not reinsurance), and, accordingly, the loss reserves (and any related reinsurance recoverables) relating to the transferred business are not included as assets or liabilities on our balance sheet. In addition, in connection with that asset sale, we made

57


Table of Contents


extensive representations and warranties about us and our reinsurance operations, some of which survived the closing of the asset sale. Breach of these representations and warranties could result in liability for us. In the event that WTM Re refuses or is unable to make payment for reserved losses transferred to it by us in the May 2000 sale and the notice given to reinsureds is found not to be an effective release by such reinsureds, we would be liable for such claims. A.M. Best has assigned an "A-" (Excellent) financial strength rating to WTM Re. WTM Re reported policyholders' surplus of $832.0 million at December 31, 2009.

We sold our non-standard automobile insurance operations and merchant banking operations in 2004 and may have liability to the purchasers.

        In 2004, we sold our non-standard automobile insurance operations and merchant banking operations to third party purchasers. In connection with such sales, we made representations and warranties about us and our transferred businesses, some of which survived the closing of such sales. Breach of these representations and warranties could result in liability to us.

Any future acquisitions, growth of our operations through the addition of new lines of insurance or reinsurance business through our existing subsidiaries or through the formation of new subsidiaries, expansion into new geographic regions and/or joint ventures or partnerships may expose us to risks.

        We may in the future make strategic acquisitions either of other companies or selected blocks of business, expand our business lines or enter into joint ventures. Any future acquisitions may expose us to challenges and risks, including:

        Our failure to manage successfully these operational challenges and risks may impact our results of operations. In addition, if the reserves established by us, as they relate to any acquired book of business, prove to be inadequate, then subject to whatever recourse we may have against the seller or reinsurers, we may be responsible for adverse development in such reserves.

Some of the provisions of our bye-laws and our shareholders agreement may have the effect of hindering, delaying or preventing third party takeovers or changes in management initiated by shareholders. These provisions may also prevent our shareholders from receiving premium prices for their shares in an unsolicited takeover.

        Some provisions of our bye-laws could have the effect of discouraging unsolicited takeover bids from third parties or changes in management initiated by shareholders. These provisions may encourage companies interested in acquiring us to negotiate in advance with our board of directors, since the board has the authority to overrule the operation of several of the limitations.

58


Table of Contents

        Among other things, our bye-laws provide:

        Our bye-laws provide that certain provisions which may have anti-takeover effects may be repealed or altered only with prior board approval and upon the affirmative vote of holders of shares representing at least 65% of the total voting power of our shares entitled generally to vote at an election of directors.

        The bye-laws also contain a provision limiting the rights of any U.S. person (as defined in section 7701(a)(30) of the Internal Revenue Code of 1986, as amended (the "Code")) that owns shares of ACGL, directly, indirectly or constructively (within the meaning of section 958 of the Code), representing more than 9.9% of the voting power of all shares entitled to vote generally at an election of directors. The votes conferred by such shares of such U.S. person will be reduced by whatever amount is necessary so that after any such reduction the votes conferred by the shares of such person will constitute 9.9% of the total voting power of all shares entitled to vote generally at an election of directors. Notwithstanding this provision, the board may make such final adjustments to the aggregate number of votes conferred by the shares of any U.S. person that the board considers fair and reasonable in all circumstances to ensure that such votes represent 9.9% of the aggregate voting power of the votes conferred by all shares of ACGL entitled to vote generally at an election of directors. ACGL will assume that all shareholders (other than the Warburg Pincus funds) are U.S. persons unless we receive assurance satisfactory to us that they are not U.S. persons.

        Moreover, most states, including states in which our subsidiaries are domiciled, have laws and regulations that require regulatory approval of a change in control of an insurer or an insurer's holding company. Where such laws apply to us and our subsidiaries, there can be no effective change in our control unless the person seeking to acquire control has filed a statement with the regulators and has obtained prior approval for the proposed change from such regulators. The usual measure for a presumptive change in control pursuant to these laws is the acquisition of 10% or more of the voting power of the insurance company or its parent, although this presumption is rebuttable. Consequently, a person may not acquire 10% or more of our common shares without the prior approval of insurance regulators in the state in which our subsidiaries are domiciled.

        The bye-laws also provide that the affirmative vote of at least 662/3% of the outstanding voting power of our shares (excluding shares owned by any person (and such person's affiliates and associates) that is the owner of 15% of more (a "15% Holder") of our outstanding voting shares) shall be required (the "extraordinary vote") for various corporate actions, including:

59


Table of Contents

        provided, however, the extraordinary vote will not apply to any transaction approved by the board.

        The provisions described above may have the effect of making more difficult or discouraging unsolicited takeover bids from third parties. To the extent that these effects occur, shareholders could be deprived of opportunities to realize takeover premiums for their shares and the market price of their shares could be depressed. In addition, these provisions could also result in the entrenchment of incumbent management.

Our operating insurance and reinsurance subsidiaries are subject to regulation in various jurisdictions, and material changes in the regulation of their operations could adversely affect us.

        Our insurance and reinsurance subsidiaries are subject to government regulation in each of the jurisdictions in which they are licensed or authorized to do business. Governmental agencies have broad administrative power to regulate many aspects of the insurance business, which may include trade and claim practices, accounting methods, premium rates, marketing practices, claims practices, advertising, policy forms, and capital adequacy. These agencies are concerned primarily with the protection of policyholders rather than shareholders. Moreover, insurance laws and regulations, among other things:

        The National Association of Insurance Commissioners ("NAIC") continuously examines existing laws and regulations in the United States. We cannot predict the effect that any NAIC recommendations or proposed or future legislation or rule making in the United States or elsewhere may have on our financial condition or operations.

        Our Bermuda insurance and reinsurance subsidiary, Arch Re Bermuda, conducts its business from its offices in Bermuda and is not licensed or admitted to do business in any jurisdiction except Bermuda. We do not believe that Arch Re Bermuda is subject to the insurance laws of any state in the United States; however, recent scrutiny of the insurance and reinsurance industry in the U.S. and other countries could subject Arch Re Bermuda to additional regulation. Our U.S. reinsurance subsidiary, Arch Re U.S., and our U.S. insurance subsidiaries, Arch Insurance, Arch Specialty, Arch E&S and Arch Indemnity, write reinsurance and insurance in the U.S. These subsidiaries are subject to extensive regulation under state statutes which delegate regulatory, supervisory and administrative powers to state insurance commissioners. Such regulation generally is designed to protect policyholders rather than investors. In addition, the Canadian branch of Arch Insurance writes insurance in Canada and is subject to federal, as well as provincial and territorial, regulation in Canada.

        Arch Insurance Europe conducts its business from London and branch offices in certain EU countries and is Arch subject to the insurance regulations of the U.K. Arch Re Europe, our reinsurance subsidiary in Ireland, conducts its business from its office in Ireland and branches in Switzerland and Denmark. It is subject to the reinsurance regulations of Ireland. Arch Insurance Europe and Arch Re Europe are also subject to the EU regulations and regulations of the respective

60


Table of Contents


Member States where they have established branches or in which they conduct business, but with respect to the conduct of their business in such Member State, but each company remains subject only to the financial and operational supervision by the FSA, in the case of Arch Insurance Europe, and the CBOI, in the case of Arch Re Europe. Arch Insurance Europe and Arch Re Europe have the freedom to provide their respective insurance and reinsurance services anywhere in the EEA subject to compliance with certain rules governing such provision, including notification to the FSA and the CBOI, respectively. Arch Insurance Company Europe is also approved as an excess and surplus lines insurer in 17 states and the District of Columbia in the U.S.

        Our U.S., Bermuda, U.K. and Ireland subsidiaries and the Canadian branch of Arch Insurance are required to maintain minimum capital and surplus as mandated by their respective jurisdictions of incorporation and, in some cases, by the jurisdictions in which those subsidiaries write business. Arch Insurance Company Europe is required to maintain minimum capital surplus as mandated by the NAIC and certain states where it is approved as an excess and surplus lines insurer. All of our subsidiaries are currently in compliance with these capital and surplus requirements.

        We periodically review our corporate structure so that we can optimally deploy our capital. Changes in that structure require regulatory approval. Delays or failure in obtaining any of these approvals could limit the amount of insurance that we can write in the U.S.

        If ACGL or any of our subsidiaries were to become subject to the laws of a new jurisdiction in which such entity is not presently admitted, ACGL or such subsidiary may not be in compliance with the laws of the new jurisdiction. Any failure to comply with applicable laws could result in the imposition of significant restrictions on our ability to do business, and could also result in fines and other sanctions, any or all of which could adversely affect our financial condition and results of operations.

If our Bermuda operating subsidiary becomes subject to insurance statutes and regulations in jurisdictions other than Bermuda or if there is a change in Bermuda law or regulations or the application of Bermuda law or regulations, there could be a significant and negative impact on our business.

        Arch Re Bermuda, our Bermuda insurance and reinsurance subsidiary, is a registered Bermuda Class 4 insurer and long-term insurer. As such, it is subject to regulation and supervision in Bermuda. Bermuda insurance statutes and the regulations and policies of the BMA require Arch Re Bermuda to, among other things:

        These statutes and regulations may restrict our ability to write insurance and reinsurance policies, distribute funds and pursue our investment strategy. We do not presently intend for Arch Re Bermuda to be admitted to do business in the U.S., U.K. or any jurisdiction other than Bermuda. However, we cannot assure you that insurance regulators in the U.S., U.K. or elsewhere will not review the activities

61


Table of Contents


or Arch Re Bermuda or its subsidiaries or agents and claim that Arch Re Bermuda is subject to such jurisdiction's licensing requirements.

        Generally, Bermuda insurance statutes and regulations applicable to Arch Re Bermuda are less restrictive than those that would be applicable if they were governed by the laws of any states in the U.S. If in the future we become subject to any insurance laws of the U.S. or any state thereof or of any other jurisdiction, we cannot assure you that we would be in compliance with such laws or that complying with such laws would not have a significant and negative effect on our business.

        The process of obtaining licenses is very time consuming and costly and Arch Re Bermuda may not be able to become licensed in jurisdictions other than Bermuda should we choose to do so. The modification of the conduct of our business that would result if we were required or chose to become licensed in certain jurisdictions could significantly and negatively affect our financial condition and results of operations. In addition, our inability to comply with insurance statutes and regulations could significantly and adversely affect our financial condition and results of operations by limiting our ability to conduct business as well as subject us to penalties and fines.

        Because Arch Re Bermuda is a Bermuda company, it is subject to changes in Bermuda law and regulation that may have an adverse impact on our operations, including through the imposition of tax liability or increased regulatory supervision. In addition, Arch Re Bermuda will be exposed to any changes in the political environment in Bermuda, including, without limitation, changes as a result of the independence issues currently being discussed in Bermuda. The Bermuda insurance and reinsurance regulatory framework recently has become subject to increased scrutiny in many jurisdictions, including the U.K. While we cannot predict the future impact on our operations of changes in the laws and regulation to which we are or may become subject, any such changes could have a material adverse effect on our business, financial condition and results of operations.

ACGL is a holding company and is dependent on dividends and other payments from its operating subsidiaries, which are subject to dividend restrictions, to make payments, including the payment of debt service obligations and operating expenses we may incur and any payments of dividends, redemption amounts or liquidation amounts with respect to our preferred shares and common shares.

        ACGL is a holding company whose assets primarily consist of the shares in our subsidiaries. Generally, ACGL depends on its available cash resources, liquid investments and dividends or other distributions from subsidiaries to make payments, including the payment of debt service obligations and operating expenses it may incur and any payments of dividends, redemption amounts or liquidation amounts with respect to our preferred shares and common shares, and to fund the share repurchase program. The ability of our regulated insurance and reinsurance subsidiaries to pay dividends or make distributions is dependent on their ability to meet applicable regulatory standards. In addition, the ability of our insurance and reinsurance subsidiaries to pay dividends to ACGL and to intermediate parent companies owned by ACGL could be constrained by our dependence on financial strength ratings from independent rating agencies. Our ratings from these agencies depend to a large extent on the capitalization levels of our insurance and reinsurance subsidiaries. We believe that ACGL has sufficient cash resources and available dividend capacity to service its indebtedness and other current outstanding obligations. See "Management's Discussion and Analysis of Financial Condition and Results of Operations—Financial Condition, Liquidity and Capital Resources—Liquidity and Capital Resources."

If our Bermuda reinsurance subsidiary is unable to provide collateral to ceding companies, its ability to conduct business could be significantly and negatively affected.

        Arch Re Bermuda is a registered Bermuda insurance company and is not licensed or admitted as an insurer in any jurisdiction in the United States. Because insurance regulations in the United States

62


Table of Contents


do not permit insurance companies to take credit for reinsurance obtained from unlicensed or non-admitted insurers on their statutory financial statements unless security is posted, Arch Re Bermuda's contracts generally require it to post a letter of credit or provide other security. Although, to date, Arch Re Bermuda has not experienced any difficulties in providing collateral when required, if we are unable to post security in the form of letters of credit or trust funds when required, the operations of Arch Re Bermuda could be significantly and negatively affected.

We may become subject to taxes in Bermuda after March 28, 2016, which may have a material adverse effect on our results of operations.

        Under current Bermuda law, we are not subject to tax on income or capital gains. Furthermore, we have obtained from the Minister of Finance of Bermuda under the Exempted Undertakings Tax Protection Act, 1966, an assurance that, in the event that Bermuda enacts legislation imposing tax computed on profits, income, any capital asset, gain or appreciation, or any tax in the nature of estate duty or inheritance tax, then the imposition of the tax will not be applicable to us or our operations until March 28, 2016. We could be subject to taxes in Bermuda after that date. This assurance does not, however, prevent the imposition of taxes on any person ordinarily resident in Bermuda or any company in respect of its ownership of real property or leasehold interests in Bermuda.

Foreign currency exchange rate fluctuation may adversely affect our financial results.

        We write business on a worldwide basis, and our results of operations may be affected by fluctuations in the value of currencies other than the U.S. Dollar. The primary foreign currencies in which we operate are the Euro, the British Pound Sterling and the Canadian Dollar. Changes in foreign currency exchange rates can reduce our revenues, increase our liabilities and costs and cause fluctuations in the valuation of our investment portfolio. We may therefore suffer losses solely as a result of exchange rate fluctuations. In order to mitigate our exposure to foreign currency fluctuations in our net insurance liabilities, we have invested and expect to continue to invest in securities denominated in currencies other than the U.S. Dollar. In addition, we may replicate investment positions in foreign currencies using derivative financial instruments. Net foreign exchange gains for 2010, recorded in the statement of income, were $28.1 million, compared to net foreign exchange losses for 2009 of $39.2 million and net foreign exchange gains for 2008 of $96.6 million. Changes in the value of investments due to foreign currency rate movements are reflected as a direct increase or decrease to shareholders' equity and are not included in the statement of income. We have chosen not to hedge the currency risk on the capital contributed to Arch Insurance Europe in May 2004, which is held in British Pounds Sterling, and may continue to choose not to hedge our currency risks. There can be no assurances that arrangements to match projected liabilities in foreign currencies with investments in the same currencies or derivative financial instruments will mitigate the negative impact of exchange rate fluctuations, and we may suffer losses solely as a result of exchange rate fluctuations.

Certain employees of our Bermuda operations are required to obtain work permits before engaging in a gainful occupation in Bermuda. Required work permits may not be granted or may not remain in effect.

        Under Bermuda law, only persons who are Bermudians, spouses of Bermudians, holders of a permanent resident's certificate or holders of a working resident's certificate ("exempted persons") may engage in gainful occupation in Bermuda without an appropriate governmental work permit. Our success may depend in part on the continued services of key employees in Bermuda. A work permit may be granted or renewed upon showing that, after proper public advertisement, no exempted person is available who meets the minimum standards reasonably required by the employer. The Bermuda government's policy places a six-year term limit on individuals with work permits, subject to certain exemptions for key employees. A work permit is issued with an expiry date (up to five years) and no assurances can be given that any work permit will be issued or, if issued, renewed upon the expiration

63


Table of Contents


of the relevant term. We consider our key officers in Bermuda who require work permits to be Constantine Iordanou, our Chairman, President and Chief Executive Officer (work permit expires November 12, 2014), John C.R. Hele, our Executive Vice President and Chief Financial Officer (work permit expires April 1, 2014), Marc Grandisson, Chairman and Chief Executive Officer of Arch Worldwide Reinsurance Group (work permit expires May 12, 2015), and Nicolas Papadopoulo, President and Chief Executive Officer of Arch Re Bermuda (work permit expires March 31, 2015). We also have other key positions in Bermuda held by persons who hold work permits subject to renewal. If work permits are not obtained or renewed for our principal employees, we could lose their services, which could materially affect our business.

The enforcement of civil liabilities against us may be difficult.

        We are a Bermuda company and in the future some of our officers and directors may be residents of various jurisdictions outside the United States. All or a substantial portion of our assets and the assets of those persons may be located outside the United States. As a result, it may be difficult for you to effect service of process within the United States upon those persons or to enforce in United States courts judgments obtained against those persons.

        We have appointed National Registered Agents, Inc., New York, New York, as our agent for service of process with respect to actions based on offers and sales of securities made in the United States. We have been advised by our special Bermuda legal counsel, Conyers Dill & Pearman Limited, that the United States and Bermuda do not currently have a treaty providing for reciprocal recognition and enforcement of judgments of U.S. courts in civil and commercial matters and that a final judgment for the payment of money rendered by a court in the United States based on civil liability, whether or not predicated solely upon the U.S. federal securities laws, would, therefore, not be automatically enforceable in Bermuda. We also have been advised by Conyers Dill & Pearman that a final and conclusive judgment obtained in a court in the United States under which a sum of money is payable as compensatory damages (i.e., not being a sum claimed by a revenue authority for taxes or other charges of a similar nature by a governmental authority, or in respect of a fine or penalty or multiple or punitive damages) may be the subject of an action on a debt in the Supreme Court of Bermuda under the common law doctrine of obligation. Such an action should be successful upon proof that the sum of money is due and payable, and without having to prove the facts supporting the underlying judgment, as long as:

        A Bermuda court may impose civil liability on us or our directors or officers in a suit brought in the Supreme Court of Bermuda against us or such persons with respect to a violation of U.S. federal securities laws, provided that the facts surrounding such violation would constitute or give rise to a cause of action under Bermuda law.

64


Table of Contents

Risk Relating to our Preferred Shares

General market conditions and unpredictable factors could adversely affect market prices for our outstanding preferred shares.

        There can be no assurance about the market prices for any series of our preferred shares. Several factors, many of which are beyond our control, will influence the market value of such series of preferred shares. Factors that might influence the market value of any series of our preferred shares include, but are not limited to:

Dividends on our preferred shares are non-cumulative.

        Dividends on our preferred shares are non-cumulative and payable only out of lawfully available funds of ACGL under Bermuda law. Consequently, if ACGL's board of directors (or a duly authorized committee of the board) does not authorize and declare a dividend for any dividend period with respect to any series of our preferred shares, holders of such preferred shares would not be entitled to receive any such dividend, and such unpaid dividend will not accrue and will never be payable. ACGL will have no obligation to pay dividends for a dividend period on or after the dividend payment date for such period if its board of directors (or a duly authorized committee of the board) has not declared such dividend before the related dividend payment date; if dividends on any series of our preferred shares are authorized and declared with respect to any subsequent dividend period, ACGL will be free to pay dividends on any other series of preferred shares and/or our common shares. In the past, we have not paid dividends on our common shares.

Our preferred shares are equity and are subordinate to our existing and future indebtedness.

        Our preferred shares are equity interests and do not constitute indebtedness. As such, our preferred shares will rank junior to all of our indebtedness and other non-equity claims with respect to assets available to satisfy our claims, including in our liquidation. As of December 31, 2010, our total consolidated long-term debt was $400.0 million, excluding TALF borrowings. We may incur additional debt in the future. Our existing and future indebtedness may restrict payments of dividends on our preferred shares. Additionally, unlike indebtedness, where principal and interest would customarily be payable on specified due dates, in the case of preferred shares like our preferred shares, (1) dividends are payable only if declared by the board of directors of ACGL (or a duly authorized committee of the board) and (2) as described above under "—Risks Relating to Our Company—ACGL is a holding company and is dependent on dividends and other payments from its operating subsidiaries, which are subject to dividend restrictions, to make payments, including the payment of debt service obligations and operating expenses we may incur and any payments of dividends, redemption amounts or liquidation amounts with respect to our preferred shares and common shares," we are subject to certain regulatory and other constraints affecting our ability to pay dividends and make other payments.

65


Table of Contents


The voting rights of holders of our preferred shares are limited.

        Holders of our preferred shares have no voting rights with respect to matters that generally require the approval of voting shareholders. The limited voting rights of holders of our preferred shares include the right to vote as a class on certain fundamental matters that affect the preference or special rights of our preferred shares as set forth in the certificate of designations relating to each series of preferred shares. In addition, if dividends on any series of our preferred shares have not been declared or paid for the equivalent of six dividend payments, whether or not for consecutive dividend periods, holders of the outstanding preferred shares of any series will be entitled to vote for the election of two additional directors to our board of directors subject to the terms and to the limited extent as set forth in the certificate of designations relating to such series of preferred shares.

There is no limitation on our issuance of securities that rank equally with or senior to our preferred shares.

        We may issue additional securities that rank equally with or senior to our preferred shares without limitation. The issuance of securities ranking equally with or senior to our preferred shares may reduce the amount available for dividends and the amount recoverable by holders of such series in the event of a liquidation, dissolution or winding-up of ACGL.

Risks Relating to Taxation

We and our non-U.S. subsidiaries may become subject to U.S. federal income taxation.

        ACGL and its non-U.S. subsidiaries intend to operate their business in a manner that will not cause them to be treated as engaged in a trade or business in the United States and, thus, will not be required to pay U.S. federal income taxes (other than U.S. excise taxes on insurance and reinsurance premium and withholding taxes on certain U.S. source investment income) on their income. However, because there is uncertainty as to the activities which constitute being engaged in a trade or business in the United States, there can be no assurances that the U.S. Internal Revenue Service will not contend successfully that ACGL or its non-U.S. subsidiaries are engaged in a trade or business in the United States. If ACGL or any of its non-U.S. subsidiaries were subject to U.S. income tax, our shareholders' equity and earnings could be adversely affected.

        Congress has been considering legislation intended to eliminate certain perceived tax advantages of Bermuda and other non-U.S. insurance companies and U.S. insurance companies having Bermuda and other non-U.S. affiliates, including perceived tax benefits resulting principally from reinsurance between or among U.S. insurance companies and their Bermuda affiliates. Some U.S. insurance companies have also been lobbying Congress recently to pass such legislation. In this regard, the American Jobs Creation Act of 2004 (the "Jobs Act") permits the United States Internal Revenue Service ("IRS") to re-allocate, re-characterize or adjust items of income, deduction or certain other items related to a reinsurance agreement between related parties to reflect the proper source, character and amount for each item (in contrast to prior law, which only covered source and character). The Jobs Act also eliminated the tax benefits available to a U.S. company that, after March 4, 2003, changed its legal domicile to a non-U.S. jurisdiction, a transaction commonly known as an inversion. We changed our legal domicile from the U.S. to Bermuda, but were not affected by the anti-inversion rule because our change in domicile occurred in November 2000. The American Infrastructure Investment and Improvement Act of 2008 as passed by the Senate Finance Committee would have made the Jobs Act anti-inversion rule applicable retroactively to inversions that occurred after March 20, 2002. Although this modification would not affect ACGL, no assurance can be given that if reintroduced in the current Congress the final bill will not make the Jobs Act anti-inversion rule applicable retroactively to inversions that occurred on an earlier date, in which case ACGL could be adversely affected. A recently reintroduced legislative proposal would treat certain foreign corporations as U.S. corporations if such corporation is primarily managed and controlled within the U.S. While we believe ACGL is not

66


Table of Contents


primarily managed and controlled within the U.S., there is no assurance that the proposal would not apply to ACGL. Another recent legislative proposal would treat a foreign corporation as a U.S. corporation if it is determined that the foreign corporation was formed or organized principally for the purpose of avoiding being treated as a U.S. corporation. It is uncertain whether this proposal would apply to ACGL, but it would adversely affect us if enacted and found to apply. Another legislative proposal has been introduced that would treat certain "tax haven CFCs" as U.S. corporations for federal income tax purposes. The term "tax haven CFC" would include a Bermuda corporation that is a controlled foreign corporation, but would exclude corporations that engage in the active conduct of a trade or business in Bermuda. It is not clear how this bill would apply to ACGL, which conducts its insurance and reinsurance businesses through its subsidiaries. Further, it is not clear whether this bill was intended to apply to a publicly traded company such as ACGL. There is no assurance that this legislative proposal, if enacted, would not apply to ACGL or any of its non-U.S. subsidiaries. In addition, Congress has recently conducted hearings relating to the tax treatment of reinsurance between affiliates and is reported to be considering legislation that would adversely affect reinsurance between U.S. and non-U.S. affiliates. One such proposal would increase the excise tax rate on reinsurance premiums paid to affiliated non-U.S. reinsurers. A recently introduced legislative proposal in the House of Representatives as well as a prior Senate Finance Committee staff discussion draft and other prior proposals would limit deductions for premiums ceded to affiliated non-U.S. reinsurers above certain levels. The Administration's Fiscal Year 2012 Revenue Proposals contain a similar but more restrictive provision that would deny deductions for all premiums ceded to affiliated non-U.S. reinsurers, offset by an exclusion for any ceding commissions received or reinsurance recovered from such affiliates. Enactment of such legislation or proposal as well as other changes in U.S. tax laws, regulations and interpretations thereof to address these issues could adversely affect us.

Reduced tax rate for qualified dividend income received by individuals and other non-corporate holders may not be available in the future.

        Dividends received by individuals and other non-corporate United States persons on our common shares or preferred shares in taxable years beginning on or before December 31, 2012 may constitute qualified dividend income that is subject to U.S. federal income tax at the rate applicable for long-term capital gains, rather than the higher rates applicable to ordinary income, provided that certain holding period requirements and other conditions are met. For taxable years beginning after December 31, 2012, qualified dividend income will no longer be taxed at the rate applicable for long-term capital gains unless legislation is enacted providing otherwise. In addition, there has been proposed legislation before both Houses of Congress that would exclude shareholders of certain foreign corporations from this advantageous tax treatment. If such legislation were to become law, non-corporate U.S. shareholders would no longer qualify for the capital gains tax rate on the dividends paid by us.

Our non-U.S. companies may be subject to U.K. tax that may have a material adverse effect on our results of operations.

        We intend to operate in such a manner so that none of our companies, other than our U.K. subsidiaries ("U.K. Group"), should be resident in the U.K. for tax purposes or have a permanent establishment in the U.K. Accordingly, we do not expect that any companies other than U.K. Group should be subject to U.K. taxation. However, since applicable law and regulations do not specifically and conclusively define the activities that constitute conducting business in the U.K. through a permanent establishment, HM Revenue and Customs might contend successfully that one or more of our companies, in addition to the U.K. Group, is conducting business in the U.K. through a permanent establishment in the U.K. and, therefore, subject to U.K. tax, which could have a material adverse effect on us.

67


Table of Contents


ITEM 1B.    UNRESOLVED STAFF COMMENTS

        None.

ITEM 2.    PROPERTIES

        We lease a total of approximately 21,850 square feet in Bermuda for the operations of Arch Re Bermuda, ACGL and our internal investment management group. Our U.S. reinsurance group leases approximately 19,200 square feet in Morristown, New Jersey. Our property facultative reinsurance group leases approximately 17,500 square feet for its offices throughout the U.S. and in Toronto. Arch Re Denmark leases approximately 3,650 square feet in Denmark, and Arch Re Europe leases a total of approximately 1,800 square feet in Dublin and Zurich.

        The principal U.S. office of our insurance group support operations (excluding underwriting units) is in Jersey City, New Jersey where we lease approximately 106,800 square feet. Such lease expires in 2024. We lease approximately 71,300 square feet in New York City for the headquarters of the U.S. insurance group's underwriting product lines and Northeast regional underwriting operations. Our insurance group also leases a total of approximately 270,000 square feet for its other primary U.S. offices and its office in Canada. Arch Insurance Europe leases approximately 15,770 square feet in London.

        For 2010, 2009 and 2008, our rental expense, net of income from subleases, was approximately $15.0 million, $16.9 million and $17.5 million, respectively. Our future minimum rental charges for the remaining terms of our existing leases, exclusive of escalation clauses and maintenance costs and net of rental income, will be approximately $126.7 million. We believe that the above described office space is adequate for our needs. However, as we continue to develop our business, we may open additional office locations during 2011.

ITEM 3.    LEGAL PROCEEDINGS

        We, in common with the insurance industry in general, are subject to litigation and arbitration in the normal course of our business. As of December 31, 2010, we were not a party to any litigation or arbitration which is expected by management to have a material adverse effect on our results of operations and financial condition and liquidity.

ITEM 4.    SUBMISSION OF MATTERS TO A VOTE OF SECURITY HOLDERS

        None.

68


Table of Contents


PART II

ITEM 5.    MARKET FOR REGISTRANT'S COMMON EQUITY, RELATED STOCKHOLDER MATTERS AND ISSUER PURCHASES OF EQUITY SECURITIES

MARKET INFORMATION

        Our common shares are traded on the NASDAQ Stock Market under the symbol "ACGL." For the periods presented below, the high and low sales prices and closing prices for our common shares as reported on the NASDAQ Stock Market were as follows:

 
  Three Months Ended  
 
  December 31, 2010   September 30, 2010   June 30, 2010   March 31, 2010  

High

  $ 92.05   $ 84.55   $ 78.57   $ 76.83  

Low

  $ 82.49   $ 73.50   $ 65.70   $ 69.00  

Close

  $ 88.05   $ 83.80   $ 74.50   $ 76.25  

 

 
  Three Months Ended  
 
  December 31, 2009   September 30, 2009   June 30, 2009   March 31, 2009  

High

  $ 72.25   $ 68.90   $ 61.10   $ 70.00  

Low

  $ 65.66   $ 57.24   $ 52.26   $ 44.68  

Close

  $ 71.55   $ 67.54   $ 58.58   $ 53.86  

        On February 24, 2011, the high and low sales prices and the closing price for our common shares as reported on the NASDAQ Stock Market were $88.05, $87.17 and $87.56, respectively.


HOLDERS

        As of February 17, 2011, and based on information provided to us by our transfer agent and proxy solicitor, there were 488 holders of record of our common shares and approximately 29,800 beneficial holders of our common shares.


DIVIDENDS

        Any determination to pay dividends on ACGL's series A and series B non-cumulative preferred shares or common shares will be at the discretion of ACGL's board of directors (or a duly authorized committee of the board of directors) and will be dependent upon its results of operations, financial condition and other factors deemed relevant by ACGL's board of directors. As a holding company, ACGL will depend on future dividends and other permitted payments from its subsidiaries to pay dividends to its shareholders. ACGL's subsidiaries' ability to pay dividends, as well as its ability to pay dividends, is subject to regulatory, contractual, rating agency and other constraints. So long as any series A or series B non-cumulative preferred shares remain outstanding for any dividend period, unless the full dividends for the latest completed dividend period on all outstanding series A and series B non-cumulative preferred shares and parity shares have been declared and paid (or declared and a sum sufficient for the payment thereof has been set aside), (a) no dividend may be paid or declared on ACGL's common shares or any of its other securities ranking junior to the series A and series B non-cumulative preferred shares (other than a dividend payable solely in common shares or in such other junior securities) and (b) no common shares or other junior shares may be purchased, redeemed or otherwise acquired for consideration by ACGL, directly or indirectly (other than (i) as a result of a reclassification of junior shares for or into other junior shares, or the exchange or conversion of one junior share for or into another junior share, (ii) through the use of the proceeds of a substantially contemporaneous sale of junior shares and (iii) as permitted by the bye-laws of ACGL in effect on the date of issuance of the series A and series B non-cumulative preferred shares).

69


Table of Contents


ISSUER PURCHASES OF EQUITY SECURITIES

        The following table summarizes our purchases of our common shares for the 2010 fourth quarter:

 
  Issuer Purchases of Equity Securities    
 
Period
  Total Number
of Shares
Purchased(1)
  Average Price
Paid per Share
  Total Number of
Shares
Purchased as
Part of Publicly
Announced Plans
or Programs(2)
  Approximate
Dollar Value of
Shares that May
Yet be Purchased
Under the Plan
or Programs
($000's)(2)
 

10/1/2010 - 10/31/2010

    6,596   $ 82.41     6,203   $ 487,168  

11/1/2010 - 11/30/2010

    1,405,215   $ 88.72     1,403,490   $ 362,652  

12/1/2010 - 12/31/2010

    1,483,797   $ 89.75     1,483,324   $ 229,529  
                     
 

Total

    2,895,608   $ 89.23     2,893,017   $ 229,529  
                       

(1)
Includes repurchases by ACGL of shares, from time to time, from employees in order to facilitate the payment of withholding taxes on restricted shares granted and the exercise of stock appreciation rights. We purchased these shares at their fair market value, as determined by reference to the closing price of our common shares on the day the restricted shares vested or the stock appreciation rights were exercised.

(2)
Remaining amount available at December 31, 2010 under ACGL's share repurchase authorization. In February 2011, ACGL's board of directors authorized an additional share repurchase authorization by $1.0 billion, under which repurchases may be effected from time to time in open market or privately negotiated transactions through December 31, 2012.

70


Table of Contents


PERFORMANCE GRAPH

        The following graph compares the cumulative total shareholder return on our common shares for each of the last five years through December 31, 2010 to the cumulative total return, assuming reinvestment of dividends, of (1) Standard & Poor's ("S&P") 500 Composite Stock Index ("S&P 500 Index") and (2) the S&P 500 Property & Casualty Insurance Index. The share price performance presented below is not necessarily indicative of future results.


CUMULATIVE TOTAL SHAREHOLDER RETURN(1)(2)(3)

GRAPHIC


(1)
Stock price appreciation plus dividends.

(2)
The above graph assumes that the value of the investment was $100 on December 31, 2005. The closing price for our common shares on December 31, 2010 (i.e., the last trading day in 2010) was $88.05.

(3)
This graph is not "soliciting material," is not deemed filed with the SEC and is not to be incorporated by reference in any filing by us under the Securities Act of 1933 or the Securities and Exchange Act of 1934, whether made before or after the date hereof and irrespective of any general incorporation language in any such filing.

71


Table of Contents

ITEM 6.    SELECTED FINANCIAL DATA

        The following table sets forth summary historical consolidated financial and operating data for the five-year period ended December 31, 2010 and should be read in conjunction with "Management's Discussion and Analysis of Financial Condition and Results of Operations" and our financial statements and the related notes.

 
  Year Ended December 31,  
(U.S. dollars in thousands except share data)
  2010   2009   2008   2007   2006  

Statement of Income Data:

                               

Revenues:

                               
 

Net premiums written

  $ 2,511,040   $ 2,763,112   $ 2,805,726   $ 2,901,936   $ 3,017,418  
 

Net premiums earned

    2,552,483     2,842,745     2,845,454     2,944,650     3,081,665  
 

Net investment income

    364,878     390,131     468,080     463,241     377,534  
 

Equity in net income (loss) of investment funds accounted for using the equity method

    61,400     167,819     (178,608 )   (171 )   2,671  
 

Net realized gains (losses)

    252,751     143,582     (3,939 )   58,338     (19,437 )
 

Total revenues

    3,244,067     3,501,622     2,966,813     3,452,445     3,452,678  
 

Income before income taxes

    850,456     897,653     304,505     873,544     739,893  
 

Net Income

 
$

842,588
 
$

876,945
 
$

290,966
 
$

857,943
 
$

713,214
 
 

Preferred dividends

    (25,844 )   (25,844 )   (25,844 )   (25,844 )   (20,655 )
                       
 

Net income available to common shareholders

  $ 816,744   $ 851,101   $ 265,122   $ 832,099   $ 692,559  
                       
 

Diluted net income per share

  $ 15.55   $ 13.74   $ 4.09   $ 11.28   $ 9.08  
 

Cash dividends per share

                     
 

After-tax operating income available to common shareholders(1)

  $ 491,074   $ 651,805   $ 537,386   $ 846,458   $ 734,919  
 

After-tax operating income available to common shareholders per share—diluted(1)

  $ 9.35   $ 10.53   $ 8.29   $ 11.47   $ 9.63  
 

After-tax operating return on average common equity(2)

    12.0 %   18.3 %   15.8 %   24.3 %   25.6 %
 

Weighted average common shares and common share equivalents outstanding—diluted

    52,521,719     61,927,132     64,789,052     73,762,419     76,246,725  

(1)
After-tax operating income available to common shareholders is defined as net income available to common shareholders, excluding net realized gains or losses, net impairment losses included in earnings, equity in net income or loss of investment funds accounted for using the equity method and net foreign exchange gains or losses, net of income taxes. The presentation of after-tax operating income available to common shareholders is a "non-GAAP financial measure" as defined in Regulation G. See "Management's Discussion and Analysis—General—Comment on Non-GAAP Financial Measures" for further details.

(2)
Equals after-tax operating income available to common shareholders divided by the average of beginning and ending common shareholders' equity for each period presented.

72


Table of Contents

 
  December 31,  
(U.S. dollars in thousands except share data)
  2010   2009   2008   2007   2006  

Balance Sheet Data:

                               

Total investments and cash(1)

  $ 11,986,560   $ 11,325,112   $ 9,992,239   $ 10,129,663   $ 9,319,148  

Premiums receivable

    503,434     595,030     628,951     729,628     749,961  

Unpaid losses and loss adjustment expenses recoverable

    1,703,201     1,659,500     1,729,135     1,609,619     1,552,157  

Total assets

    15,770,792     15,375,790     14,616,545     15,624,267     14,312,467  

Reserves for losses and loss adjustment expenses:

                               
 

Before unpaid losses and loss adjustment expenses recoverable

    8,098,454     7,873,412     7,666,957     7,092,452     6,463,041  
 

Net of unpaid losses and loss adjustment expenses recoverable

    6,395,253     6,213,912     5,937,822     5,482,833     4,910,884  

Unearned premiums:

                               
 

Before prepaid reinsurance premiums

    1,370,075     1,433,331     1,526,682     1,765,881     1,791,922  
 

Net of prepaid reinsurance premiums

    1,106,627     1,155,346     1,222,975     1,285,419     1,321,784  

Senior notes

    300,000     300,000     300,000     300,000     300,000  

Revolving credit agreement borrowings

    100,000     100,000     100,000          

Total liabilities

    11,257,789     11,052,441     11,183,580     11,588,456     10,721,848  

Common shareholders' equity

 
$

4,188,003
 
$

3,998,349
 
$

3,107,965
 
$

3,710,811
 
$

3,265,619
 

Preferred shareholders' equity

    325,000     325,000     325,000     325,000     325,000  
                       

Total shareholders' equity

  $ 4,513,003   $ 4,323,349   $ 3,432,965   $ 4,035,811   $ 3,590,619  
                       

Book value per common share(2)

  $ 89.98   $ 73.01   $ 51.36   $ 55.12   $ 43.97  

Common shares outstanding, net of treasury shares(3)

    46,544,075     54,761,678     60,511,974     67,318,466     74,270,466  

(1)
In our securities lending transactions, we receive collateral in excess of the market value of the fixed maturities and short-term investments pledged under securities lending agreements. For purposes of this table, we have excluded collateral received and reinvested and included "fixed maturities and short-term investments pledged under securities lending agreements, at market value."

(2)
Excludes the effects of stock options and restricted stock units.

(3)
Reflects the impact of our share repurchase program, which resulted in repurchases of 9.7 million, 6.7 million, 7.5 million and 7.8 million common shares, respectively, for the years ended December 31, 2010, 2009, 2008 and 2007.

73


Table of Contents

ITEM 7.    MANAGEMENT'S DISCUSSION AND ANALYSIS OF FINANCIAL CONDITION AND RESULTS OF OPERATIONS

        The following discussion and analysis contains forward-looking statements which involve inherent risks and uncertainties. All statements other than statements of historical fact are forward-looking statements. These statements are based on our current assessment of risks and uncertainties. Actual results may differ materially from those expressed or implied in these statements and, therefore, undue reliance should not be placed on them. Important factors that could cause actual events or results to differ materially from those indicated in such statements are discussed in this report, including the sections entitled "Cautionary Note Regarding Forward-Looking Statements," and "Risk Factors."

        This discussion and analysis should be read in conjunction with our audited consolidated financial statements and notes thereto presented under Item 8. Tabular amounts are in U.S. Dollars in thousands, except share amounts, unless otherwise noted.

GENERAL

Overview

        Arch Capital Group Ltd. ("ACGL" and, together with its subsidiaries, "we" or "us") is a Bermuda public limited liability company with approximately $4.91 billion in capital at December 31, 2010 and, through operations in Bermuda, the United States, Europe and Canada, writes insurance and reinsurance on a worldwide basis. While we are positioned to provide a full range of property and casualty insurance and reinsurance lines, we focus on writing specialty lines of insurance and reinsurance. It is our belief that our underwriting platform, our experienced management team and our strong capital base that is unencumbered by significant pre-2002 risks have enabled us to establish a strong presence in the insurance and reinsurance markets.

        The worldwide insurance and reinsurance industry is highly competitive and has traditionally been subject to an underwriting cycle in which a hard market (high premium rates, restrictive underwriting standards, as well as terms and conditions, and underwriting gains) is eventually followed by a soft market (low premium rates, relaxed underwriting standards, as well as broader terms and conditions, and underwriting losses). Insurance market conditions may affect, among other things, the demand for our products, our ability to increase premium rates, the terms and conditions of the insurance policies we write, changes in the products offered by us or changes in our business strategy.

        The financial results of the insurance and reinsurance industry are influenced by factors such as the frequency and/or severity of claims and losses, including natural disasters or other catastrophic events, variations in interest rates and financial markets, changes in the legal, regulatory and judicial environments, inflationary pressures and general economic conditions. These factors influence, among other things, the demand for insurance or reinsurance, the supply of which is generally related to the total capital of competitors in the market.

        The weather-related catastrophic events that occurred in the second half of 2005 caused significant industry losses and led to a strengthening of rating agency capital requirements for catastrophe-exposed business. The 2005 events also resulted in substantial improvements in market conditions in property and certain marine lines of business and slowed declines in premium rates in other lines. During 2006 and 2007, excellent industry results led to a significant increase in capacity, competition intensified and, in general, prices declined in all lines of business. During 2008, we increased our writings in property and certain marine lines of business in order to take advantage of market conditions and these lines represented a larger proportion of our overall book of business than in prior periods. During the second half of 2008, the financial markets experienced significant adverse credit events and a loss of liquidity, which reduced the amount and availability of capital in the insurance industry. In addition, certain of our competitors experienced significant financial difficulties. During 2009, with a low level of

74


Table of Contents


catastrophic activity and substantial improvements in market values across most investment sectors, the pricing environment was basically unchanged from 2008 levels. In our reinsurance business, we continue to see pressure from ceding companies to increase ceding commissions. During 2010, in general, rates for all lines of business were down from previous periods, with increased competition experienced in a number of specialty lines of business. With a light level of windstorm activity in 2010, significant excess capacity exists at year end 2010. These factors have led to, what we believe to be, inadequate pricing levels in a number of lines of business.

Current Outlook

        The current economic conditions could continue to have a material impact on the frequency and severity of claims and, therefore, could negatively impact our underwriting returns. In addition, volatility in the financial markets could continue to significantly affect our investment returns, reported results and shareholders' equity. We consider the potential impact of economic trends in the estimation process for establishing unpaid losses and loss adjustment expenses and in determining our investment strategies.

        With difficult market conditions and excess capacity in place at year end 2010, we anticipate that 2011 will continue to be challenging from an underwriting perspective. Our objective is to achieve an average operating return on average equity of 15% or greater over the insurance cycle, which we believe to be an attractive return to our common shareholders given the risks we assume. We continue to look for opportunities to find acceptable books of business to underwrite without sacrificing underwriting discipline and continue to believe that the most attractive area from a pricing point of view remains U.S. catastrophe-exposed business. We expect that catastrophe-exposed business will continue to represent a significant proportion of our overall book, which could increase the volatility of our operating results.

Natural Catastrophe Risk

        We monitor our natural catastrophe risk globally for all perils and regions, in each case, where we believe there is significant exposure. Our models employ both proprietary and vendor-based systems and include cross-line correlations for property, marine, offshore energy, aviation, workers compensation and personal accident. Currently, we seek to limit our 1-in-250 year return period net probable maximum pre-tax loss from a severe catastrophic event in any geographic zone to approximately 25% of total shareholders' equity. We reserve the right to change this threshold at any time. Based on in-force exposure estimated as of January 1, 2011, our modeled peak zone catastrophe exposure is a windstorm affecting the Northeastern U.S., with a net probable maximum pre-tax loss of $733 million, followed by windstorms affecting the Florida Tri-County and Gulf areas with net probable maximum pre-tax losses of $683 million. Our exposures to other perils, such as U.S. earthquake and international events, are less than the exposures arising from U.S. windstorms and hurricanes. As of January 1, 2011, our modeled peak zone earthquake exposure (Los Angeles area earthquake) represented less than 50% of our peak zone catastrophe exposure, and our modeled peak zone international exposure (United Kingdom windstorm) is substantially less than both our peak zone windstorm and earthquake exposures. Net probable maximum pre-tax loss estimates are net of expected reinsurance recoveries, before income tax and before excess reinsurance reinstatement premiums. Loss estimates are reflective of the zone indicated and not the entire portfolio. Since hurricanes and windstorms can affect more than one zone and make multiple landfalls, our loss estimates include clash estimates from other zones.

        The loss estimates shown above do not represent our maximum exposures and it is highly likely that our actual incurred losses would vary materially from the modeled estimates. There can be no assurances that we will not suffer a net loss greater than 25% of our total shareholders' equity from one or more catastrophic events due to several factors, including the inherent uncertainties in

75


Table of Contents


estimating the frequency and severity of such events and the margin of error in making such determinations resulting from potential inaccuracies and inadequacies in the data provided by clients and brokers, the modeling techniques and the application of such techniques or as a result of a decision to change the percentage of shareholders' equity exposed to a single catastrophic event. In addition, actual losses may increase if our reinsurers fail to meet their obligations to us or the reinsurance protections purchased by us are exhausted or are otherwise unavailable. See "Risk Factors—Risk Relating to Our Industry" and "Management's Discussion and Analysis of Financial Condition and Results of Operations—Natural and Man-Made Catastrophic Events."

Financial Measures

        Management uses the following three key financial indicators in evaluating our performance and measuring the overall growth in value generated for ACGL's common shareholders:

        Book value per common share represents total common shareholders' equity divided by the number of common shares outstanding. Management uses growth in book value per common share as a key measure of the value generated for our common shareholders each period and believes that book value per common share is the key driver of ACGL's common share price over time. Book value per common share is impacted by, among other factors, our underwriting results, investment returns and share repurchase activity, which has an accretive or dilutive impact on book value per common share depending on the purchase price.

        Book value per common share was $89.98 at December 31, 2010, a 23.2% increase from $73.01 at December 31, 2009. The growth in 2010 was generated through underwriting results and investment returns and also reflects the accretive impact of share repurchase activity.

        After-tax operating return on average common equity ("Operating ROAE") represents after-tax operating income available to common shareholders divided by the average of beginning and ending common shareholders' equity during the period. After-tax operating income available to common shareholders, a "non-GAAP measure" as defined in the SEC rules, represents net income available to common shareholders, excluding net realized gains or losses, net impairment losses recognized in earnings, equity in net income or loss of investment funds accounted for using the equity method and net foreign exchange gains or losses, net of income taxes. Management uses Operating ROAE as a key measure of the return generated to common shareholders and has set an objective to achieve an average Operating ROAE of 15% or greater over the insurance cycle, which it believes to be an attractive return to common shareholders given the risks we assume. See "Comment on Non-GAAP Financial Measures."

        Our Operating ROAE was 12.0% for 2010, compared to 18.3% for 2009 and 15.8% for 2008. The lower level of Operating ROAE for 2010 than in 2009 was primarily due to a higher amount of losses from catastrophic events and also reflected the impact of current insurance and reinsurance market conditions and the impact of lower interest yields on the investment portfolio. The higher level of Operating ROAE for 2009 compared to 2008 was primarily due to a lower level of claims from catastrophic events.

        Total return on investments includes net investment income, equity in net income or loss of investment funds accounted for using the equity method, net realized gains and losses and the change in unrealized gains and losses generated by our investment portfolio. Total return is calculated on a

76


Table of Contents

pre-tax basis and before investment expenses and includes the effect of financial market conditions along with foreign currency fluctuations. Management uses total return on investments as a key measure of the return generated to common shareholders on the capital held in the business, and compares the return generated by our investment portfolio against a benchmark return index.

        The benchmark return index is a customized combination of indices intended to approximate a target portfolio by asset mix and average credit quality while also matching the approximate estimated duration and currency mix of our insurance and reinsurance liabilities. Although the estimated duration and average credit quality of this index will move as the duration and rating of its constituent securities change, generally we do not adjust the composition of the benchmark return index. The benchmark return index should not be interpreted as expressing a preference for or aversion to any particular sector or sector weight. The index is intended solely to provide, unlike many master indices that change based on the size of their constituent indices, a relatively stable basket of investable indices.

        At December 31, 2010, the benchmark return index had an average credit quality of "AA", an estimated duration of 3.32 years and included weightings to the following indices:

 
  Weighting  

Merrill Lynch Unsubordinated U.S. Treasuries/Agencies, 1 - 10 Years Index

    30.875 %

Merrill Lynch U.S. Corporates and All Yankees, 1 - 10 Years Index

    20.875 %

Merrill Lynch Mortgage Master Index

    11.875 %

Barclays Capital CMBS, AAA Index

    10.000 %

Merrill Lynch Municipals, 1 - 10 Years Index

    7.125 %

MSCI World Free Index

    5.000 %

Merrill Lynch U.S. Treasury Bills, 0 - 3 Months Index

    4.750 %

Merrill Lynch U.S. High Yield Master II Constrained Index

    2.375 %

Barclays Capital U.S. High-Yield Corporate Loan Index

    2.375 %

Merrill Lynch U.K. Gilts, 1 - 10 Years Index

    2.375 %

Merrill Lynch EMU Direct Government 1 - 10 Years Index

    2.375 %
       
 

Total

    100.000 %
       

        The following table summarizes the pre-tax total return (before investment expenses) of our investment portfolio compared to the benchmark return against which we measured our portfolio during the periods:

 
  Arch
Portfolio(1)
  Benchmark
Return Index
 

Pre-tax total return (before investment expenses):

             
 

Year ended December 31, 2010

    7.00 %   6.38 %
 

Year ended December 31, 2009

    11.28 %   9.71 %
 

Year ended December 31, 2008

    (2.84 )%   (1.42 )%

(1)
Our investment expenses were approximately 0.19% of average invested assets in 2010, compared to 0.20% in 2009 and 0.14% in 2008.

        Total return for our investment portfolio exceeded that of the benchmark return index in 2010. This excess return was the product of a general outperformance (versus their specific benchmarks) by our investment portfolio's managers, somewhat offset by an underweight in equities and in Euro and British Pound-denominated fixed income securities.

77


Table of Contents

Comment on Non-GAAP Financial Measures

        Throughout this filing, we present our operations in the way we believe will be the most meaningful and useful to investors, analysts, rating agencies and others who use our financial information in evaluating the performance of our company. This presentation includes the use of after-tax operating income available to common shareholders, which is defined as net income available to common shareholders, excluding net realized gains or losses, net impairment losses recognized in earnings, equity in net income or loss of investment funds accounted for using the equity method and net foreign exchange gains or losses, net of income taxes. The presentation of after-tax operating income available to common shareholders is a "non-GAAP financial measure" as defined in Regulation G. The reconciliation of such measure to net income available to common shareholders (the most directly comparable GAAP financial measure) in accordance with Regulation G is included under "Results of Operations" below.

        We believe that net realized gains or losses, net impairment losses recognized in earnings, equity in net income or loss of investment funds accounted for using the equity method and net foreign exchange gains or losses in any particular period are not indicative of the performance of, or trends in, our business. Although net realized gains or losses, net impairment losses recognized in earnings, equity in net income or loss of investment funds accounted for using the equity method and net foreign exchange gains or losses are an integral part of our operations, the decision to realize investment gains or losses, the recognition of net impairment losses, the recognition of equity in net income or loss of investment funds accounted for using the equity method and the recognition of foreign exchange gains or losses are independent of the insurance underwriting process and result, in large part, from general economic and financial market conditions. Furthermore, certain users of our financial information believe that, for many companies, the timing of the realization of investment gains or losses is largely opportunistic. In addition, net impairment losses recognized in earnings on our investments represent other-than-temporary declines in expected recovery values on securities without actual realization. The use of the equity method on certain of our investments in certain funds that invest in fixed maturity securities is driven by the ownership structure of such funds (either limited partnerships or limited liability companies). In applying the equity method, these investments are initially recorded at cost and are subsequently adjusted based on our proportionate share of the net income or loss of the funds (which include changes in the market value of the underlying securities in the funds). This method of accounting is different from the way we account for our other fixed maturity securities and the timing of the recognition of equity in net income or loss of investment funds accounted for using the equity method may differ from gains or losses in the future upon sale or maturity of such investments. Due to these reasons, we exclude net realized gains or losses, net impairment losses recognized in earnings, equity in net income or loss of investment funds accounted for using the equity method and net foreign exchange gains or losses from the calculation of after-tax operating income available to common shareholders.

        We believe that showing net income available to common shareholders exclusive of the items referred to above reflects the underlying fundamentals of our business since we evaluate the performance of and manage our business to produce an underwriting profit. In addition to presenting net income available to common shareholders, we believe that this presentation enables investors and other users of our financial information to analyze our performance in a manner similar to how management analyzes performance. We also believe that this measure follows industry practice and, therefore, allows the users of financial information to compare our performance with our industry peer group. We believe that the equity analysts and certain rating agencies which follow us and the insurance industry as a whole generally exclude these items from their analyses for the same reasons.

78


Table of Contents

RESULTS OF OPERATIONS

        The following table summarizes, on an after-tax basis, our consolidated financial data, including a reconciliation of after-tax operating income available to common shareholders to net income available to common shareholders:

 
  Year Ended December 31,  
 
  2010   2009   2008  

After-tax operating income available to common shareholders

  $ 491,074   $ 651,805   $ 537,386  

Net realized gains (losses), net of tax

    247,054     137,428     (9,132 )

Net impairment losses recognized in earnings, net of tax

    (11,321 )   (66,056 )   (181,023 )

Equity in net income (loss) of investment funds accounted for using the equity method, net of tax

    61,400     167,819     (178,608 )

Net foreign exchange gains (losses), net of tax

    28,537     (39,895 )   96,499  
               

Net income available to common shareholders

  $ 816,744   $ 851,101   $ 265,122  
               

        The lower level of after-tax operating income in 2010 than in 2009 was primarily due to a higher amount of losses from catastrophic events and also reflected the impact of current insurance and reinsurance market conditions and the impact of lower interest yields on the investment portfolio. The higher level of after-tax operating income in 2009 compared to 2008 was primarily due to a lower level of claims from catastrophic events.

        We classify our businesses into two underwriting segments—insurance and reinsurance—and corporate and other (non-underwriting). Accounting guidance regarding disclosures about segments of an enterprise and related information requires certain disclosures about operating segments in a manner that is consistent with how management evaluates the performance of the segment. For a description of our underwriting segments, refer to Note 3, "Segment Information," of the notes accompanying our consolidated financial statements. Management measures segment performance based on underwriting income or loss.

79


Table of Contents

        The following table sets forth our insurance segment's underwriting results:

 
  Year Ended December 31,  
 
  2010   2009   2008  

Gross premiums written

  $ 2,402,202   $ 2,512,127   $ 2,490,919  

Net premiums written

    1,658,963     1,704,284     1,657,603  

Net premiums earned

 
$

1,651,106
 
$

1,688,519
 
$

1,675,089
 

Fee income

    3,252     3,362     3,445  

Losses and loss adjustment expenses

    (1,117,564 )   (1,139,415 )   (1,194,528 )

Acquisition expenses, net

    (263,201 )   (238,261 )   (224,539 )

Other operating expenses

    (312,404 )   (281,340 )   (288,883 )
               

Underwriting income (loss)

  $ (38,811 ) $ 32,865   $ (29,416 )
               

Underwriting Ratios

                   

Loss ratio

    67.7 %   67.5 %   71.3 %

Acquisition expense ratio(1)

    15.7 %   13.9 %   13.2 %

Other operating expense ratio

    18.9 %   16.7 %   17.2 %
               

Combined ratio

    102.3 %   98.1 %   101.7 %
               

(1)
The acquisition expense ratio is adjusted to include certain fee income.

        The components of the insurance segment's underwriting results are discussed below.

        2010 versus 2009:    Gross premiums written by the insurance segment in 2010 were 4.4% lower than in 2009, as reductions in commercial aviation, construction and surety lines of business were partially offset by increases in alternative markets and collateral protection lines of business. The reduction in commercial aviation business primarily resulted from a strategic decision to exit the business, while the lower level of property, construction and surety lines was due to current market conditions. The higher level of collateral protection business was generated through new business opportunities while growth in alternative markets business, which is significantly reinsured, primarily resulted from increased renewal premiums on existing accounts. Net premiums written were 2.7% lower than in the 2009 period, reflecting changes in the mix of business, reinstatement premiums, and the impact of changes in reinsurance structure.

        2009 versus 2008:    Gross premiums written by the insurance segment in 2009 were 0.9% higher than 2008, with growth in executive assurance, national accounts casualty, property, and travel and accident business, primarily resulting from new business, in addition to renewal rate increases for the executive assurance business. Such growth was largely offset by reductions in casualty, surety, professional liability, and other business, as the insurance segment continued to maintain underwriting discipline in response to the current market environment. In addition, the program business experienced growth resulting from new business. However, such growth in the program business was offset by a reduction resulting from $10.9 million of premium adjustments related to involuntary pools in the 2008 period ($10.5 million on an earned basis). Net premiums written increased by 2.8%, reflecting changes in the mix of business noted above, reinstatement premiums and the impact of changes in reinsurance structure.

80


Table of Contents

        For information regarding net premiums written produced by major line of business and geographic location, refer to note 3, "Segment Information," of the notes accompanying our consolidated financial statements.

        Net Premiums Earned.    Net premiums earned by the insurance segment were 2.2% lower in 2010 than in 2009, reflecting changes in net premiums written over the previous five quarters. Net premiums earned by the insurance segment in 2009 increased 0.8% from 2008.

        Losses and Loss Adjustment Expenses.    The table below shows the components of the insurance segment's loss ratio:

 
  Year Ended
December 31,
 
 
  2010   2009   2008  

Current year

    68.9 %   70.3 %   76.0 %

Prior period reserve development

    (1.2 )%   (2.8 )%   (4.7 )%
               
 

Loss ratio

    67.7 %   67.5 %   71.3 %
               

        2010 versus 2009:    The insurance segment's current year loss ratio was 1.4 points lower in 2010 than in 2009. The 2010 loss ratio benefited from a lower level of large, specific risk loss activity than in 2009. In addition, the 2010 loss ratio included 1.9 points for current year catastrophic event activity, while the 2009 loss ratio did not include any significant catastrophic event activity. Specific 2010 catastrophic events included the Chilean earthquake and the 2010 fourth quarter Queensland, Australia floods.

        2009 versus 2008:    The insurance segment's current year loss ratio was 5.7 points lower in 2009 than in 2008, primarily due to the lack of any significant catastrophic event activity in 2009, while the 2008 current year loss ratio included 7.2 points of catastrophic activity, primarily Hurricanes Gustav and Ike. The 2009 loss ratio also reflected increases in expected loss ratios across a number of lines of business, primarily due to the anticipated impact of rate changes, partially offset by a lower level of large, specific risk loss activity and changes in the mix of business.

        2010 prior period reserve development:    The insurance segment's net favorable development of $19.1 million, or 1.2 points, reflected reductions in property reserves from the 2005 to 2009 accident years (i.e., the year in which a loss occurred) of $5.3 million, $6.8 million, $7.9 million, $23.4 million and $4.3 million, respectively, and reductions in healthcare and other lines of $11.4 million and $11.5 million, respectively, which were spread across a number of accident years. In addition, the insurance segment had reductions in professional liability reserves from the 2007 and 2008 accident years of $11.2 million and $7.9 million, respectively, partially offset by adverse development from the 2006 accident year of $8.4 million. The loss ratio for the year ended December 31, 2010 reflected adverse development in casualty reserves from the 2003 to 2005 accident years of $16.6 million, $9.8 million and $11.0 million, respectively, which was primarily due to a small number of high severity claims in excess casualty and a high frequency of small claims in specialty casualty. Additionally, there was adverse development in program reserves from the 2003, 2005 and 2009 accident years of $7.6 million, $6.7 million and $9.3 million, respectively, partially offset by reductions from the 2006 to 2008 accident years of $6.1 million, $4.7 million and $4.2 million, respectively. In addition, the insurance segment had adverse development in executive assurance reserves from the 2008 and 2009 accident years of $14.1 million and $21.3 million, respectively, due to large specific risk loss activity

81


Table of Contents

relating to the credit crisis, partially offset by reductions from the 2003, 2004, 2006 and 2007 accident years of $2.0 million, $2.6 million, $3.4 million and $7.6 million, respectively.

        2009 prior period reserve development:    The insurance segment's net favorable development of $47.1 million, or 2.8 points, was primarily due to reductions in reserves in medium-tailed and short-tailed lines of business. Such amount included favorable development in professional liability reserves from the 2005 to 2007 accident years of $6.3 million, $16.1 million and $8.6 million, respectively, and adverse development on the 2008 accident year of $9.4 million. In addition, favorable development on construction reserves from the 2005 and 2006 accident years contributed $10.6 million and $5.4 million, respectively, which resulted from lower than expected large loss activity. Favorable development in short-tailed lines primarily consisted of reductions in property reserves from the 2007 and 2008 accident years of $9.4 million and $11.1 million, respectively. Offsetting favorable development on medium-tailed and short-tailed lines of business were increases in executive assurance reserves for the 2007 and 2008 accident years of $14.8 million and $28.3 million, respectively, due to large specific risk loss activity relating to the credit crisis, partially offset by favorable development in the 2004 to 2006 accident years of $4.1 million, $17.5 million and $3.6 million, respectively. Reductions in the 2004 to 2006 accident years relate to less large loss activity than expected in commercial D&O, a distinctive downward trend in security class action cases filed from 2004 through 2006, and to the claims-made nature of the coverage. The claims-made aspect eliminates the potential of new claims being reported for these years, and narrows the remaining liability to changes in reserve estimation for claims which have already been reported.

        2008 prior period reserve development:    The insurance segment's net favorable development of $79.0 million, or 4.7 points, was primarily due to reductions in reserves in medium-tailed and long-tailed lines of business. Over 80 percent of this development is related to the executive assurance and professional liability lines of business. Executive assurance reserves developed favorably for accident years 2004 through 2006 by $15.8 million, $17.3 million, and $17.6 million, respectively. These reductions relate to less large loss activity than expected in commercial D&O, a distinctive downward trend in security class action cases filed from 2004 through 2006, and to the claims-made nature of the coverage. Accident year 2007 experienced unfavorable development of $19.7 million relating to the re-evaluation of claims given additional information available during 2008 regarding the impact of the credit crisis. Reserves for professional liability developed favorably as well, with the majority of the favorable development relating to accident years 2003 through 2005 with $5.2 million, $8.1 million, and $19.1 million, respectively.

        2010 versus 2009:    The insurance segment's underwriting expense ratio was 34.6% in the 2010 period, compared to 30.6% in the 2009 period. The acquisition expense ratio was 15.7% for the 2010 period, compared to 13.9% for the 2009 period. The acquisition expense ratio is influenced by, among other things, (1) the amount of ceding commissions received from reinsurers, (2) the amount of business written on a surplus lines (non-admitted) basis and (3) mix of business. The 2010 acquisition expense ratio included 0.4 points related to prior year reserve development, compared to a 0.2 points in the 2009 period ratio, included a higher level of premium assessments and other charges and reflected changes in the form of reinsurance ceded and mix of business. The insurance segment's other operating expense ratio was 18.9% for 2010, compared to 16.7% for 2009. The 2010 operating expense ratio reflected 0.4 points related to an accrual for certain employee benefit costs which are not expected to impact the insurance segment's results in 2011 and also reflected expenses related to the expansion of the insurance segment's presence in executive assurance business.

        2009 versus 2008:    The insurance segment's underwriting expense ratio was 30.6% in 2009, compared to 30.4% in 2008. The acquisition expense ratio was 13.9% for 2009, compared to 13.2% for

82


Table of Contents


2008. In addition, the 2009 acquisition expense ratio reflected an increase of 0.2 points related to the estimated net favorable development in prior year loss reserves, compared to a 0.9 point increase in 2008. The comparison of the 2009 and 2008 acquisition expense ratios reflects changes in the form of reinsurance ceded and the mix of business. The insurance segment's other operating expense ratio was 16.7% for 2009, compared to 17.2% in 2008. The operating expense ratio for the 2008 period included approximately 0.7 points of costs related to an expense management plan which incorporated workforce reductions and the relocation of certain of the insurance segment's U.S. operations. The 2009 operating expenses reflected expenses related to an expansion of the insurance segment's presence in the executive assurance business, partially offset by the benefits of the expense management plan implemented in 2008.

        The following table sets forth our reinsurance segment's underwriting results:

 
  Year Ended December 31,  
 
  2010   2009   2008  

Gross premiums written

  $ 874,957   $ 1,093,940   $ 1,201,903  

Net premiums written

    852,077     1,058,828     1,148,123  

Net premiums earned

 
$

901,377
 
$

1,154,226
 
$

1,170,365
 

Fee income

    2,113     100     1,261  

Losses and loss adjustment expenses

    (400,151 )   (515,259 )   (654,216 )

Acquisition expenses, net

    (178,001 )   (255,299 )   (265,970 )

Other operating expenses

    (91,523 )   (80,567 )   (78,421 )
               

Underwriting income

  $ 233,815   $ 303,201   $ 173,019  
               

Underwriting Ratios

                   

Loss ratio

    44.4 %   44.6 %   55.9 %

Acquisition expense ratio

    19.7 %   22.1 %   22.7 %

Other operating expense ratio

    10.2 %   7.0 %   6.7 %
               

Combined ratio

    74.3 %   73.7 %   85.3 %
               

        The components of the reinsurance segment's underwriting results are discussed below.

        2010 versus 2009:    Gross premiums written by the reinsurance segment in 2010 were 20.0% lower than in 2009, primarily due to reductions in casualty and property other than property catastrophe business, partially offset by growth in the reinsurance segment's other specialty line. The decrease in casualty and property business in 2010 resulted from the impact of non-renewals of a number of contracts and contract participation decreases, reflecting the impact of current market conditions. The increase in other specialty business primarily resulted from new business written in accident and health and trade credit. Net premiums written by the reinsurance segment in 2010 were 19.5% lower than in 2009, primarily due to the items noted above.

        2009 versus 2008:    Gross premiums written by the reinsurance segment in 2009 were 9.0% lower than 2008, primarily due to reductions in casualty, marine and aviation, and other specialty business. The decrease in casualty and marine and aviation business resulted from the impact of non-renewals of a number of contracts and contract participation decreases, while the lower level of other specialty business was due to the non-renewal of a non-standard auto treaty in addition to impacts of non-renewals and contract participation decreases. The decreases were partially offset by increases in

83


Table of Contents


property business which resulted from new business, the renewal of a two-year treaty, and a $28 million increase in writings by the reinsurance segment's property facultative operation.

        For information regarding net premiums written produced by major line of business and geographic location, refer to note 3, "Segment Information," of the notes accompanying our consolidated financial statements.

        Net Premiums Earned.    Net premiums earned in 2010 were 21.9% lower than in 2009, reflecting changes in net premiums written over the previous five quarters, including the mix and type of business written. Net premiums earned in 2009 were 1.4% lower than 2008.

        Losses and Loss Adjustment Expenses.    The table below shows the components of the reinsurance segment's loss ratio:

 
  Year Ended December 31,  
 
  2010   2009   2008  

Current year

    58.6 %   56.9 %   75.7 %

Prior period reserve development

    (14.2 )%   (12.3 )%   (19.8 )%
               
 

Loss ratio

    44.4 %   44.6 %   55.9 %
               

        2010 versus 2009:    The reinsurance segment's current year loss ratio was 1.7 points higher in 2010 than in 2009. The 2010 loss ratio included 9.9 points for current year catastrophic event activity, compared to 2.0 points in 2009. Specific 2010 catastrophic events included the Chilean and New Zealand earthquakes, the 2010 first quarter Australian hailstorm and flood event and the 2010 fourth quarter Queensland, Australia floods. In addition, 2010 benefited from a higher percentage of property (both treaty and facultative) and short-tail business than in 2009. Net premiums earned in property and other short-tailed lines were approximately 74% of the total for 2010, compared to 70% in 2009.

        2009 versus 2008:    The reinsurance segment's current year loss ratio was 18.8% lower in 2009 than in 2008, and benefited from a higher level of property and short-tail business and a minimal level of catastrophic activity in the period. Net premiums earned in property and other short-tailed lines were approximately 70% of the total for 2009, compared to 64% in 2008. The 2009 current year loss ratio included 2.0 points of current period catastrophic event activity, compared to 19.6 points for 2008, primarily related to Hurricanes Gustav and Ike.

        2010 prior period reserve development:    The reinsurance segment's net favorable development of $127.6 million, or 14.2 points, consisted of $84.2 million from short-tailed lines, $34.1 million from long-tailed lines and $9.3 million from medium-tailed lines. Favorable development in short-tailed lines included $61.0 million of favorable development from property catastrophe and property other than property catastrophe reserves. Such amount included reductions of $9.4 million, $11.2 million and $28.6 million from the 2007, 2008 and 2009 underwriting years, respectively, and $11.8 million from prior underwriting years. In addition, favorable development in other specialty business included $4.7 million and $7.8 million from the 2008 and 2009 underwriting years, respectively, and $10.7 million from prior underwriting years. The reduction of loss estimates for the reinsurance segment's short-tailed lines primarily resulted from a lower level of reported and paid claims activity than previously anticipated which led to decreases in certain loss ratio selections during 2010. Net favorable development of $34.1 million in long-tailed lines included reductions in casualty reserves from the 2002

84


Table of Contents

to 2006 underwriting years of $10.8 million, $17.5 million, $33.3 million, $13.5 million and $5.8 million, respectively, which primarily resulted from a lower level of reported and paid claims activity than previously anticipated on U.S. and international excess liability, professional liability and D&O lines. Such amounts were partially offset by adverse development of $7.5 million, $31.9 and $5.6 million from the 2007 to 2009 underwriting years, respectively, on long-tailed lines which primarily resulted from increases in loss selections due to the reinsurance segment's view of the current insurance environment. Favorable development on medium-tailed lines resulted from reductions in marine and aviation reserves of $8.3 million from the 2007 underwriting year and $7.7 million from other underwriting years, partially offset by adverse development of $6.7 million from the 2008 underwriting year. The reinsurance segment's reserves for more mature underwriting years are now based more on actual loss activity and historical patterns than on the initial assumptions based on pricing indications.

        2009 prior period reserve development:    The reinsurance segment's net favorable development of $142.1 million, or 12.3 points, consisted of $83.4 million from short-tailed lines and $78.7 million came from long-tailed lines, partially offset by $20.0 million of adverse development on medium-tailed lines. Favorable development in short-tailed lines included $58.5 million of favorable development from property catastrophe and other property lines. Such amount included reductions in 2005 to 2008 underwriting years of $8.1 million, $5.6 million, $21.0 million and $20.9 million, respectively. In addition, favorable development in short-tailed lines included $22.7 million from other specialty business, which included reductions of $9.7 million, $4.3 million and $5.3 million from the 2004, 2005 and 2008 underwriting years. The reduction of loss estimates for the reinsurance segment's short-tailed lines primarily resulted from a lower level of reported and paid claims activity than previously anticipated which led to decreases in certain loss ratio selections during 2009. Net favorable development of $78.7 million in long-tailed lines included reductions in casualty reserves of $14.4 million, $25.9 million, $25.0 million and $32.3 million from the 2002 to 2005 underwriting years which primarily resulted from a lower level of reported and paid claims activity than previously anticipated on U.S. and international excess liability, professional liability and D&O lines. Such amounts were partially offset by adverse development of $25.0 million from the 2007 underwriting year, which primarily resulted from increases in loss selections due to the reinsurance segment's view of the insurance environment. Adverse development on medium-tailed lines resulted from increases on marine exposures in the 2007 and 2008 underwriting years of $7.2 million and $26.9 million, respectively, due in part to increases in Hurricane Ike estimates, partially offset by reductions in prior underwriting years.

        2008 prior period reserve development:    The reinsurance segment's net favorable development of $231.2 million, or 19.8 points, consisted of $126.1 million from short-tailed lines and $105.1 million from medium-tailed and long-tailed business. The reinsurance segment's favorable development in short-tailed lines of $126.1 million included $73.5 million of favorable development from property catastrophe and other property lines. Of such amount, $42.0 million of favorable development came from the reinsurance segment's property catastrophe business, including $10.8 million, $11.4 million and $15.7 million from the 2005 to 2007 underwriting years, respectively. The remainder was attributable to favorable development on other property business, primarily from the 2005 underwriting year. In addition, favorable development in short-tailed lines reflected $46.5 million of favorable development in other specialty business, including $16.7 million, $5.1 million and $9.5 million from the 2005 to 2007 underwriting years, respectively, with the remainder attributable to earlier underwriting years. The reduction of loss estimates for the reinsurance segment's short-tailed lines primarily resulted from a lower level of reported and paid claims activity than previously anticipated which led to decreases in certain loss ratio selections during 2008. The net favorable development of $105.1 million in medium-tailed and long-tailed lines was primarily in casualty reserves from the 2003 to 2005 underwriting years, which contributed $31.0 million, $38.7 million and $14.2 million, respectively. The reductions in casualty reserves primarily resulted from a lower level of reported and paid claims activity than previously anticipated on U.S. and international excess liability, professional liability and D&O lines.

85


Table of Contents

        2010 versus 2009:    The underwriting expense ratio for the reinsurance segment was 29.9% in 2010, compared to 29.1% in 2009. The acquisition expense ratio for 2010 was 19.7%, compared to 22.1% for 2009. The comparison of the 2010 and 2009 acquisition expense ratios is influenced by, among other things, the mix and type of business written and earned and the level of ceding commission income. The operating expense ratio for 2010 of 10.2% was higher than the 2009 ratio primarily due to the lower level of net premiums earned and a higher contribution to net premiums earned from the reinsurance segment's property facultative operations which operate primarily on a direct basis and, accordingly, at a higher operating expense ratio.

        2009 versus 2008:    The underwriting expense ratio for the reinsurance segment was 29.1% in 2009, compared to 29.4% in 2008. The acquisition expense ratio for 2009 was 22.1%, compared to 22.7% for 2008. Commencing in 2006, Arch Reinsurance Ltd. ("Arch Re Bermuda") ceded certain lines of property and marine premiums written under a quota share reinsurance treaty (the "Treaty") to Flatiron Re Ltd. ("Flatiron"). Under the Treaty, which expired by its terms on December 31, 2007, Flatiron assumed a quota share of certain lines of property and marine business underwritten by Arch Re Bermuda for the 2006 and 2007 underwriting years. Commission income from Flatiron (in excess of the reimbursement of direct acquisition expenses) reduced the reinsurance segment's acquisition expense ratio by 0.7 points in 2009, compared to 2.0 points in 2008. In addition, the 2009 acquisition expense ratio reflected 0.3 points related to estimated net favorable development in prior year loss reserves, compared to 1.0 points in 2008. The comparison of the 2009 and 2008 acquisition expense ratios is influenced by, among other things, the mix and type of business written and earned and the level of ceding commission income. The reinsurance segment's other operating expense ratio was 7.0% for 2009, compared to 6.7% for 2008. The higher ratio in 2009 resulted in part from a lower level of net premiums earned and a higher contribution to net premiums earned from the reinsurance segment's property facultative operations which operate primarily on a direct basis and, accordingly, at a higher operating expense ratio.

        The components of net investment income were derived from the following sources:

 
  Year Ended December 31,  
 
  2010   2009   2008  

Fixed maturities

  $ 378,682   $ 404,861   $ 437,492  

Short-term investments

    1,337     1,897     21,006  

Other(1)

    5,245     4,413     23,473  
               
 

Gross investment income

    385,264     411,171     481,971  

Investment expenses

    (20,386 )   (21,040 )   (13,891 )
               
 

Net investment income

  $ 364,878   $ 390,131   $ 468,080  
               

(1)
Primarily consists of interest income on operating cash accounts, other investments, equity securities and securities lending transactions.

        The pre-tax investment income yield was 3.34% for 2010, compared to 3.74% for 2009 and 4.73% for 2008. The comparability of net investment income between the periods was influenced by our share repurchase program, as well as the decrease in the pre-tax investment income yield, due in part to the prevailing interest rate environment and a reduction of the portfolio's effective duration to 2.83 years at December 31, 2010, compared to 2.87 years and 3.62 years at December 31, 2009 and 2008, respectively. The pre-tax investment income yields were calculated based on amortized cost. Yields on future investment income may vary based on financial market conditions, investment allocation decisions and other factors.

86


Table of Contents

        We recorded $61.4 million of equity in net income for 2010, compared to $167.8 million of equity in net income for 2009 and equity in net losses of $178.6 million for 2008. Such amounts were primarily related to our investments in U.S. and Euro-denominated bank loan funds which use leverage to achieve a higher rate of return. While leverage presents opportunities for increasing the total return of such investments, it may increase losses as well. Accordingly, any event that adversely affects the value of the underlying securities held by such investments would be magnified to the extent leverage is used and our potential losses from such investments would be magnified. Losses during 2008 resulted from the extreme volatility in the capital and credit markets as the market values of the secured loans underlying the holdings in such funds declined significantly. Income during 2010 and 2009 reflected improving credit spreads, a lower level of volatility in the capital and credit markets and changes in foreign currency rates.

        The following table provides an analysis of net realized gains (losses):

 
  Year Ended December 31,  
 
  2010   2009   2008  

Fixed maturities

  $ 186,363   $ 135,426   $ (17,793 )

Equity securities

    14,129     4,420      

Other investments

    9,187     746     (10,039 )

Other(1)

    43,072     2,990     23,893  
               
 

Net realized gains (losses)

  $ 252,751   $ 143,582   $ (3,939 )
               

(1)
Primarily consists of realized gains or losses related to investment-related derivatives and changes in the market value of TALF investments and TALF borrowings.

        Currently, our portfolio is actively managed to maximize total return within certain guidelines. In assessing returns under this approach, we include net investment income, net realized gains and losses and the change in unrealized gains and losses generated by our investment portfolio. The effect of financial market movements on the investment portfolio will directly impact net realized gains and losses as the portfolio is adjusted and rebalanced. Total return on our portfolio under management for 2010 was 7.00%, compared to 11.28% for 2009 and (2.84)% for 2008. Excluding foreign exchange, total return was 7.26% for 2010, compared to 10.56% for 2009 and (2.00)% for 2008. Total return is calculated on a pre-tax basis and before investment expenses. The lower total return in 2008 compared to 2009 and 2010 was primarily due to the widening credit spreads which occurred during the last half of 2008, along with the impact of foreign exchange rate changes. For all periods presented, net realized gains or losses from the sale of fixed maturities primarily resulted from our decisions to reduce credit exposure, to change duration targets, to rebalance our portfolios or due to relative value determinations. In addition, net realized gains or losses include changes in the market value of certain hybrid securities pursuant to applicable guidance. We recorded realized losses on such securities of $0.5 million in 2010, compared to realized gains of $14.8 million in 2009 and realized losses of $5.4 million in 2008. We elected to carry certain equity securities at fair value under the fair value option afforded by accounting guidance regarding the fair value option for financial assets and liabilities. The fair market values of such securities at December 31, 2010 were approximately $66.3 million, compared to $36.4 million at December 31, 2009. For 2010, we recorded $14.2 million of realized gains on such securities, compared to $4.4 million of realized gains for 2009 and nil in 2008.

87


Table of Contents

        We review our investment portfolio each quarter to determine if declines in market value are other-than-temporary. The process for identifying declines in the market value of investments that are other-than-temporary involves consideration of several factors. These factors include (i) an analysis of the liquidity, business prospects and overall financial condition of the issuer, (ii) the time period in which there was a significant decline in value, (iii) the significance of the decline and (iv) the analysis of specific credit events. For 2010, we recorded $11.3 million of credit related impairments in earnings, compared to $66.1 million in 2009. The other-than-temporary impairments ("OTTI") recorded in 2010 and 2009 primarily resulted from reductions in estimated recovery values on certain mortgage-backed and asset-backed securities following the review of such securities. We recorded $181.2 million of OTTI as a charge against earnings in 2008. Such amount was recorded prior to the adoption of accounting guidance regarding the recognition and presentation of OTTI, and included a portion related to credit losses and a portion related to all other factors. See note 7, "Investment Information—Other-Than-Temporary Impairments," of the notes accompanying our consolidated financial statements for additional information.

        Other expenses, which are included in our other operating expenses and part of corporate and other (non-underwriting), were $28.9 million for 2010, compared to $30.2 million for 2009 and $28.5 million for 2008. Such amounts primarily represent certain holding company costs necessary to support our worldwide insurance and reinsurance operations, share based compensation expense and costs associated with operating as a publicly traded company.

        Net foreign exchange gains for 2010 of $28.1 million consisted of net unrealized gains of $29.5 million and net realized losses of $1.4 million, compared to net foreign exchange losses for 2009 of $39.2 million which consisted of net unrealized losses of $37.6 million and net realized losses of $1.6 million. Net foreign exchange gains for 2008 of $96.6 million consisted of net unrealized gains of $97.4 million and net realized losses of $0.8 million. The 2010 and 2008 net foreign exchange gains primarily resulted from a strengthening of the U.S. Dollar against the Euro and other major currencies during those periods while the net foreign exchange losses in 2009 primarily resulted from a weakening of the U.S. Dollar. Net unrealized foreign exchange gains or losses result from the effects of revaluing our net insurance liabilities required to be settled in foreign currencies at each balance sheet date. Historically, we have held investments in foreign currencies which are intended to mitigate our exposure to foreign currency fluctuations in our net insurance liabilities. However, changes in the value of such investments due to foreign currency rate movements are reflected as a direct increase or decrease to shareholders' equity and are not included in the consolidated statements of income. As a result of the current financial and economic environment as well as the potential for additional investment returns, we may not match a portion of our projected liabilities in foreign currencies with investments in the same currencies, which could increase our exposure to foreign currency fluctuations and increase the volatility in our shareholders' equity.

        ACGL changed its legal domicile from the United States to Bermuda in November 2000. Under current Bermuda law, we are not obligated to pay any taxes in Bermuda based upon income or capital gains. We have received a written undertaking from the Minister of Finance in Bermuda under the Exempted Undertakings Tax Protection Act of 1966 that in the event legislation is enacted in Bermuda imposing tax computed on profits, income, gain or appreciation on any capital asset, or tax in the nature of estate duty or inheritance tax, such tax will not be applicable to us or our operations until March 28, 2016.

88


Table of Contents

        ACGL will be subject to U.S. federal income tax only to the extent that it derives U.S. source income that is subject to U.S. withholding tax or income that is effectively connected with the conduct of a trade or business within the U.S. and is not exempt from U.S. tax under an applicable income tax treaty. ACGL will be subject to a withholding tax on dividends from U.S. investments and interest from certain U.S. taxpayers. ACGL does not consider itself to be engaged in a trade or business within the U.S. and, consequently, does not expect to be subject to direct U.S. income taxation. However, because there is uncertainty as to the activities which constitute being engaged in a trade or business within the United States, there can be no assurances that the U.S. Internal Revenue Service will not contend successfully that ACGL or its non-U.S. subsidiaries are engaged in a trade or business in the United States. If ACGL or any of its non-U.S. subsidiaries were subject to U.S. income tax, ACGL's shareholders' equity and earnings could be materially adversely affected. ACGL has subsidiaries and branches that operate in various jurisdictions around the world that are subject to tax in the jurisdictions in which they operate. The significant jurisdictions in which ACGL's subsidiaries and branches are subject to tax include the United States, United Kingdom, Ireland, Canada, Switzerland and Denmark. See "Risk Factors—Risks Relating to Taxation" and "Business—Tax Matters."

        The income tax provision on income before income taxes resulted in an effective tax rate of 0.9% for 2010, compared to 2.3% for 2009 and 4.4% for 2008. Our effective tax rate fluctuates from year to year consistent with the relative mix of income reported by jurisdiction due primarily to the varying tax rates in each jurisdiction. We currently estimate that our comparable income tax provision in 2011 will result in an effective tax rate of approximately 1% to 3%, although no assurances can be given to that effect. See note 11, "Income Taxes," of the notes accompanying our consolidated financial statements for a reconciliation of the difference between the provision for income taxes and the expected tax provision at the weighted average statutory tax rate for 2010, 2009 and 2008.

CRITICAL ACCOUNTING POLICIES, ESTIMATES AND RECENT ACCOUNTING PRONOUNCEMENTS

        The preparation of consolidated financial statements in accordance with GAAP requires us to make many estimates and judgments that affect the reported amounts of assets, liabilities (including reserves), revenues and expenses, and related disclosures of contingent liabilities. On an ongoing basis, we evaluate our estimates, including those related to revenue recognition, insurance and other reserves, reinsurance recoverables, allowance for doubtful accounts, investment valuations, intangible assets, bad debts, income taxes, contingencies and litigation. We base our estimates on historical experience, where possible, and on various other assumptions that we believe to be reasonable under the circumstances, which form the basis for our judgments about the carrying values of assets and liabilities that are not readily apparent from other sources. Estimates and judgments for a relatively new insurance and reinsurance company, like our company, are even more difficult to make than those made in a mature company since relatively limited historical information has been reported to us through December 31, 2010. Actual results will differ from these estimates and such differences may be material. We believe that the following critical accounting policies affect significant estimates used in the preparation of our consolidated financial statements.

Reserves for Losses and Loss Adjustment Expenses

        We are required by applicable insurance laws and regulations and GAAP to establish reserves for losses and loss adjustment expenses ("Loss Reserves") that arise from the business we underwrite. Loss Reserves for our insurance and reinsurance operations are balance sheet liabilities representing estimates of future amounts required to pay losses and loss adjustment expenses for insured or reinsured events which have occurred at or before the balance sheet date. Loss Reserves do not reflect contingency reserve allowances to account for future loss occurrences. Losses arising from future events will be estimated and recognized at the time the losses are incurred and could be substantial.

89


Table of Contents

        At December 31, 2010 and 2009, our Loss Reserves, net of unpaid losses and loss adjustment expenses recoverable, by type and by operating segment were as follows:

 
  December 31,  
 
  2010   2009  

Insurance:

             

Case reserves

  $ 1,251,896   $ 1,166,441  

IBNR reserves

    2,590,529     2,431,193  
           
 

Total net reserves

  $ 3,842,425   $ 3,597,634  
           

Reinsurance:

             

Case reserves. 

  $ 747,545   $ 812,455  

Additional case reserves

    93,110     61,226  

IBNR reserves

    1,712,173     1,742,597  
           
 

Total net reserves

  $ 2,552,828   $ 2,616,278  
           

Total:

             

Case reserves. 

  $ 1,999,441   $ 1,978,896  

Additional case reserves

    93,110     61,226  

IBNR reserves

    4,302,702     4,173,790  
           
 

Total net reserves

  $ 6,395,253   $ 6,213,912  
           

        Loss Reserves for our insurance operations are comprised of (1) estimated amounts for claims reported ("case reserves") and (2) incurred but not reported ("IBNR") losses. For our insurance operations, generally, claims personnel determine whether to establish a case reserve for the estimated amount of the ultimate settlement of individual claims. The estimate reflects the judgment of claims personnel based on general corporate reserving practices, the experience and knowledge of such personnel regarding the nature and value of the specific type of claim and, where appropriate, advice of counsel. Our insurance operations also contract with a number of outside third party administrators in the claims process who, in certain cases, have limited authority to establish case reserves. The work of such administrators is reviewed and monitored by our claims personnel. Loss Reserves are also established to provide for loss adjustment expenses and represent the estimated expense of settling claims, including legal and other fees and the general expenses of administering the claims adjustment process. Periodically, adjustments to the reported or case reserves may be made as additional information regarding the claims is reported or payments are made. IBNR reserves are established to provide for incurred claims which have not yet been reported at the balance sheet date as well as to adjust for any projected variance in case reserving. Actuaries estimate ultimate losses and loss adjustment expenses using various generally accepted actuarial methods applied to known losses and other relevant information. Like case reserves, IBNR reserves are adjusted as additional information becomes known or payments are made. The process of estimating reserves involves a considerable degree of judgment by management and, as of any given date, is inherently uncertain.

        Ultimate losses and loss adjustment expenses are generally determined by extrapolation of claim emergence and settlement patterns observed in the past that can reasonably be expected to persist into the future. In forecasting ultimate losses and loss adjustment expenses with respect to any line of business, past experience with respect to that line of business is the primary resource, developed through both industry and company experience, but cannot be relied upon in isolation. Uncertainties in estimating ultimate losses and loss adjustment expenses are magnified by the time lag between when a claim actually occurs and when it is reported and settled. This time lag is sometimes referred to as the

90


Table of Contents


"claim-tail". The claim-tail for most property coverages is typically short (usually several months up to a few years). The claim-tail for certain professional liability, executive assurance and healthcare coverages, which are generally written on a claims-made basis, is typically longer than property coverages but shorter than casualty lines. The claim-tail for liability/casualty coverages, such as general liability, products liability, multiple peril coverage, and workers' compensation, may be especially long as claims are often reported and ultimately paid or settled years, or even decades, after the related loss events occur. During the long claims reporting and settlement period, additional facts regarding coverages written in prior accident years, as well as about actual claims and trends, may become known and, as a result, our insurance operations may adjust their reserves. If management determines that an adjustment is appropriate, the adjustment is recorded in the accounting period in which such determination is made in accordance with GAAP. Accordingly, should Loss Reserves need to be increased or decreased in the future from amounts currently established, future results of operations would be negatively or positively impacted, respectively.

        In determining ultimate losses and loss adjustment expenses, the cost to indemnify claimants, provide needed legal defense and other services for insureds and administer the investigation and adjustment of claims are considered. These claim costs are influenced by many factors that change over time, such as expanded coverage definitions as a result of new court decisions, inflation in costs to repair or replace damaged property, inflation in the cost of medical services and legislated changes in statutory benefits, as well as by the particular, unique facts that pertain to each claim. As a result, the rate at which claims arose in the past and the costs to settle them may not always be representative of what will occur in the future. The factors influencing changes in claim costs are often difficult to isolate or quantify and developments in paid and incurred losses from historical trends are frequently subject to multiple and conflicting interpretations. Changes in coverage terms or claims handling practices may also cause future experience and/or development patterns to vary from the past. A key objective of actuaries in developing estimates of ultimate losses and loss adjustment expenses, and resulting IBNR reserves, is to identify aberrations and systemic changes occurring within historical experience and accurately adjust for them so that the future can be projected reliably. Because of the factors previously discussed, this process requires the substantial use of informed judgment and is inherently uncertain.

        At December 31, 2010 and 2009, the insurance segment's Loss Reserves by major line of business, net of unpaid losses and loss adjustment expenses recoverable, were as follows:

 
  December 31,  
 
  2010   2009  

Casualty

  $ 656,446   $ 641,793  

Executive assurance

    599,753     536,151  

Property, energy, marine and aviation

    519,560     533,859  

Professional liability

    542,551     504,454  

Programs

    504,068     452,143  

Construction

    450,660     421,729  

Healthcare

    145,343     139,414  

National accounts casualty

    132,064     96,251  

Surety

    79,264     89,501  

Travel and accident

    31,707     29,033  

Other

    181,009     153,306  
           
 

Total net reserves

  $ 3,842,425   $ 3,597,634  
           

91


Table of Contents

        The initial reserving method for our insurance operations to date has been, to a large extent, the expected loss method, which is commonly applied when limited loss experience exists. Our insurance operations employ a number of different reserving methods depending on the line of business, the availability of historical loss experience and the stability of that loss experience. Over time, such techniques have been given more weight in the reserving process due to the continuing maturation of their Loss Reserves and the increased availability and credibility of the historical experience. Any estimates and assumptions made as part of the reserving process could prove to be inaccurate due to several factors, including the fact that relatively limited historical information has been reported to our insurance operations through December 31, 2010 in some lines of business. See below for a discussion of the key assumptions in our insurance operations' reserving process.

        Although Loss Reserves are initially determined based on underwriting and pricing analysis, our insurance operations apply several generally accepted actuarial methods, as discussed below, on a quarterly basis to evaluate their Loss Reserves, in addition to the expected loss method, in particular for Loss Reserves from more mature accident years (the year in which a loss occurred). As noted below, beginning in 2005, our insurance operations began to give a relatively small amount of weight to their own experience following reviews of open claims on lines of business written on a claims-made basis for which they developed a reasonable level of credible data. Each quarter, as part of the reserving process, actuaries at our insurance operations reaffirm that the assumptions used in the reserving process continue to form a sound basis for the projection of liabilities. If actual loss activity differs substantially from expectations based on historical information, an adjustment to loss reserves may be supported. Estimated Loss Reserves for more mature accident years are now based more on historical loss activity and patterns than on the initial assumptions based on pricing indications. More recent accident years rely more heavily on internal pricing assumptions. Our insurance operations place more or less reliance on a particular actuarial method based on the facts and circumstances at the time the estimates of Loss Reserves are made. These methods generally fall into one of the following categories or are hybrids of one or more of the following categories:

92


Table of Contents

        In the initial reserving process for casualty business, primarily consisting of primary and excess exposures written on an occurrence basis, our insurance operations primarily rely on the expected loss method. The development of our insurance operations' casualty business may be unstable due to its long-tail nature and the occurrence of high severity events, as a portion of our insurance operations' casualty business is in high excess layers. As time passes, for a given accident year, additional weight is given to the paid and incurred B-F loss development methods and historical paid and incurred loss development methods in the reserving process. Our insurance operations make a number of key assumptions in reserving for casualty business, including that the pricing loss ratio is the best estimate of the ultimate loss ratio at the time the policy is entered into, that our insurance operations' loss development patterns, which are based on a combination of company and industry loss development patterns and adjusted to reflect differences in our insurance operations' mix of business, are reasonable and that our insurance operations' claims personnel and underwriters analyses of our exposure to major events are assumed to be our best estimate of our exposure to the known claims on those events. As noted earlier, due to the long claims reporting and settlement period for casualty business, additional facts regarding coverages written in prior accident years, as well as about actual claims and trends may become known and, as a result, our insurance operations may be required to adjust their casualty reserves. The expected loss ratios used in the initial reserving process for our insurance operations' casualty business for recent accident years have varied, in some cases significantly, from earlier accident years. As the credibility of historical experience for earlier accident years increases, the experience from these accident years will be given a greater weighting in the actuarial analysis to determine future accident year expected loss ratios, adjusted for changes in pricing, loss trends, terms and conditions and reinsurance structure.

93


Table of Contents

        In the initial reserving process for property, energy, marine and aviation business, which are primarily short-tail exposures, our insurance operations rely on a combination of the reserving methods discussed above. For catastrophe-exposed business, our insurance operations' reserving process also includes the usage of catastrophe models for known events and a heavy reliance on analysis of individual catastrophic events and management judgment. The development of property losses can be unstable, especially for policies characterized by high severity, low frequency losses. As time passes, for a given accident year, additional weight is given to the paid and incurred B-F loss development methods and historical paid and incurred loss development methods in the reserving process. Our insurance operations make a number of key assumptions in their reserving process, including that historical paid and reported development patterns are stable, catastrophe models provide useful information about our exposure to catastrophic events that have occurred and our underwriters' judgment as to potential loss exposures can be relied on. The expected loss ratios used in the initial reserving process for our insurance operations' property business have varied over time due to changes in pricing, reinsurance structure, estimates of catastrophe losses, policy changes (such as attachment points, class and limits) and geographical distribution. As losses in property lines are reported relatively quickly, expected loss ratios are selected for the current accident year based upon actual attritional loss ratios for earlier accident years, adjusted for rate changes, inflation, changes in reinsurance programs and expected attritional losses based on modeling. Due to the short-tail nature of property business, reported loss experience emerges quickly and ultimate losses are known in a reasonably short period of time.

        In addition to the assumptions and development characteristics noted above for casualty and property business, our insurance operations authorize managing general agents, general agents and other producers to write program business on their behalf within prescribed underwriting authorities. This adds additional complexity to the reserving process. To monitor adherence to the underwriting guidelines given to such parties, our insurance operations periodically perform claims due diligence reviews. In the initial reserving process for program business, consisting of property and liability exposures which are primarily written on an occurrence basis, our insurance operations primarily rely on the expected loss method. As time passes, for a given accident year, additional weight is given to the paid and incurred B-F loss development methods and historical paid and incurred loss development methods in the reserving process. The expected loss ratios used in the initial reserving process for our insurance operations' program business have varied over time depending on the type of exposures written (casualty or property) and changes in pricing, loss trends, reinsurance structure and changes in the underlying business.

        In the initial reserving process for executive assurance, professional liability and healthcare business, primarily consisting of medium-tail exposures written on a claims-made basis, our insurance operations primarily rely on the expected loss method. As time passes, for a given accident year, additional weight is given to the paid and incurred B-F loss development methods and historical paid and incurred loss development methods in the reserving process. Beginning in 2005, our insurance operations began to give a relatively small amount of weight to their own experience following reviews of open claims, in particular for lines of business written on a claims-made basis for which they developed a reasonable level of credible data. Over the last few years, our insurance operations have increased their reliance on reviews of open claims. In general, the expected loss ratios established for executive assurance, professional liability and healthcare business for recent accident years vary, in some cases materially, from earlier accident years based on analysis of pricing, loss cost trends and changes in policy coverage. Since this business is primarily written on a claims-made basis and is subject to high severity, low frequency losses, a great deal of uncertainty exists in setting these initial reserves. In addition, only a limited number of years of historical experience is available for use in projecting loss experience using standard actuarial methods. As the credibility of historical experience for earlier accident years increases, the experience from these accident years will be given a greater weighting in

94


Table of Contents


the actuarial analysis to determine future accident year expected loss ratios, adjusted for the occurrence or lack of large losses, changes in pricing, loss trends, terms and conditions and reinsurance structure.

        In the initial reserving process for construction and surety business, consisting of primary and excess casualty and contract surety coverages written on an occurrence and claims-made basis, our insurance operations primarily rely on a combination of the reserving methods discussed above. Such business is subject to the assumptions and development characteristics noted above for casualty business. As time passes, for a given accident year, additional weight has been given to the paid and incurred B-F loss development methods and historical paid and incurred loss development methods in the reserving process. In general, the expected loss ratios used in the initial reserving process for our insurance operations' construction and surety business for recent accident years vary, in some cases materially, from earlier accident years. As the credibility of historical experience for earlier accident years has increased, the experience from these accident years has been given a greater weighting in the actuarial analysis to determine future accident year expected loss ratios, adjusted for anticipated changes in the regulatory environment, pricing, loss trends, terms and conditions and reinsurance structure.

        Loss Reserves for our reinsurance operations are comprised of (1) case reserves for claims reported, (2) additional case reserves ("ACRs") and (3) IBNR reserves. Our reinsurance operations receive reports of claims notices from ceding companies and record case reserves based upon the amount of reserves recommended by the ceding company. Case reserves on known events may be supplemented by ACRs, which are often estimated by our reinsurance operations' claims personnel ahead of official notification from the ceding company, or when our reinsurance operations' judgment regarding the size or severity of the known event differs from the ceding company. In certain instances, our reinsurance operations establish ACRs even when the ceding company does not report any liability on a known event. In addition, specific claim information reported by ceding companies or obtained through claim audits can alert our reinsurance operations to emerging trends such as changing legal interpretations of coverage and liability, claims from unexpected sources or classes of business, and significant changes in the frequency or severity of individual claims. Such information is often used in the process of estimating IBNR reserves.

        The estimation of Loss Reserves for our reinsurance operations is subject to the same risk factors as the estimation of Loss Reserves for our insurance operations. In addition, the inherent uncertainties of estimating such reserves are even greater for reinsurers, due primarily to the following factors: (1) the claim-tail for reinsurers is generally longer because claims are first reported to the ceding company and then to the reinsurer through one or more intermediaries, (2) the reliance on premium estimates, where reports have not been received from the ceding company, in the reserving process, (3) the potential for writing a number of reinsurance contracts with different ceding companies with the same exposure to a single loss event, (4) the diversity of loss development patterns among different types of reinsurance contracts, (5) the necessary reliance on the ceding companies for information regarding reported claims and (6) the differing reserving practices among ceding companies.

        As with our insurance operations, the process of estimating Loss Reserves for our reinsurance operations involves a considerable degree of judgment by management and, as of any given date, is inherently uncertain. As discussed above, such uncertainty is greater for reinsurers compared to insurers. As a result, our reinsurance operations obtain information from numerous sources to assist in the process. Pricing actuaries from our reinsurance operations devote considerable effort to understanding and analyzing a ceding company's operations and loss history during the underwriting of the business, using a combination of ceding company and industry statistics. Such statistics normally include historical premium and loss data by class of business, individual claim information for larger claims, distributions of insurance limits provided, loss reporting and payment patterns, and rate change

95


Table of Contents


history. This analysis is used to project expected loss ratios for each treaty during the upcoming contract period.

        As mentioned above, there can be a considerable time lag from the time a claim is reported to a ceding company to the time it is reported to the reinsurer. The lag can be several years in some cases and may be attributed to a number of reasons, including the time it takes to investigate a claim, delays associated with the litigation process, the deterioration in a claimant's physical condition many years after an accident occurs, the case reserving approach of the ceding company, etc. In the reserving process, our reinsurance operations assume that such lags are predictable, on average, over time and therefore the lags are contemplated in the loss reporting patterns used in their actuarial methods. This means that our reinsurance operations must rely on estimates for a longer period of time than does an insurance company.

        Backlogs in the recording of assumed reinsurance can also complicate the accuracy of loss reserve estimation. As of December 31, 2010, there were no significant backlogs related to the processing of assumed reinsurance information at our reinsurance operations.

        Our reinsurance operations rely heavily on information reported by ceding companies, as discussed above. In order to determine the accuracy and completeness of such information, underwriters, actuaries, and claims personnel at our reinsurance operations often perform audits of ceding companies and regularly review information received from ceding companies for unusual or unexpected results. Material findings are usually discussed with the ceding companies. Our reinsurance operations sometimes encounter situations where they determine that a claim presentation from a ceding company is not in accordance with contract terms. In these situations, our reinsurance operations attempt to resolve the dispute with the ceding company. Most situations are resolved amicably and without the need for litigation or arbitration. However, in the infrequent situations where a resolution is not possible, our reinsurance operations will vigorously defend their position in such disputes.

        At December 31, 2010 and 2009, the reinsurance segment's Loss Reserves by major line of business, net of unpaid losses and loss adjustment expenses recoverable, were as follows:

 
  December 31,  
 
  2010   2009  

Casualty

  $ 1,748,888   $ 1,792,750  

Property excluding property catastrophe

    295,425     322,476  

Marine and aviation

    194,925     228,708  

Property catastrophe

    160,237     111,784  

Other specialty

    106,241     116,799  

Other

    47,112     43,761  
           
 

Total net reserves

  $ 2,552,828   $ 2,616,278  
           

        Any estimates and assumptions made as part of the reserving process could prove to be inaccurate due to several factors, including the fact that relatively limited historical information has been reported to our reinsurance operations through December 31, 2010 in some lines of business. See below for a discussion of the key assumptions in our reinsurance operations' reserving process.

        Although Loss Reserves are initially determined based on underwriting and pricing analysis, our reinsurance operations apply several generally accepted actuarial methods, as discussed above, on a quarterly basis to evaluate their Loss Reserves in addition to the expected loss method, in particular for Loss Reserves from more mature underwriting years (the year in which business is underwritten). Each quarter, as part of the reserving process, actuaries at our reinsurance operations reaffirm that the assumptions used in the reserving process continue to form a sound basis for projection of liabilities. If actual loss activity differs substantially from expectations based on historical information, an adjustment

96


Table of Contents


to loss reserves may be supported. Estimated Loss Reserves for more mature underwriting years are now based more on actual loss activity and historical patterns than on the initial assumptions based on pricing indications. More recent underwriting years rely more heavily on internal pricing assumptions. Our reinsurance operations place more or less reliance on a particular actuarial method based on the facts and circumstances at the time the estimates of Loss Reserves are made.

        In the initial reserving process for medium-tail and long-tail lines, consisting of casualty, other specialty, marine and aviation and other exposures, our reinsurance operations primarily rely on the expected loss method. The development of medium-tail and long-tail business may be unstable, especially if there are high severity major events, with business written on an excess of loss basis typically having a longer tail than business written on a pro rata basis. As time passes, for a given underwriting year, additional weight is given to the paid and incurred B-F loss development methods and historical paid and incurred loss development methods in the reserving process. Our reinsurance operations make a number of key assumptions in reserving for medium-tail and long-tail lines, including that the pricing loss ratio is the best estimate of the ultimate loss ratio at the time the contract is entered into, historical paid and reported development patterns are stable and our reinsurance operations' claims personnel and underwriters analyses of our exposure to major events are assumed to be our best estimate of our exposure to the known claims on those events. The expected loss ratios used in our reinsurance operations' initial reserving process for medium-tail and long-tail contracts have varied over time due to changes in pricing, terms and conditions and reinsurance structure. As the credibility of historical experience for earlier underwriting years increases, the experience from these underwriting years will be used in the actuarial analysis to determine future underwriting year expected loss ratios, adjusted for changes in pricing, loss trends, terms and conditions and reinsurance structure.

        The process of estimating Loss Reserves for our reinsurance operations involves a considerable degree of judgment by management and, as of any given date, is inherently uncertain. The inherent uncertainties of estimating such reserves are even greater for reinsurers than for insurers due to the longer claim-tail for reinsurers, the reliance on premium estimates in the reserving process, the diversity and instability of loss development patterns, the necessary reliance on the ceding companies for information regarding reported claims and the differing reserving practices among ceding companies.

        In the initial reserving process for short-tail lines, consisting of property excluding property catastrophe and property catastrophe exposures, our reinsurance operations rely on a combination of the reserving methods discussed above. For known catastrophic events, our reinsurance operations' reserving process also includes the usage of catastrophe models and a heavy reliance on analysis which includes ceding company inquiries and management judgment. The development of property losses may be unstable, especially where there is high catastrophic exposure, may be characterized by high severity, low frequency losses for excess and catastrophe-exposed business and may be highly correlated across contracts. As time passes, for a given underwriting year, additional weight is given to the paid and incurred B-F loss development methods and historical paid and incurred loss development methods in the reserving process. Our reinsurance operations make a number of key assumptions in reserving for short-tail lines, including that historical paid and reported development patterns are stable, catastrophe models provide useful information about our exposure to catastrophic events that have occurred and our underwriters' judgment and guidance received from ceding companies as to potential loss exposures may be relied on. The expected loss ratios used in the initial reserving process for our reinsurance operations' property exposures have varied over time due to changes in pricing, reinsurance structure, estimates of catastrophe losses, terms and conditions and geographical distribution. As losses in property lines are reported relatively quickly, expected loss ratios are selected for the current underwriting year incorporating the experience for earlier underwriting years, adjusted for rate changes, inflation, changes in reinsurance programs, expectations about present and future market conditions and expected attritional losses based on modeling. Due to the short-tail nature of property business, reported loss experience emerges quickly and ultimate losses are known in a reasonably short period of time.

97


Table of Contents

        The tables below summarize the effect of reasonably likely scenarios on the key actuarial assumptions used to estimate our Loss Reserves, net of unpaid losses and loss adjustment expenses recoverable, at December 31, 2010 by operating segment. The scenarios shown in the tables summarize the effect of (i) changes to the expected loss ratio selections used at December 31, 2010, which represent loss ratio point increases or decreases to the expected loss ratios used, and (ii) changes to the loss development patterns used in our reserving process at December 31, 2010, which represent claims reporting that is either slower or faster than the reporting patterns used. We believe that the illustrated sensitivities are indicative of the potential variability inherent in the estimation process of those parameters. The results show the impact of varying each key actuarial assumption using the chosen sensitivity on our Loss Reserves, net of unpaid losses and loss adjustment expenses recoverable, across all accident years.

 
  Higher
Expected
Loss Ratios
  Slower Loss
Development
Patterns
  Lower
Expected
Loss Ratios
  Faster Loss
Development
Patterns
 

INSURANCE SEGMENT

                         

Reserving lines selected assumptions:

                         

Property, energy, marine and aviation

    5 points     3 months     (5) points     (3) months  

Third party occurrence business(1)

    10     6     (10 )   (6 )

Third party claims-made business(2)

    10     6     (10 )   (6 )

All other(3)

    10     6     (10 )   (6 )

Increase (decrease) in Loss Reserves, net:

                         

Property, energy, marine and aviation

  $ 31,702   $ 29,531   $ (31,702 ) $ (18,361 )

Third party occurrence business(1)

    154,788     90,811     (154,788 )   (83,387 )

Third party claims-made business(2)

    126,932     169,133     (126,932 )   (103,887 )

All other(3)

    80,372     56,337     (80,372 )   (49,824 )

(1)
Third party occurrence business includes casualty, construction, national accounts casualty and excess workers compensation business.

(2)
Third party claims-made business includes executive assurance, healthcare and professional liability business.

(3)
All other includes programs, surety, travel and accident and other business.

98


Table of Contents

 
  Higher
Expected
Loss Ratios
  Slower Loss
Development
Patterns
  Lower
Expected
Loss Ratios
  Faster Loss
Development
Patterns
 

REINSURANCE SEGMENT

                         

Reserving lines selected assumptions:

                         

Casualty

    10 points     6 months     (10) points     (6) months  

Property excluding property catastrophe

    5     3     (5 )   (3 )

Marine and aviation

    5     3     (5 )   (3 )

Property catastrophe

    5     3     (5 )   (3 )

Other specialty

    5     3     (5 )   (3 )

Other

    5     3     (5 )   (3 )

Increase (decrease) in Loss Reserves, net:

                         

Casualty

  $ 153,885   $ 166,662   $ (153,885 ) $ (140,970 )

Property excluding property catastrophe

    11,796     28,039     (11,796 )   (26,260 )

Marine and aviation

    4,768     7,658     (4,768 )   (7,594 )

Property catastrophe

    15,792     24,765     (15,792 )   (16,620 )

Other specialty

    11,421     8,285     (11,421 )   (10,056 )

Other

    2,742     969     (2,742 )   (991 )

        It is not necessarily appropriate to sum the total impact for a specific factor or the total impact for a specific business category as the business categories are not perfectly correlated. In addition, the potential variability shown in the tables above are reasonably likely scenarios of changes in our key assumptions at December 31, 2010 and are not meant to be a "best case" or "worst case" series of outcomes and, therefore, it is possible that future variations may be more or less than the amounts set forth above.

        In order to illustrate the potential volatility in our Loss Reserves, we used a Monte Carlo simulation approach to simulate a range of results based on various probabilities. Both the probabilities and related modeling are subject to inherent uncertainties. The simulation relies on a significant number of assumptions, such as the potential for multiple entities to react similarly to external events, and includes other statistical assumptions. At December 31, 2010, our recorded Loss Reserves by operating segment, net of unpaid losses and loss adjustment expenses recoverable, and the results of the simulation were as follows:

 
  December 31, 2010  
 
  Insurance   Reinsurance   Total  

Total net reserves

  $ 3,842,425   $ 2,552,828   $ 6,395,253  
               

Simulation results:

                   
 

90th percentile(1)

  $ 4,609,631   $ 3,335,549   $ 7,641,448  
 

10th percentile(2)

  $ 3,134,431   $ 1,877,587   $ 5,255,472  

(1)
Simulation results indicate that a 90% probability exists that the net reserves for losses and loss adjustment expenses will not exceed the indicated amount.

(2)
Simulation results indicate that a 10% probability exists that the net reserves for losses and loss adjustment expenses will be at or below the indicated amount.

        The simulation results shown for each segment do not add to the total simulation results, as the individual segment simulation results do not reflect the diversification effects across our segments. For informational purposes, based on the total simulation results, a change in our Loss Reserves to the

99


Table of Contents


amount indicated at the 90th percentile would result in a decrease in income before income taxes of approximately $1.25 billion, or $23.73 per diluted share, while a change in our Loss Reserves to the amount indicated at the 10th percentile would result in an increase in income before income taxes of approximately $1.14 billion, or $21.70 per diluted share. The simulation results noted above are informational only, and no assurance can be given that our ultimate losses will not be significantly different than the simulation results shown above, and such differences could directly and significantly impact earnings favorably or unfavorably in the period they are determined. We do not have significant exposure to pre-2002 liabilities, such as asbestos-related illnesses and other long-tail liabilities. Our limited history does not provide meaningful trend information for certain liability/casualty coverages for which the claim-tail may be especially long, as claims are often reported and ultimately paid or settled years, or even decades, after the related loss events occur.

Ceded Reinsurance

        In the normal course of business, our insurance operations cede a portion of their premium on a quota share or excess of loss basis through treaty or facultative reinsurance agreements. Our reinsurance operations also obtain reinsurance whereby another reinsurer contractually agrees to indemnify it for all or a portion of the reinsurance risks underwritten by our reinsurance operations. Such arrangements, where one reinsurer provides reinsurance to another reinsurer, are usually referred to as "retrocessional reinsurance" arrangements. In addition, our reinsurance subsidiaries participate in "common account" retrocessional arrangements for certain pro rata treaties. Such arrangements reduce the effect of individual or aggregate losses to all companies participating on such treaties, including the reinsurers, such as our reinsurance operations, and the ceding company. Reinsurance recoverables are recorded as assets, predicated on the reinsurers' ability to meet their obligations under the reinsurance agreements. If the reinsurers are unable to satisfy their obligations under the agreements, our insurance or reinsurance operations would be liable for such defaulted amounts.

        The availability and cost of reinsurance and retrocessional protection is subject to market conditions, which are beyond our control. Although we believe that our insurance and reinsurance operations have been successful in obtaining reinsurance and retrocessional protection, it is not certain that they will be able to continue to obtain adequate protection at cost effective levels. As a result of such market conditions and other factors, our insurance and reinsurance operations may not be able to successfully mitigate risk through reinsurance and retrocessional arrangements and may lead to increased volatility in our results of operations in future periods. See "Risk Factors—Risks Relating to Our Industry—The failure of any of the loss limitation methods we employ could have a material adverse effect on our financial condition or results of operations."

        Our insurance operations had in effect during 2010 a reinsurance program which provided coverage equal to a maximum of 77% of the first $275 million in excess of a $75 million retention per occurrence for certain property catastrophe-related losses occurring during 2010. During 2009, a reinsurance program was in effect which provided coverage equal to a maximum of 80% of the first $275 million in excess of a $75 million retention per occurrence for certain property catastrophe-related losses occurring during 2009, compared to a maximum of 70% of the first $275 million in excess of a $75 million retention per occurrence during 2008. In the 2011 first quarter, our insurance operations renewed its reinsurance program which provides coverage for certain property-catastrophe related losses occurring during 2011 equal to a maximum of 84% of the first $250 million in excess of a $100 million retention per occurrence.

        For purposes of managing risk, we reinsure a portion of our exposures, paying to reinsurers a part of the premiums received on the policies we write, and we may also use retrocessional protection. Ceded premiums written represented approximately 23.1% of gross premiums written for 2010, compared to 23.1% for 2009 and 23.5% for 2008. We monitor the financial condition of our reinsurers and attempt to place coverages only with substantial, financially sound carriers. If the financial

100


Table of Contents


condition of our reinsurers or retrocessionaires deteriorates, resulting in an impairment of their ability to make payments, we will provide for probable losses resulting from our inability to collect amounts due from such parties, as appropriate. We evaluate the credit worthiness of all the reinsurers to which we cede business. If our analysis indicates that there is significant uncertainty regarding the collectability of amounts due from reinsurers, managing general agents, brokers and other clients, we will record a provision for doubtful accounts. See "Risk Factors—Risks Relating to Our Company—We are exposed to credit risk in certain of our business operations" and "Financial Condition, Liquidity and Capital Resources—Financial Condition—Premiums Receivable and Reinsurance Recoverables" for further details.

Premium Revenues and Related Expenses

        Insurance premiums written are generally recorded at the policy inception and are primarily earned on a pro rata basis over the terms of the policies for all products, usually 12 months. Premiums written include estimates in our insurance operations' programs, specialty lines, collateral protection business and for participation in involuntary pools. The amount of such insurance premium estimates, included in premiums receivable and other assets, was $60.8 million at December 31, 2010, compared to $49.2 million at 2009. Such premium estimates are derived from multiple sources which include the historical experience of the underlying business, similar business and available industry information. Unearned premium reserves represent the portion of premiums written that relates to the unexpired terms of in-force insurance policies.

        Reinsurance premiums written include amounts reported by brokers and ceding companies, supplemented by our own estimates of premiums where reports have not been received. The determination of premium estimates requires a review of our experience with the ceding companies, familiarity with each market, the timing of the reported information, an analysis and understanding of the characteristics of each line of business, and management's judgment of the impact of various factors, including premium or loss trends, on the volume of business written and ceded to us. On an ongoing basis, our underwriters review the amounts reported by these third parties for reasonableness based on their experience and knowledge of the subject class of business, taking into account our historical experience with the brokers or ceding companies. In addition, reinsurance contracts under which we assume business generally contain specific provisions which allow us to perform audits of the ceding company to ensure compliance with the terms and conditions of the contract, including accurate and timely reporting of information. Based on a review of all available information, management establishes premium estimates where reports have not been received. Premium estimates are updated when new information is received and differences between such estimates and actual amounts are recorded in the period in which estimates are changed or the actual amounts are determined. Premiums written are recorded based on the type of contracts we write. Premiums on our excess of loss and pro rata reinsurance contracts are estimated when the business is underwritten. For excess of loss contracts, premiums are recorded as written based as the terms of the contract. Estimates of premiums written under pro rata contracts are recorded in the period in which the underlying risks incept and are based on information provided by the brokers and the ceding companies. For multi-year reinsurance treaties which are payable in annual installments, generally, only the initial annual installment is included as premiums written at policy inception due to the ability of the reinsured to commute or cancel coverage during the term of the policy. The remaining annual installments are included as premiums written at each successive anniversary date within the multi-year term.

        Reinstatement premiums for our insurance and reinsurance operations are recognized at the time a loss event occurs, where coverage limits for the remaining life of the contract are reinstated under pre-defined contract terms. Reinstatement premiums, if obligatory, are fully earned when recognized. The accrual of reinstatement premiums is based on an estimate of losses and loss adjustment expenses,

101


Table of Contents


which reflects management's judgment, as described above in "—Reserves for Losses and Loss Adjustment Expenses."

        The amount of reinsurance premium estimates included in premiums receivable and the amount of related acquisition expenses by type of business were as follows at December 31, 2010 and 2009:

 
  December 31, 2010   December 31, 2009  
 
  Gross
Amount
  Acquisition
Expenses
  Net
Amount
  Gross
Amount
  Acquisition
Expenses
  Net
Amount
 

Casualty

  $ 59,796   $ (11,934 ) $ 47,862   $ 97,341   $ (23,465 ) $ 73,876  

Property excluding property catastrophe

    47,552     (12,474 )   35,078     55,086     (14,611 )   40,475  

Other specialty

    40,761     (12,006 )   28,755     18,971     (4,549 )   14,422  

Marine and aviation

    27,354     (7,346 )   20,008     34,866     (8,738 )   26,128  

Property catastrophe

    1,527     (82 )   1,445     1,207     (95 )   1,112  

Other

    279     (15 )   264     150     (8 )   142  
                           
 

Total

  $ 177,269   $ (43,857 ) $ 133,412   $ 207,621   $ (51,466 ) $ 156,155  
                           

        Premium estimates are reviewed by management at least quarterly. Such review includes a comparison of actual reported premiums to expected ultimate premiums along with a review of the aging and collection of premium estimates. Based on management's review, the appropriateness of the premium estimates is evaluated, and any adjustment to these estimates is recorded in the period in which it becomes known. Adjustments to premium estimates could be material and such adjustments could directly and significantly impact earnings favorably or unfavorably in the period they are determined because the estimated premium may be fully or substantially earned.

        A significant portion of amounts included as premiums receivable, which represent estimated premiums written, net of commissions, are not currently due based on the terms of the underlying contracts. Based on currently available information, management believes that the premium estimates included in premiums receivable will be collectible and, therefore, no provision for doubtful accounts has been recorded on the premium estimates at December 31, 2010.

        Reinsurance premiums assumed, irrespective of the class of business, are generally earned on a pro rata basis over the terms of the underlying policies or reinsurance contracts. Contracts and policies written on a "losses occurring" basis cover claims that may occur during the term of the contract or policy, which is typically 12 months. Accordingly, the premium is earned evenly over the term. Contracts which are written on a "risks attaching" basis cover claims which attach to the underlying insurance policies written during the terms of such contracts. Premiums earned on such contracts usually extend beyond the original term of the reinsurance contract, typically resulting in recognition of premiums earned over a 24-month period.

        Certain of our reinsurance contracts include provisions that adjust premiums or acquisition expenses based upon the experience under the contracts. Premiums written and earned, as well as related acquisition expenses, are recorded based upon the projected experience under such contracts.

        Retroactive reinsurance reimburses a ceding company for liabilities incurred as a result of past insurable events covered by the underlying policies reinsured. In certain instances, reinsurance contracts cover losses both on a prospective basis and on a retroactive basis and, accordingly, we bifurcate the prospective and retrospective elements of these reinsurance contracts and account for each element separately. Underwriting income generated in connection with retroactive reinsurance contracts is deferred and amortized into income over the settlement period while losses are charged to income immediately. Subsequent changes in estimated or actual cash flows under such retroactive reinsurance contracts are accounted for by adjusting the previously deferred amount to the balance that would have

102


Table of Contents


existed had the revised estimate been available at the inception of the reinsurance transaction, with a corresponding charge or credit to income.

        Acquisition expenses and other expenses that vary with, and are directly related to, the acquisition of business in our underwriting operations are deferred and amortized over the period in which the related premiums are earned. Acquisition expenses, net of ceding commissions received from reinsurers, consist primarily of commissions and premium taxes paid to obtain our business. Other operating expenses also include expenses that vary with, and are directly related to, the acquisition of business. Deferred acquisition costs, which are based on the related unearned premiums, are carried at their estimated realizable value and take into account anticipated losses and loss adjustment expenses, based on historical and current experience, and anticipated investment income. A premium deficiency occurs if the sum of anticipated losses and loss adjustment expenses, unamortized acquisition costs and maintenance costs and anticipated investment income exceed unearned premiums. A premium deficiency is recorded by charging any unamortized acquisition costs to expense to the extent required in order to eliminate the deficiency. If the premium deficiency exceeds unamortized acquisition costs then a liability is accrued for the excess deficiency. No significant premium deficiency charges were recorded by us during 2010, 2009 or 2008.

Fair Value Measurements

        Accounting guidance regarding fair value measurements addresses how companies should measure fair value when they are required to use a fair value measure for recognition or disclosure purposes under GAAP and provides a common definition of fair value to be used throughout GAAP. It defines fair value as the price that would be received to sell an asset or paid to transfer a liability in an orderly fashion between market participants at the measurement date. In addition, it establishes a three-level valuation hierarchy for the disclosure of fair value measurements. The valuation hierarchy is based upon the transparency of inputs to the valuation of an asset or liability as of the measurement date. The level in the hierarchy within which a given fair value measurement falls is determined based on the lowest level input that is significant to the measurement (Level 1 being the highest priority and Level 3 being the lowest priority).

        We determine the existence of an active market based on our judgment as to whether transactions for the financial instrument occur in such market with sufficient frequency and volume to provide reliable pricing information. The independent pricing sources obtain market quotations and actual transaction prices for securities that have quoted prices in active markets. We use quoted values and other data provided by nationally recognized independent pricing sources as inputs into our process for determining fair values of our fixed maturity investments. To validate the techniques or models used by pricing sources, our review process includes, but is not limited to: (i) quantitative analysis (e.g., comparing the quarterly return for each managed portfolio to their target benchmark, with significant differences identified and investigated); (ii) a review of the average number of prices obtained in the pricing process and the range of resulting market values; (iii) initial and ongoing evaluation of methodologies used by outside parties to calculate fair value including a review of deep dive reports on selected securities which indicated the use of observable inputs in the pricing process; (iv) comparing the fair value estimates to our knowledge of the current market; (v) a comparison of the pricing services' fair values to other pricing services' fair values for the same investments; and (vi) back-testing, which includes randomly selecting purchased or sold securities and comparing the executed prices to the fair value estimates from the pricing service. At December 31, 2010, we obtained an average of 2.7 quotes per investment, compared to 2.6 quotes at December 31, 2009. Where multiple quotes or prices were obtained, a price source hierarchy was maintained in order to determine which price source provided the fair value (i.e., a price obtained from a pricing service with more seniority in the hierarchy will be used from a less senior one in all cases). The hierarchy prioritizes pricing services based on availability and reliability and assigns the highest priority to index providers. Based on the above

103


Table of Contents


review, we will challenge any prices for a security or portfolio which are considered not to be representative of fair value.

        The independent pricing sources obtain market quotations and actual transaction prices for securities that have quoted prices in active markets. Each source has its own proprietary method for determining the fair value of securities that are not actively traded. In general, these methods involve the use of "matrix pricing" in which the independent pricing source uses observable market inputs including, but not limited to, investment yields, credit risks and spreads, benchmarking of like securities, broker-dealer quotes, reported trades and sector groupings to determine a reasonable fair market value. In addition, pricing vendors use model processes, such as an Option Adjusted Spread model, to develop prepayment and interest rate scenarios. The Option Adjusted Spread model is commonly used to estimate fair value for securities such as mortgage backed and asset backed securities. In certain circumstances, when fair market values are unavailable from these independent pricing sources, quotes are obtained directly from broker-dealers who are active in the corresponding markets. Such quotes are subject to the validation procedures noted above. Of the $11.44 billion of financial assets and liabilities measured at fair value at December 31, 2010, approximately $1.81 billion, or 15.8%, were priced using non-binding broker-dealer quotes.

        In April 2009, the FASB issued guidance regarding the determination of fair value when the volume and level of activity for the asset or liability have significantly decreased and the identification of transactions that are not orderly. This affirms that the objective of fair value when the market for an asset is not active is the price that would be received to sell the asset in an orderly transaction, and clarifies and includes additional factors for determining whether there has been a significant decrease in market activity for an asset when the market for that asset is not active. Under this guidance, if an entity determines that there has been a significant decrease in the volume and level of activity for the asset or the liability in relation to the normal market activity for the asset or liability (or similar assets or liabilities), then transactions or quoted prices may not accurately reflect fair value. In addition, if there is evidence that the transaction for the asset or liability is not orderly, the entity shall place little, if any weight on that transaction price as an indicator of fair value. This guidance also expanded certain disclosure requirements. The adoption of this guidance did not have a material impact on our consolidated financial condition or results of operations.

        We review our securities measured at fair value and discuss the proper classification of such investments with investment advisors and others. See note 8, "Fair Value," of the notes accompanying our consolidated financial statements for a summary of our financial assets and liabilities measured at fair value at December 31, 2010 by valuation hierarchy.

Other-Than-Temporary Impairments

        On a quarterly basis, we perform reviews of our investments to determine whether declines in market value below the cost basis are considered other-than-temporary in accordance with applicable accounting guidance regarding the recognition and presentation of OTTI. The process of determining whether a security is other-than-temporarily impaired requires judgment and involves analyzing many factors. These factors include (i) an analysis of the liquidity, business prospects and overall financial condition of the issuer, (ii) the time period in which there was a significant decline in value, (iii) the significance of the decline, and (iv) the analysis of specific credit events. We evaluate the unrealized losses of our equity securities by issuer and determine if we can forecast a reasonable period of time by which the fair value of the securities would increase and we would recover our cost. If we are unable to forecast a reasonable period of time in which to recover the cost of our equity securities, we record a net impairment loss in earnings equivalent to the entire unrealized loss.

        In 2009, we adopted additional guidance that requires entities to separate an other-than-temporary impairment of a debt security into two components when there are credit related losses associated with

104


Table of Contents


the impaired debt security for which an entity asserts that it does not have the intent to sell the security, and it is more likely than not that it will not be required to sell the security before recovery of its cost basis. The effect of adoption was an increase to the amortized cost basis of debt securities that were impaired prior to 2009, net of deferred tax, of $62.0 million. The cumulative effect adjustment had no effect on total shareholders' equity as it increased retained earnings and reduced accumulated other comprehensive income.

        In accordance with the additional guidance, the amount of the OTTI related to a credit loss is recognized in earnings, and the amount of the OTTI related to other factors (e.g., interest rates, market conditions, etc.) is recorded as a component of other comprehensive income (loss). The amount of the credit loss of an impaired debt security is the difference between the amortized cost and the greater of (i) the present value of expected future cash flows and (ii) the fair value of the security. In instances where no credit loss exists but it is more likely than not that we will have to sell the debt security prior to the anticipated recovery, the decline in market value below amortized cost is recognized as an OTTI in earnings. In periods after the recognition of an OTTI on debt securities, we account for such securities as if they had been purchased on the measurement date of the OTTI at an amortized cost basis equal to the previous amortized cost basis less the OTTI recognized in earnings. For debt securities for which OTTI were recognized in earnings, the difference between the new amortized cost basis and the cash flows expected to be collected will be accreted or amortized into net investment income.

        During 2010, we recorded $11.3 million of net impairment losses recognized in earnings, compared to $66.1 million in 2009. See note 7, "Investment Information—Other-Than-Temporary Impairments," of the notes accompanying our consolidated financial statements for additional information.

Reclassifications

        We have reclassified the presentation of certain prior year information to conform to the current presentation. Such reclassifications had no effect on our net income, shareholders' equity or cash flows.

Recent Accounting Pronouncements

        See note 2(o), "Significant Accounting Policies—Recent Accounting Pronouncements," of the notes accompanying our consolidated financial statements.

FINANCIAL CONDITION, LIQUIDITY AND CAPITAL RESOURCES

Financial Condition

        The finance and investment committee of our board of directors establishes our investment policies and sets the parameters for creating guidelines for our investment managers. The finance and investment committee reviews the implementation of the investment strategy on a regular basis. Our current approach stresses preservation of capital, market liquidity and diversification of risk. While maintaining our emphasis on preservation of capital and liquidity, we expect our portfolio to become more diversified and, as a result, we may expand into areas which are not currently part of our investment strategy. Our Chief Investment Officer administers the investment portfolio, oversees our investment managers, formulates investment strategy in conjunction with our finance and investment committee and directly manages certain portions of our fixed income and equity portfolios.

105


Table of Contents

        The following table summarizes our investable assets:

 
  December 31,  
 
  2010   2009  

Fixed maturities available for sale, at market value

  $ 9,082,828   $ 9,391,926  

Fixed maturities pledged under securities lending agreements, at market value(1)

    75,575     208,826  
           
 

Total fixed maturities

    9,158,403     9,600,752  

Short-term investments available for sale, at market value

    915,841     571,490  

Short-term investments pledged under securities lending agreements, at market value(1)

        3,993  

Cash

    362,740     334,571  

TALF investments, at market value(2)

    402,449     250,265  

Equity securities available for sale, at market value

    363,255     36,623  

Other investments

             
 

Fixed income investment funds

    266,267     63,146  
 

Other

    83,005     72,403  

Investment funds accounted for using the equity method

    434,600     391,869  
           
 

Total cash and investments(1)

    11,986,560     11,325,112  

Securities transactions entered into but not settled at the balance sheet date

    (144,047 )   50,790  
           
 

Total investable assets

  $ 11,842,513   $ 11,375,902  
           

(1)
In our securities lending transactions, we receive collateral in excess of the market value of the fixed maturities and short-term investments pledged under securities lending agreements. For purposes of this table, we have excluded the investment of collateral received and reinvested at December 31, 2010 and 2009 of $69.7 million and $207.0 million, respectively, and included the $75.6 million and $212.8 million, respectively, of "fixed maturities and short-term investments pledged under securities lending agreements, at market value."

(2)
We participate in the Federal Reserve Bank of New York's ("FRBNY") Term Asset-Backed Securities Loan Facility ("TALF"). TALF provides secured financing for asset-backed securities backed by certain types of consumer and small business loans and for legacy commercial mortgage-backed securities.

        At December 31, 2010, our fixed income portfolio, which includes fixed maturity securities and short-term investments, had a "AA+" average Standard & Poor's quality rating and an average yield to maturity (imbedded book yield), before investment expenses, of 3.52%. At December 31, 2009, our fixed income portfolio had a "AA+" average Standard & Poor's quality rating and an average yield to maturity (imbedded book yield), before investment expenses, of 3.64%. Our investment portfolio had an average effective duration of 2.83 years at December 31, 2010, compared to 2.87 years at December 31, 2009. At December 31, 2010, approximately $7.48 billion, or 65%, of our total investments and cash was internally managed, compared to $6.63 billion, or 58%, at December 31, 2009.

106


Table of Contents

        The following table summarizes our fixed maturities and fixed maturities pledged under securities lending agreements (excluding TALF investments), and equity securities:

 
  Estimated
Market
Value
  Gross
Unrealized
Gains
  Gross
Unrealized
Losses
  Cost or
Amortized
Cost
  OTTI
Unrealized
Losses(1)
 

At December 31, 2010

                               

Fixed maturities and fixed maturities pledged under securities lending agreements:

                               

Corporate bonds

  $ 2,839,344   $ 97,400   $ (18,343 ) $ 2,760,287   $ (18,047 )

Mortgage backed securities

    1,806,813     18,801     (26,893 )   1,814,905     (21,147 )

Municipal bonds

    1,182,100     40,410     (6,958 )   1,148,648     (125 )

Commercial mortgage backed securities

    1,167,299     31,743     (6,028 )   1,141,584     (3,481 )

U.S. government and government agencies

    872,149     20,150     (5,696 )   857,695     (207 )

Non-U.S. government securities

    732,666     39,539     (11,894 )   705,021     (72 )

Asset backed securities

    558,032     20,672     (3,990 )   541,350     (3,954 )
                       
 

Total

  $ 9,158,403   $ 268,715   $ (79,802 ) $ 8,969,490   $ (47,033 )
                       

Equity securities:

                               
 

Total

  $ 363,255   $ 20,660   $ (3,424 ) $ 346,019        
                         

At December 31, 2009

                               

Fixed maturities and fixed maturities pledged under securities lending agreements:

                               

Corporate bonds

  $ 3,134,088   $ 99,446   $ (12,983 ) $ 3,047,625   $ (19,667 )

Mortgage backed securities

    1,449,382     13,158     (45,536 )   1,481,760     (43,930 )

Municipal bonds

    957,752     44,043     (2,284 )   915,993     (145 )

Commercial mortgage backed securities

    1,185,799     35,161     (11,724 )   1,162,362     (3,750 )

U.S. government and government agencies

    1,553,672     8,716     (12,999 )   1,557,955     (499 )

Non-U.S. government securities

    752,215     41,858     (7,712 )   718,069     (351 )

Asset backed securities

    567,844     21,713     (8,220 )   554,351     (6,111 )
                       
 

Total

  $ 9,600,752   $ 264,095   $ (101,458 ) $ 9,438,115   $ (74,453 )
                       

Equity securities:

                               
 

Total

  $ 36,623   $ 145   $   $ 36,478        
                         

(1)
Represents the total other-than-temporary impairments ("OTTI") recognized in accumulated other comprehensive income ("AOCI"). It does not include the change in market value subsequent to the impairment measurement date. At December 31, 2010, the net unrealized loss related to securities for which a non-credit OTTI was recognized in AOCI was $7.1 million, compared to $37.9 million at December 31, 2009.

107


Table of Contents

        The following table provides the credit quality distribution of our fixed maturities and fixed maturities pledged under securities lending agreements (excluding TALF investments):

 
  December 31, 2010   December 31, 2009  
Rating(1)
  Estimated
Market
Value
  % of Total   Estimated
Market
Value
  % of Total  

AAA

  $ 6,531,757     71.3   $ 7,072,381     73.7  

AA

    1,053,666     11.5     1,281,377     13.3  

A

    605,483     6.6     547,104     5.7  

BBB

    388,564     4.2     231,988     2.4  

BB

    133,673     1.5     85,952     0.9  

B

    242,479     2.6     209,417     2.2  

Lower than B

    109,596     1.2     80,871     0.8  

Not rated

    93,185     1.1     91,662     1.0  
                   
 

Total

  $ 9,158,403     100.0   $ 9,600,752     100.0  
                   

(1)
Ratings as assigned by the major rating agencies.

        The following table provides information on the severity of the unrealized loss position as a percentage of amortized cost for all fixed maturities and fixed maturities pledged under securities lending agreements which were in an unrealized loss position:

 
  December 31, 2010   December 31, 2009  
Severity of Unrealized Loss
  Estimated
Market
Value
  Gross
Unrealized
Losses
  % of
Total Gross
Unrealized
Losses
  Estimated
Market
Value
  Gross
Unrealized
Losses
  % of
Total Gross
Unrealized
Losses
 

0  - 10%

  $ 2,650,335   $ (58,941 )   73.8   $ 2,892,977   $ (39,362 )   38.8  

10 - 20%

    79,419     (11,896 )   14.9     162,875     (28,542 )   28.1  

20 - 30%

    18,799     (5,721 )   7.2     36,872     (10,957 )   10.8  

30 - 40%

    1,373     (689 )   0.9     24,214     (12,204 )   12.0  

40 - 50%

    733     (660 )   0.8     8,031     (6,316 )   6.2  

50 - 100%

    465     (1,895 )   2.4     1,079     (4,077 )   4.1  
                           
 

Total

  $ 2,751,124   $ (79,802 )   100.0   $ 3,126,048   $ (101,458 )   100.0  
                           

        The following table provides information on the severity of the unrealized loss position as a percentage of amortized cost for non-investment grade fixed maturities and fixed maturities pledged under securities lending agreements which were in an unrealized loss position:

 
  December 31, 2010   December 31, 2009  
Severity of Unrealized Loss
  Estimated
Market
Value
  Gross
Unrealized
Losses
  % of
Total Gross
Unrealized
Losses
  Estimated
Market
Value
  Gross
Unrealized
Losses
  % of
Total Gross
Unrealized
Losses
 

0 - 10%

  $ 74,340   $ (2,845 )   3.6   $ 64,198   $ (2,384 )   2.3  

10 - 20%

    36,900     (5,475 )   6.9     75,235     (13,139 )   12.9  

20 - 30%

    7,918     (2,619 )   3.3     8,550     (2,309 )   2.3  

30 - 40%

    1,054     (537 )   0.7     19,673     (9,704 )   9.6  

40 - 50%

    733     (659 )   0.8     3,303     (2,603 )   2.6  

50 - 100%

    466     (1,895 )   2.4     1,078     (3,335 )   3.3  
                           
 

Total

  $ 121,411   $ (14,030 )   17.7   $ 172,037   $ (33,474 )   33.0  
                           

108


Table of Contents

        At December 31, 2010, below-investment grade securities comprised approximately 6% of our fixed maturities and fixed maturities pledged under securities lending agreements, compared to approximately 5% at December 31, 2009. In accordance with our investment strategy, we invest in high yield fixed income securities which are included in "Corporate bonds." Upon issuance, these securities are typically rated below investment grade (i.e., rating assigned by the major rating agencies of "BB" or less). In the table above, corporate bonds represented 26% of the total below investment grade securities at market value, mortgage backed securities represented 69% of the total and 5% were in other classes at December 31, 2010. At December 31, 2009, corporate bonds represented 27% of the total below investment grade securities at market value, mortgage backed securities represented 69% of the total and 4% were in other classes. Unrealized losses include the impact of foreign exchange movements on certain securities denominated in foreign currencies and, as such, the amount of securities in an unrealized loss position fluctuates due to foreign currency movements.

        We determine estimated recovery values for our fixed maturities and fixed maturities pledged under securities lending agreements following a review of the business prospects, credit ratings, estimated loss given default factors and information received from asset managers and rating agencies for each security. For structured securities, we utilize underlying data, where available, for each security provided by asset managers and additional information from credit agencies in order to determine an expected recovery value for each security. The analysis provided by the asset managers includes expected cash flow projections under base case and stress case scenarios which modify expected default expectations and loss severities and slow down prepayment assumptions. In the tables above, securities at December 31, 2010 which were in an unrealized loss position of greater than 40% of amortized cost were primarily in asset backed and mortgage backed securities where the estimated market value for the securities was lower than our expected recovery value.

        The following table summarizes our top ten exposures to fixed income corporate issuers by market value at December 31, 2010, excluding guaranteed amounts:

 
  Estimated
Market Value
  Credit
Rating

JPMorgan Chase & Co. 

  $ 83,798   AA-

General Electric Co. 

    67,090   AA+

Sovrisc BV

    40,984   AAA

Bank of America Corp. 

    39,615   A+

Wal-Mart Stores Inc. 

    38,397   AA

Citigroup Inc. 

    37,001   AA-

Barclays PLC

    34,725   AA-

Wells Fargo & Company

    28,472   AA-

Royal Dutch Shell PLC

    26,233   AA

National Australia Bank Limited

    25,541   AA
         

Total

  $ 421,856    
         

        Our portfolio includes investments, such as mortgage-backed securities, which are subject to prepayment risk. At December 31, 2010, our investments in mortgage-backed securities ("MBS"), excluding commercial mortgage-backed securities, amounted to approximately $1.81 billion, or 15.3% of total investable assets, compared to $1.45 billion, or 12.7%, at December 31, 2009. As with other fixed income investments, the market value of these securities fluctuates depending on market and other general economic conditions and the interest rate environment. Changes in interest rates can expose us to changes in the prepayment rate on these investments. In periods of declining interest rates, mortgage prepayments generally increase and MBS are prepaid more quickly, requiring us to reinvest the proceeds at the then current market rates. Conversely, in periods of rising rates, mortgage prepayments generally fall, preventing us from taking full advantage of the higher level of rates. However, current

109


Table of Contents


economic conditions may curtail prepayment activity as refinancing becomes more difficult, thus limiting prepayments on MBS.

        Since 2007, the residential mortgage market in the U.S. has experienced a variety of difficulties. During this time, delinquencies and losses with respect to residential mortgage loans generally have increased and may continue to increase, particularly in the subprime sector. In addition, during this period, residential property values in many states have declined or remained stable, after extended periods during which those values appreciated. A continued decline or an extended flattening in those values may result in additional increases in delinquencies and losses on residential mortgage loans generally, especially with respect to second homes and investment properties, and with respect to any residential mortgage loans where the aggregate loan amounts (including any subordinate loans) are close to or greater than the related property values. These developments may have a significant adverse effect on the prices of loans and securities, including those in our investment portfolio. The situation continues to have wide ranging consequences, including downward pressure on economic growth and the potential for increased insurance and reinsurance exposures, which could have an adverse impact on our results of operations, financial condition, business and operations. Our portfolio includes commercial mortgage backed securities ("CMBS"). At December 31, 2010, CMBS constituted approximately $1.17 billion, or 9.9% of total investable assets, compared to $1.19 billion, or 10.4%, at December 31, 2009. The commercial real estate market has experienced price deterioration, which could lead to increased delinquencies and defaults on commercial real estate mortgages.

110


Table of Contents

        The following table provides information on our mortgage backed securities ("MBS") and CMBS at December 31, 2010, excluding amounts guaranteed by the U.S. government and TALF investments:

 
   
   
   
  Estimated Market Value  
 
  Issuance
Year
  Amortized
Cost
  Average
Credit
Quality
  Total   % of
Amortized
Cost
  % of
Investable
Assets
 

Non-agency MBS:

    2003   $ 2,786     AAA   $ 2,777     99.7 %   0.0 %

    2004     18,206     A     17,112     94.0 %   0.1 %

    2005     58,906     BB+     53,852     91.4 %   0.5 %

    2006     45,827     B-     42,963     93.8 %   0.4 %

    2007     54,345     CCC+     52,729     97.0 %   0.4 %

    2008     9,407     CCC     9,002     95.7 %   0.1 %

    2009 (6)   95,938     AAA     100,277     104.5 %   0.8 %

    2010 (6)   47,366     AAA     47,309     99.9 %   0.4 %
                                 
 

Total non-agency MBS

        $ 332,781     BBB+   $ 326,021     98.0 %   2.8 %
                                 

Non-agency CMBS:

    1998     3,611     AAA     3,744     103.7 %   0.0 %

    1999     121     AAA     117     96.7 %   0.0 %

    2001     120,595     AAA     119,863     99.4 %   1.0 %

    2002     39,137     AAA     39,696     101.4 %   0.3 %

    2003     62,577     AAA     65,780     105.1 %   0.6 %

    2004     178,333     AAA     183,161     102.7 %   1.5 %

    2005     49,411     AAA     49,680     100.5 %   0.4 %

    2006     8,277     AA+     8,281     100.0 %   0.1 %

    2007     65,515     AA+     71,676     109.4 %   0.6 %

    2009     5,086     AAA     5,346     105.1 %   0.0 %

    2010     262,971     AAA     260,709     99.1 %   2.2 %
                                 
 

Total non-agency CMBS

        $ 795,634     AAA   $ 808,053     101.6 %   6.8 %
                                 

Additional Statistics:

 
  Non-Agency MBS    
 
 
  Non-
Agency
CMBS(1)
 
 
  Re-REMICs   All Other  

Weighted average loan age (months)

    51     57     67  

Weighted average life (months)(2)

    19     55     34  

Weighted average loan-to-value %(3)

    71.5 %   66.1 %   66.5 %

Total delinquencies(4)

    21.4 %   19.1 %   6.4 %

Current credit support %(5)

    41.3 %   11.7 %   28.4 %

(1)
Loans defeased with government/agency obligations represented approximately 12% of the collateral underlying our CMBS holdings.

(2)
The weighted average life for MBS is based on the interest rates in effect at December 31, 2010. The weighted average life for CMBS reflects the average life of the collateral underlying our CMBS holdings.

(3)
The range of loan-to-values on MBS is 41% to 84%, while the range of loan-to-values on CMBS is 49% to 95%.

(4)
Total delinquencies includes 60 days and over.

111


Table of Contents

(5)
Current credit support % represents the % for a collateralized mortgage obligation ("CMO") or CMBS class/tranche from other subordinate classes in the same CMO or CMBS deal.

(6)
Primarily represents Re-REMICs issued in 2009 and 2010 with an average credit quality of "AAA" from Fitch Ratings.

        The following table provides information on our asset backed securities ("ABS"), excluding TALF investments, at December 31, 2010:

 
   
   
  Estimated Market Value  
 
  Amortized
Cost
  Average
Credit
Quality
  Total   % of
Amortized
Cost
  % of
Investable
Assets
 

Sector:

                               

Credit cards(1)

  $ 242,527     AAA   $ 253,456     104.5 %   2.1 %

Autos(2)

    128,847     AAA     132,667     103.0 %   1.1 %

Student loans(3)

    63,002     AAA     63,895     101.4 %   0.5 %

U.K. securitized(4)

    38,150     AAA     38,855     101.8 %   0.3 %

Rate reduction bonds(5)

    32,794     AAA     34,523     105.3 %   0.3 %

Other

    20,539     AA     20,249     98.6 %   0.2 %
                           

    525,859     AAA     543,645     103.4 %   4.6 %

Home equity(6)

 
$

4,808
   
AAA
 
$

4,424
   
92.0

%
 
0.0

%

    56     AA     55     98.2 %   0.0 %

    204     A     203     99.5 %   0.0 %

    8,503     BB to B     7,111     83.6 %   0.1 %

    1,720     CCC to C     2,529     147.0 %   0.0 %

    200     D     65     32.5 %   0.0 %
                           

    15,491     BB+     14,387     92.9 %   0.1 %
                           
 

Total ABS

  $ 541,350     AAA   $ 558,032     103.1 %   4.7 %
                           

The effective duration of the total ABS was 1.0 years at December 31, 2010.

(1)
The average excess spread % on credit cards is 15.4%.

(2)
The weighted average credit support % on autos is 38.8%.

(3)
The weighted average credit support % on student loans is 37.9%.

(4)
The weighted average credit support % on U.K. securitized is 18.2%.

(5)
The weighted average credit support % on rate reduction bonds is 20.6%.

(6)
The weighted average credit support % on home equity is 23.6%.

        At December 31, 2010, our fixed income portfolio included $47.1 million par value in sub-prime securities with an estimated market value of $19.9 million and an average credit quality of "BBB" from Standard & Poor's and "Baa3" from Moody's. At December 31, 2009, our fixed income portfolio included $52.1 million par value in sub-prime securities with an estimated market value of $18.5 million and an average credit quality of "BBB+" from Standard & Poor's and "Baa3" from Moody's. Such amounts were primarily in the home equity sector of our asset backed securities, with the balance in other ABS, MBS and CMBS sectors. We define sub-prime mortgage-backed securities as investments in which the underlying loans primarily exhibit one or more of the following characteristics: low FICO scores, above-prime interest rates, high loan-to-value ratios or high debt-to-income ratios. In addition,

112


Table of Contents


the portfolio of collateral backing our securities lending program contains approximately $13.2 million estimated market value of sub-prime securities with an average credit quality of "B-" from Standard & Poor's and "Caa2" from Moody's at December 31, 2010, compared to approximately $18.9 million estimated market value with an average credit quality of "BB" from Standard & Poor's and "B2" from Moody's at December 31, 2009.

        At December 31, 2010, we held insurance enhanced municipal bonds, net of prerefunded bonds that are escrowed in U.S. government obligations, the estimated market value of which was $266.9 million, or approximately 2.3% of our total investable assets. These securities had an average rating of "Aa2" by Moody's and "AA+" by Standard & Poor's. Giving no effect to the insurance enhancement, the overall credit quality of our insured municipal bond portfolio had an average underlying rating of "Aa2" by Moody's and "AA" by Standard & Poor's. The ratings were obtained from the individual rating agencies and were assigned a numerical amount with 1 being the highest rating. The average ratings were calculated using the weighted average market values of the individual bonds. The average ratings with and without the insurance enhancement are substantially the same at December 31, 2010. This is due to the fact that, in cases where the claims paying ratings of the guarantors are below investment grade, those ratings have been withdrawn from the bonds by the relevant rating agencies, and the insured ratings have been equated to the underlying ratings. Guarantors of our insurance enhanced municipal bonds, net of prerefunded bonds that are escrowed in U.S. government obligations, included National Public Finance Guarantee (f.k.a. MBIA Insurance Corporation) ($104.0 million), Assured Guaranty Ltd. ($71.5 million), the Texas Permanent School Fund ($30.1 million) and Financial Guaranty Insurance Company ($21.6 million). We do not have a significant exposure to insurance enhanced asset-backed or mortgage-backed securities. We do not have any significant investments in companies which guarantee securities at December 31, 2010.

        Other investments totaled $349.3 million at December 31, 2010, compared to $135.5 million at December 31, 2009. Investment funds accounted for using the equity method totaled $434.6 million at December 31, 2010, compared to $391.9 million at December 31, 2009. Certain of our investments, primarily those included in "other investments" and "investment funds accounted for using the equity method" on our balance sheet, may use leverage to achieve a higher rate of return. While leverage presents opportunities for increasing the total return of such investments, it may increase losses as well. Accordingly, any event that adversely affects the value of the underlying securities held by such investments would be magnified to the extent leverage is used and our potential losses from such investments would be magnified. In addition, the structures used to generate leverage may lead to such investment funds being required to meet covenants based on market valuations and asset coverage. Market valuation declines in the funds could force the sale of investments into a depressed market, which may result in significant additional losses. Alternatively, the funds may attempt to deleverage by raising additional equity or potentially changing the terms of the established financing arrangements. We may choose to participate in the additional funding of such investments. Our unfunded commitments related to investments totaled approximately $95.5 million at December 31, 2010. See note 7, "Investment Information—Other Investments" and "Investment Information—Investment Funds Accounted for Using the Equity Method" of the notes accompanying our consolidated financial statements for further details.

        Our investment strategy allows for the use of derivative instruments. We utilize various derivative instruments such as futures contracts to enhance investment performance, replicate investment positions or manage market exposures and duration risk that would be allowed under our investment guidelines if implemented in other ways. See note 9, "Derivative Instruments," of the notes accompanying our consolidated financial statements for additional disclosures concerning derivatives.

        Accounting guidance regarding fair value measurements addresses how companies should measure fair value when they are required to use a fair value measure for recognition or disclosure purposes under GAAP and provides a common definition of fair value to be used throughout GAAP. See note 8,

113


Table of Contents

"Fair Value" of the notes accompanying our consolidated financial statements for a summary of our financial assets and liabilities measured at fair value at December 31, 2010 and 2009 by level.

        At December 31, 2010, 77.9% of premiums receivable of $503.4 million represented amounts not yet due, while amounts in excess of 90 days overdue were 4.4% of the total. At December 31, 2009, 73.3% of premiums receivable of $595.0 million represented amounts not yet due, while amounts in excess of 90 days overdue were 4.2% of the total. Approximately 0.6% of the $60.8 million of paid losses and loss adjustment expenses recoverable were in excess of 90 days overdue at December 31, 2010, compared to 9.1% of the $60.8 million of paid losses and loss adjustment expenses recoverable at December 31, 2009. At December 31, 2010 and 2009, our reserves for doubtful accounts were approximately $13.6 million and $9.5 million, respectively.

        At December 31, 2010, approximately 91.1% of reinsurance recoverables on paid and unpaid losses (not including prepaid reinsurance premiums) of $1.76 billion were due from carriers which had an A.M. Best rating of "A-" or better and the largest reinsurance recoverables from any one carrier was approximately 5.5% of our total shareholders' equity. At December 31, 2009, approximately 90.0% of reinsurance recoverables on paid and unpaid losses (not including prepaid reinsurance premiums) of $1.72 billion were due from carriers which had an A.M. Best rating of "A-" or better and the largest reinsurance recoverables from any one carrier was approximately 5.8% of our total shareholders' equity.

        The following table details our reinsurance recoverables at December 31, 2010:

 
  % of Total   A.M. Best
Rating(1)

Everest Reinsurance Company

    14.1 % A+

Munich Reinsurance America, Inc. 

    6.7 % A+

Odyssey America Reinsurance Corporation(2)

    6.4 % A

Lloyd's syndicates(3)

    6.0 % A

Transatlantic Reinsurance Company

    5.3 % A

Allied World Assurance Company Ltd. 

    5.1 % A

ACE Property & Casualty Insurance Company

    3.7 % A+

Swiss Reinsurance America Corporation

    3.3 % A

Flatiron Re Ltd.(4)

    3.2 % NR

Munich Reinsurance Company

    3.0 % A+

Alterra Reinsurance Ltd. 

    2.7 % A

Hannover Rückversicherung AG

    2.7 % A

Platinum Underwriters Reinsurance Inc. 

    2.6 % A

Berkley Insurance Company

    2.5 % A+

Partner Reinsurance Company of the U.S. 

    2.4 % A+

AXIS Reinsurance Company

    2.3 % A

All other(5)

    28.0 %  
         
 

Total

    100.0 %  
         

(1)
The financial strength ratings are as of February 6, 2011 and were assigned by A.M. Best based on its opinion of the insurer's financial strength as of such date. An explanation of the ratings listed in the table follows: the rating of "A+" is designated "Superior"; the "A" and "A-" ratings are designated "Excellent"; and the "B++" rating is designated "Very Good." Additionally, A.M. Best has five classifications within the "Not Rated" or "NR" category. Reasons for an "NR" rating being assigned by A.M. Best include

114


Table of Contents

(2)
A significant portion of amounts due from Odyssey America Reinsurance Corporation is collateralized through reinsurance trusts.

(3)
The A.M. Best group rating of "A" (Excellent) has been applied to all Lloyd's syndicates.

(4)
Flatiron is required to contribute funds into a trust for the benefit of Arch Re Bermuda. The recoverable from Flatiron was fully collateralized through such trust at December 31, 2010.

(5)
The following table provides a breakdown of the "All other" category by A.M. Best rating:  

Companies rated "A-" or better

    22.3 %

Companies rated "B++"

    0.1 %

Companies not rated(6)

    5.6 %
       

Total

    28.0 %
       
(6)
A substantial portion of such amount is collateralized through reinsurance trusts or letters of credit.

        We establish reserves for losses and loss adjustment expenses ("Loss Reserves") which represent estimates involving actuarial and statistical projections, at a given point in time, of our expectations of the ultimate settlement and administration costs of losses incurred. Estimating Loss Reserves is inherently difficult, which is exacerbated by the fact that we are a relatively new company with relatively limited historical experience upon which to base such estimates. We utilize actuarial models as well as available historical insurance industry loss ratio experience and loss development patterns to assist in the establishment of Loss Reserves. Actual losses and loss adjustment expenses paid will deviate, perhaps substantially, from the reserve estimates reflected in our financial statements. See "Management's Discussion and Analysis of Financial Condition and Results of Operations—Critical Accounting Policies, Estimates and Recent Accounting Pronouncements—Reserves for Losses and Loss Adjustment Expenses" and "Business—Reserves" for further details.

        Our shareholders' equity was $4.51 billion at December 31, 2010, compared to $4.32 billion at December 31, 2009. The increase in the year ended December 31, 2010 of $189.7 million was attributable to net income, partially offset by share repurchase activity.

115


Table of Contents

        The following table presents the calculation of book value per common share at December 31, 2010 and 2009:

 
  December 31,  
(U.S. dollars in thousands, except share data)
  2010   2009  

Calculation of book value per common share:

             
 

Total shareholders' equity

  $ 4,513,003   $ 4,323,349  
 

Less preferred shareholders' equity

    (325,000 )   (325,000 )
           
 

Common shareholders' equity

  $ 4,188,003   $ 3,998,349  
 

Common shares outstanding, net of treasury shares(1)

    46,544,075     54,761,678  
           
 

Book value per common share

  $ 89.98   $ 73.01  
           

(1)
Excludes the effects of 4,083,856 and 5,016,104 stock options and 173,178 and 261,012 restricted stock units outstanding at December 31, 2010 and 2009, respectively.

Liquidity and Capital Resources

        ACGL is a holding company whose assets primarily consist of the shares in its subsidiaries. Generally, ACGL depends on its available cash resources, liquid investments and dividends or other distributions from its subsidiaries to make payments, including the payment of debt service obligations and operating expenses it may incur and any dividends or liquidation amounts with respect to the series A non-cumulative and series B non-cumulative preferred shares and common shares. ACGL's readily available cash, short-term investments and marketable securities, excluding amounts held by our regulated insurance and reinsurance subsidiaries, totaled $14.4 million at December 31, 2010, compared to $25.7 million at December 31, 2009. During 2010, ACGL received dividends of $795.0 million from Arch Re Bermuda which were primarily used to fund the share repurchase program described below.

        The ability of our regulated insurance and reinsurance subsidiaries to pay dividends or make distributions or other payments to us is dependent on their ability to meet applicable regulatory standards. Under Bermuda law, Arch Re Bermuda is required to maintain an enhanced capital requirement which must equal or exceed its minimum solvency margin (i.e., the amount by which the value of its general business assets must exceed its general business liabilities) equal to the greatest of (1) $100.0 million, (2) 50% of net premiums written (being gross premiums written less any premiums ceded by Arch Re Bermuda, but Arch Re Bermuda may not deduct more than 25% of gross premiums when computing net premiums written) and (3) 15% of net discounted aggregated losses and loss expense provisions and other insurance reserves. Arch Re Bermuda is prohibited from declaring or paying any dividends during any financial year if it is not in compliance with its enhanced capital requirement, minimum solvency margin or minimum liquidity ratio. In addition, Arch Re Bermuda is prohibited from declaring or paying in any financial year dividends of more than 25% of its total statutory capital and surplus (as shown on its previous financial year's statutory balance sheet) unless it files, at least seven days before payment of such dividends, with the Bermuda Monetary Authority ("BMA") an affidavit stating that it will continue to meet the required margins. In addition, Arch Re Bermuda is prohibited, without prior approval of the BMA, from reducing by 15% or more its total statutory capital, as set out in its previous year's statutory financial statements. Arch Re Bermuda is required to meet enhanced capital requirements and a target capital level (defined as 120% of the enhanced capital requirements) as calculated using a new risk based capital model called the Bermuda Solvency Capital Requirement ("BSCR") model. At December 31, 2010, as determined under Bermuda law, Arch Re Bermuda had statutory capital of $2.26 billion ($2.23 billion at December 31, 2009) and statutory capital and surplus of $4.44 billion ($4.26 billion at December 31, 2009), which amounts were

116


Table of Contents


in compliance with Arch Re Bermuda's enhanced capital requirement at such date. Such amounts include ownership interests in U.S. insurance and reinsurance subsidiaries. Accordingly, Arch Re Bermuda can pay approximately $1.11 billion to ACGL during 2011 without providing an affidavit to the BMA, as discussed above. In addition to meeting applicable regulatory standards, the ability of our insurance and reinsurance subsidiaries to pay dividends to intermediate parent companies owned by Arch Re Bermuda is also constrained by our dependence on the financial strength ratings of our insurance and reinsurance subsidiaries from independent rating agencies. The ratings from these agencies depend to a large extent on the capitalization levels of our insurance and reinsurance subsidiaries. We believe that ACGL has sufficient cash resources and available dividend capacity to service its indebtedness and other current outstanding obligations.

        Our insurance and reinsurance subsidiaries are required to maintain assets on deposit, which primarily consist of fixed maturities, with various regulatory authorities to support their operations. The assets on deposit are available to settle insurance and reinsurance liabilities to third parties. Our insurance and reinsurance subsidiaries also have investments in segregated portfolios primarily to provide collateral or guarantees for letters of credit to third parties. At December 31, 2010 and 2009, such amounts approximated $1.38 billion and $1.49 billion, respectively. In addition, certain of our operating subsidiaries maintain assets in trust accounts as collateral for insurance and reinsurance transactions with affiliated companies. At December 31, 2010 and 2009, such amounts approximated $4.38 billion and $4.28 billion, respectively.

        ACGL, through its subsidiaries, provides financial support to certain of its insurance subsidiaries and affiliates, through certain reinsurance arrangements essential to the ratings of such subsidiaries. Except as described in the preceding sentence, or where express reinsurance, guarantee or other financial support contractual arrangements are in place, each of ACGL's subsidiaries or affiliates is solely responsible for its own liabilities and commitments (and no other ACGL subsidiary or affiliate is so responsible). Any reinsurance arrangements, guarantees or other financial support contractual arrangements that are in place are solely for the benefit of the ACGL subsidiary or affiliate involved and third parties (creditors or insureds of such entity) are not express beneficiaries of such arrangements.

        Our insurance and reinsurance operations provide liquidity in that premiums are received in advance, sometimes substantially in advance, of the time losses are paid. The period of time from the occurrence of a claim through the settlement of the liability may extend many years into the future. Sources of liquidity include cash flows from operations, financing arrangements or routine sales of investments.

        As part of our investment strategy, we seek to establish a level of cash and highly liquid short-term and intermediate-term securities which, combined with expected cash flow, is believed by us to be adequate to meet our foreseeable payment obligations. However, due to the nature of our operations, cash flows are affected by claim payments that may comprise large payments on a limited number of claims and which can fluctuate from year to year. We believe that our liquid investments and cash flow will provide us with sufficient liquidity in order to meet our claim payment obligations. However, the timing and amounts of actual claim payments related to recorded Loss Reserves vary based on many factors, including large individual losses, changes in the legal environment, as well as general market conditions. The ultimate amount of the claim payments could differ materially from our estimated amounts. Certain lines of business written by us, such as excess casualty, have loss experience characterized as low frequency and high severity. The foregoing may result in significant variability in loss payment patterns. The impact of this variability can be exacerbated by the fact that the timing of the receipt of reinsurance recoverables owed to us may be slower than anticipated by us. Therefore, the irregular timing of claim payments can create significant variations in cash flows from operations between periods and may require us to utilize other sources of liquidity to make these payments, which may include the sale of investments or utilization of existing or new credit facilities or capital market

117


Table of Contents


transactions. If the source of liquidity is the sale of investments, we may be forced to sell such investments at a loss, which may be material.

        Our investments in certain securities, including certain fixed income and structured securities, investments in funds accounted for using the equity method, other investments and our investment in Gulf Re (joint venture) may be illiquid due to contractual provisions or investment market conditions. If we require significant amounts of cash on short notice in excess of anticipated cash requirements, then we may have difficulty selling these investments in a timely manner or may be forced to sell or terminate them at unfavorable values.

        Consolidated net cash provided by operating activities was $802.1 million for the year ended December 31, 2010, compared to $992.6 million for the year ended December 31, 2009. The decline in cash flow from operations primarily reflected a lower level of premium collections and was consistent with the year over year decline in net premiums written. Cash flow from operating activities are provided by premiums collected, fee income, investment income and collected reinsurance recoverables, offset by losses and loss adjustment expense payments, reinsurance premiums paid, operating costs and current taxes paid.

        On a consolidated basis, our aggregate investable assets totaled $11.84 billion at December 31, 2010, compared to $11.38 billion at December 31, 2009. The primary goals of our asset liability management process are to satisfy the insurance liabilities, manage the interest rate risk embedded in those insurance liabilities and maintain sufficient liquidity to cover fluctuations in projected liability cash flows, including debt service obligations. Generally, the expected principal and interest payments produced by our fixed income portfolio adequately fund the estimated runoff of our insurance reserves. Although this is not an exact cash flow match in each period, the substantial degree by which the market value of the fixed income portfolio exceeds the expected present value of the net insurance liabilities, as well as the positive cash flow from newly sold policies and the large amount of high quality liquid bonds, provide assurance of our ability to fund the payment of claims and to service our outstanding debt without having to sell securities at distressed prices in an illiquid market or access credit facilities.

        We expect that our liquidity needs, including our anticipated insurance obligations and operating and capital expenditure needs, for the next twelve months, at a minimum, will be met by funds generated from underwriting activities and investment income, as well as by our balance of cash, short-term investments, proceeds on the sale or maturity of our investments, and our credit facilities.

        We monitor our capital adequacy on a regular basis and will seek to adjust our capital base (up or down) according to the needs of our business. The future capital requirements of our business will depend on many factors, including our ability to write new business successfully and to establish premium rates and reserves at levels sufficient to cover losses. Our ability to underwrite is largely dependent upon the quality of our claims paying and financial strength ratings as evaluated by independent rating agencies. In particular, we require (1) sufficient capital to maintain our financial strength ratings, as issued by several ratings agencies, at a level considered necessary by management to enable our key operating subsidiaries to compete; (2) sufficient capital to enable our underwriting subsidiaries to meet the capital adequacy tests performed by statutory agencies in the U.S. and other key markets; and (3) letters of credit and other forms of collateral that are necessary for our non-U.S. operating companies because they are "non-admitted" under U.S. state insurance regulations. In July 2010, Standard & Poor's Ratings Services raised the counterparty credit and financial strength ratings on our insurance and reinsurance subsidiaries to "A+" (Strong) with a stable outlook from "A" (Strong) and ACGL's counterparty (issuer) credit rating was raised to "A-" with a stable outlook from "BBB+."

        As part of our capital management program, we may seek to raise additional capital or may seek to return capital to our shareholders through share repurchases, cash dividends or other methods (or a

118


Table of Contents


combination of such methods). Any such determination will be at the discretion of our board of directors and will be dependent upon our profits, financial requirements and other factors, including legal restrictions, rating agency requirements and such other factors as our board of directors deems relevant.

        The board of directors of ACGL has authorized the investment in ACGL's common shares through a share repurchase program. Authorizations have consisted of a $1.0 billion authorization in February 2007, a $500 million authorization in May 2008, a $1.0 billion authorization in November 2009 and a $1.0 billion authorization in February 2011. Since the inception of the share repurchase program through February 24, 2011, ACGL has repurchased approximately 33.4 million common shares for an aggregate purchase price of $2.42 billion. At February 24, 2011, approximately $1.08 billion of share repurchases were available under the program. Repurchases under the program may be effected from time to time in open market or privately negotiated transactions through December 2012. The timing and amount of the repurchase transactions under this program will depend on a variety of factors, including market conditions and corporate and regulatory considerations. We will continue to monitor our share price and, depending upon results of operations, market conditions and the development of the economy, as well as other factors, we will consider share repurchases on an opportunistic basis.

        To the extent that our existing capital is insufficient to fund our future operating requirements or maintain such ratings, we may need to raise additional funds through financings or limit our growth. Given the recent severe disruptions in the public debt and equity markets, including among other things, widening of credit spreads, lack of liquidity and bankruptcies, we can provide no assurance that, if needed, we would be able to obtain additional funds through financing on satisfactory terms or at all. Continued adverse developments in the financial markets, such as disruptions, uncertainty or volatility in the capital and credit markets, may result in realized and unrealized capital losses that could have a material adverse effect on our results of operations, financial position and our businesses, and may also limit our access to capital required to operate our business.

        If we are not able to obtain adequate capital, our business, results of operations and financial condition could be adversely affected, which could include, among other things, the following possible outcomes: (1) potential downgrades in the financial strength ratings assigned by ratings agencies to our operating subsidiaries, which could place those operating subsidiaries at a competitive disadvantage compared to higher-rated competitors; (2) reductions in the amount of business that our operating subsidiaries are able to write in order to meet capital adequacy-based tests enforced by statutory agencies; and (3) any resultant ratings downgrades could, among other things, affect our ability to write business and increase the cost of bank credit and letters of credit. In addition, under certain of the reinsurance agreements assumed by our reinsurance operations, upon the occurrence of a ratings downgrade or other specified triggering event with respect to our reinsurance operations, such as a reduction in surplus by specified amounts during specified periods, our ceding company clients may be provided with certain rights, including, among other things, the right to terminate the subject reinsurance agreement and/or to require that our reinsurance operations post additional collateral.

        In addition to common share capital, we depend on external sources of finance to support our underwriting activities, which can be in the form (or any combination) of debt securities, preference shares, common equity and bank credit facilities providing loans and/or letters of credit. As noted above, equity or debt financing, if available at all, may be on terms that are unfavorable to us. In the case of equity financings, dilution to our shareholders could result, and, in any case, such securities may have rights, preferences and privileges that are senior to those of our outstanding securities.

119


Table of Contents

        In 2006, we entered into a five-year agreement for a $300.0 million unsecured revolving loan and letter of credit facility and a $1.0 billion secured letter of credit facility. Under the terms of the agreement, Arch Reinsurance Company ("Arch Re U.S.") is limited to issuing $100.0 million of unsecured letters of credit as part of the $300.0 million unsecured revolving loan. Arch Re Bermuda also has access to other letter of credit facilities, some of which are available on a limited basis for limited purposes. Refer to note 13, "Commitments and Contingencies—Letter of Credit and Revolving Credit Facilities," of the notes accompanying our consolidated financial statements for a discussion of our available facilities, applicable covenants on such facilities and available capacity. It is anticipated that the available facilities will be renewed (or replaced) on expiry, but such renewal (or replacement) will be subject to the availability of credit from banks which we utilize. We can provide no assurance that we will be able to renew the facilities in August 2011 on satisfactory terms and, if renewed, the costs of the facilities may be significantly higher than the costs of our existing facilities. Failure to renew or replace these facilities on satisfactory terms could materially adversely affect our liquidity and results of operations.

        During 2006, ACGL completed two public offerings of non-cumulative preferred shares. On February 1, 2006, $200.0 million principal amount of 8.0% series A non-cumulative preferred shares ("series A preferred shares") were issued with net proceeds of $193.5 million and, on May 24, 2006, $125.0 million principal amount of 7.875% series B non-cumulative preferred shares ("series B preferred shares" and together with the series A preferred shares, the "preferred shares") were issued with net proceeds of $120.9 million. The net proceeds of the offerings were used to support the underwriting activities of ACGL's insurance and reinsurance subsidiaries. ACGL has the right to redeem all or a portion of each series of preferred shares at a redemption price of $25.00 per share on or after (1) February 1, 2011 for the series A preferred shares and (2) May 15, 2011 for the series B preferred shares. Dividends on the preferred shares are non-cumulative. Consequently, in the event dividends are not declared on the preferred shares for any dividend period, holders of preferred shares will not be entitled to receive a dividend for such period, and such undeclared dividend will not accrue and will not be payable. Holders of preferred shares will be entitled to receive dividend payments only when, as and if declared by ACGL's board of directors or a duly authorized committee of ACGL's board of directors. Any such dividends will be payable from the date of original issue on a non-cumulative basis, quarterly in arrears. To the extent declared, these dividends will accumulate, with respect to each dividend period, in an amount per share equal to 8.0% of the $25.00 liquidation preference per annum for the series A preferred shares and 7.875% of the $25.00 liquidation preference per annum for the series B preferred shares. During 2010, we paid $25.8 million to holders of the preferred shares and, at December 31, 2010, had declared an aggregate of $3.3 million of dividends to be paid to holders of the preferred shares.

        In March 2009, ACGL and Arch Capital Group (U.S.) Inc. filed a universal shelf registration statement with the SEC. This registration statement allows for the possible future offer and sale by us of various types of securities, including unsecured debt securities, preference shares, common shares, warrants, share purchase contracts and units and depositary shares. The shelf registration statement enables us to efficiently access the public debt and/or equity capital markets in order to meet our future capital needs. The shelf registration statement also allows selling shareholders to resell common shares that they own in one or more offerings from time to time. We will not receive any proceeds from any shares offered by the selling shareholders. This report is not an offer to sell or the solicitation of an offer to buy nor shall there be any sale of these securities in any state in which such offer, solicitation or sale would be unlawful prior to registration or qualification under the securities laws of any such state.

        We purchased asset-backed and commercial mortgage-backed securities under the FRBNY's TALF program. As of December 31, 2010, we had $402.4 million of securities under TALF which are reflected as "TALF investments, at market value" and $325.8 million of secured financing from the

120


Table of Contents


FRBNY which is reflected as "TALF borrowings, at market value." As of December 31, 2009, we had $250.3 million of TALF investments, at market value and $217.6 million of TALF borrowings, at market value. Refer to note 13, "Commitments and Contingencies—TALF Program," of the notes accompanying our consolidated financial statements for further details on the TALF Program.

        At December 31, 2010, ACGL's capital of $4.91 billion consisted of $300.0 million of senior notes, representing 6.1% of the total, $100.0 million of revolving credit agreement borrowings due in August 2011, representing 2.0% of the total, $325.0 million of preferred shares, representing 6.6% of the total, and common shareholders' equity of $4.19 billion, representing the balance. At December 31, 2009, ACGL's capital of $4.72 billion consisted of $300.0 million of senior notes, representing 6.4% of the total, $100.0 million of revolving credit agreement borrowings due in August 2011, representing 2.1% of the total, $325.0 million of preferred shares, representing 6.9% of the total, and common shareholders' equity of $4.00 billion, representing the balance. The increase in capital during 2010 was primarily attributable to net income, partially offset by share repurchase activity.

NATURAL AND MAN-MADE CATASTROPHIC EVENTS

        We have large aggregate exposures to natural and man-made catastrophic events. Catastrophes can be caused by various events, including hurricanes, floods, windstorms, earthquakes, hailstorms, tornados, explosions, severe winter weather, fires, droughts and other natural disasters. Catastrophes can also cause losses in non-property business such as workers' compensation or general liability. In addition to the nature of property business, we believe that economic and geographic trends affecting insured property, including inflation, property value appreciation and geographic concentration, tend to generally increase the size of losses from catastrophic events over time.

        We have substantial exposure to unexpected, large losses resulting from future man-made catastrophic events, such as acts of war, acts of terrorism and political instability. These risks are inherently unpredictable. It is difficult to predict the timing of such events with statistical certainty or estimate the amount of loss any given occurrence will generate. It is not possible to completely eliminate our exposure to unforecasted or unpredictable events and, to the extent that losses from such risks occur, our financial condition and results of operations could be materially adversely affected. Therefore, claims for natural and man-made catastrophic events could expose us to large losses and cause substantial volatility in our results of operations, which could cause the value of our common shares to fluctuate widely. In certain instances, we specifically insure and reinsure risks resulting from terrorism. Even in cases where we attempt to exclude losses from terrorism and certain other similar risks from some coverages written by us, we may not be successful in doing so. Moreover, irrespective of the clarity and inclusiveness of policy language, there can be no assurance that a court or arbitration panel will limit enforceability of policy language or otherwise issue a ruling adverse to us.

        We seek to limit our loss exposure by writing a number of our reinsurance contracts on an excess of loss basis, adhering to maximum limitations on reinsurance written in defined geographical zones, limiting program size for each client and prudent underwriting of each program written. In the case of proportional treaties, we may seek per occurrence limitations or loss ratio caps to limit the impact of losses from any one or series of events. In our insurance operations, we seek to limit our exposure through the purchase of reinsurance. We cannot be certain that any of these loss limitation methods will be effective. We also seek to limit our loss exposure by geographic diversification. Geographic zone limitations involve significant underwriting judgments, including the determination of the area of the zones and the inclusion of a particular policy within a particular zone's limits. There can be no assurance that various provisions of our policies, such as limitations or exclusions from coverage or choice of forum, will be enforceable in the manner we intend. Disputes relating to coverage and choice of legal forum may also arise. Underwriting is inherently a matter of judgment, involving important assumptions about matters that are inherently unpredictable and beyond our control, and for which historical experience and probability analysis may not provide sufficient guidance. One or more

121


Table of Contents


catastrophic or other events could result in claims that substantially exceed our expectations, which could have a material adverse effect on our financial condition or our results of operations, possibly to the extent of eliminating our shareholders' equity.

        For our natural catastrophe exposed business, we seek to limit the amount of exposure we will assume from any one insured or reinsured and the amount of the exposure to catastrophe losses from a single event in any geographic zone. We monitor our exposure to catastrophic events, including earthquake and wind and periodically reevaluate the estimated probable maximum pre-tax loss for such exposures. Our estimated probable maximum pre-tax loss is determined through the use of modeling techniques, but such estimate does not represent our total potential loss for such exposures. Our models employ both proprietary and vendor-based systems and include cross-line correlations for property, marine, offshore energy, aviation, workers compensation and personal accident. We seek to limit the probable maximum pre-tax loss to a specific level for severe catastrophic events. Currently, we seek to limit our 1-in-250 year return period net probable maximum loss from a severe catastrophic event in any geographic zone to approximately 25% of total shareholders' equity. We reserve the right to change this threshold at any time. Net probable maximum loss estimates are net of expected reinsurance recoveries, before income tax and before excess reinsurance reinstatement premiums. Loss estimates are reflective of the zone indicated and not the entire portfolio. Since hurricanes and windstorms can affect more than one zone and make multiple landfalls, our loss estimates include clash estimates from other zones. Our loss estimates do not represent our maximum exposures and it is highly likely that our actual incurred losses would vary materially from the modeled estimates. There can be no assurances that we will not suffer pre-tax losses greater than 25% of our total shareholders' equity from one or more catastrophic events due to several factors, including the inherent uncertainties in estimating the frequency and severity of such events and the margin of error in making such determinations resulting from potential inaccuracies and inadequacies in the data provided by clients and brokers, the modeling techniques and the application of such techniques or as a result of a decision to change the percentage of shareholders' equity exposed to a single catastrophic event. In addition, actual losses may increase if our reinsurers fail to meet their obligations to us or the reinsurance protections purchased by us are exhausted or are otherwise unavailable. See "Risk Factors—Risk Relating to Our Industry." Depending on business opportunities and the mix of business that may comprise our insurance and reinsurance portfolio, we may seek to adjust our self-imposed limitations on probable maximum pre-tax loss for catastrophe exposed business. See "—Critical Accounting Policies, Estimates and Recent Accounting Pronouncements—Ceded Reinsurance" for a discussion of our catastrophe reinsurance programs.

CONTRACTUAL OBLIGATIONS AND COMMERCIAL COMMITMENTS

Letter of Credit and Revolving Credit Facilities

        As of December 31, 2010, we had a $300 million unsecured revolving loan and letter of credit facility and a $1.0 billion secured letter of credit facility (the "Credit Agreement"). Under the terms of the agreement, Arch Re U.S. is limited to issuing $100 million of unsecured letters of credit as part of the $300 million unsecured revolving loan. Borrowings of revolving loans may be made by ACGL and Arch Re U.S. at a variable rate based on LIBOR or an alternative base rate at our option. Secured letters of credit are available for issuance on behalf of our insurance and reinsurance subsidiaries. The Credit Agreement and related documents are structured such that each party that requests a letter of credit or borrowing does so only for itself and for only its own obligations. Issuance of letters of credit and borrowings under the Credit Agreement are subject to our compliance with certain covenants and conditions, including absence of a material adverse change. These covenants require, among other things, that we maintain a debt to total capital ratio of not greater than 0.35 to 1 and shareholders' equity in excess of $1.95 billion plus 25% of future aggregate net income for each quarterly period (not including any future net losses) beginning after June 30, 2006 and 25% of future aggregate proceeds

122


Table of Contents


from the issuance of common or preferred equity and that our principal insurance and reinsurance subsidiaries maintain at least a "B++" rating from A.M. Best. In addition, certain of our subsidiaries which are party to the Credit Agreement are required to maintain minimum shareholders' equity levels. We were in compliance with all covenants contained in the Credit Agreement at December 31, 2010.

        The Credit Agreement expires on August 30, 2011. It is anticipated that the available facilities will be renewed (or replaced) on expiry, but such renewal (or replacement) will be subject to the availability of credit from banks which we utilize. We can provide no assurance that we will be able to renew the facilities on satisfactory terms and, if renewed, the costs of the facilities may be significantly higher than the costs of our existing facilities. Failure to renew or replace these facilities on satisfactory terms could materially adversely affect our liquidity and results of operations.

        Including the secured letter of credit portion of the Credit Agreement, we had access to letter of credit facilities for up to a total of $1.38 billion. Arch Re Bermuda also has access to other letter of credit facilities, some of which are available on a limited basis and for limited purposes (together with the secured portion of the Credit Agreement and these letter of credit facilities, the "LOC Facilities"). The principal purpose of the LOC Facilities is to issue, as required, evergreen standby letters of credit in favor of primary insurance or reinsurance counterparties with which we have entered into reinsurance arrangements to ensure that such counterparties are permitted to take credit for reinsurance obtained from our reinsurance subsidiaries in United States jurisdictions where such subsidiaries are not licensed or otherwise admitted as an insurer, as required under insurance regulations in the United States, and to comply with requirements of Lloyd's in connection with qualifying quota share and other arrangements. The amount of letters of credit issued is driven by, among other things, the timing and payment of catastrophe losses, loss development of existing reserves, the payment pattern of such reserves, the further expansion of our business and the loss experience of such business. When issued, certain letters of credit are secured by a portion of our investment portfolio. In addition, the LOC Facilities also require the maintenance of certain covenants, which we were in compliance with at December 31, 2010. At such date, we had $743.1 million in outstanding letters of credit under the LOC Facilities, which were secured by investments with a market value of $831.6 million. In May 2008, we borrowed $100.0 million under the Credit Agreement at a company-selected variable interest rate that is based on 1 month, 3 month or 6 month reset option terms and their corresponding term LIBOR rates plus 27.5 basis points. The proceeds from such borrowings are repayable in August 2011.

Senior Notes

        In May 2004, ACGL completed a public offering of $300.0 million principal amount of 7.35% senior notes ("Senior Notes") due May 1, 2034 and received net proceeds of $296.4 million. ACGL used $200.0 million of the net proceeds to repay all amounts outstanding under a revolving credit agreement. The Senior Notes are ACGL's senior unsecured obligations and rank equally with all of its existing and future senior unsecured indebtedness. Interest payments on the Senior Notes are due on May 1st and November 1st of each year. ACGL may redeem the Senior Notes at any time and from time to time, in whole or in part, at a "make-whole" redemption price. For 2010, 2009 and 2008, interest expense on the Senior Notes was $22.1 million. The market value of the Senior Notes at December 31, 2010 and 2009 was $310.9 million and $298.6 million, respectively.

TALF Program

        During the 2009 third quarter, we purchased asset-backed and commercial mortgage-backed securities under the FRBNY TALF program. TALF provides secured financing for asset-backed securities backed by certain types of consumer and small business loans and for legacy commercial mortgage-backed securities. TALF financing is non-recourse to us, except in certain limited instances, and is collateralized by the purchased securities and provides financing for the purchase price of the

123


Table of Contents


securities, less a 'haircut' that varies based on the type of collateral. We can deliver the collateralized securities to a special purpose vehicle created by the FRBNY in full defeasance of the borrowings.

        As of December 31, 2010, we had $402.4 million of securities under TALF, consisting of 19 individual TALF investments, which are reflected as "TALF investments, at market value" and $325.8 million of secured financing from the FRBNY which is reflected as "TALF borrowings, at market value." The maturity dates for the TALF borrowings range from July 2012 to May 2015, with interest rates that range from approximately 1.2% to 3.9% based on either variable or fixed interest rates depending on the related TALF investments.

Investment in Joint Venture

        In May 2008, we provided $100.0 million of funding to Gulf Reinsurance Limited ("Gulf Re"), a newly formed reinsurer based in the Dubai International Financial Centre, pursuant to the joint venture agreement with Gulf Investment Corporation GSC ("GIC"). Under the agreement, Arch Re Bermuda and GIC each own 50% of Gulf Re, which commenced underwriting activities in June 2008. Gulf Re targets the six member states of the Gulf Cooperation Council ("GCC"), which include Bahrain, Kuwait, Oman, Qatar, Saudi Arabia and the United Arab Emirates. Gulf Re provides property and casualty reinsurance primarily in the member states of the GCC. The initial capital of the joint venture consisted of $200.0 million with an additional $200.0 million commitment to be funded equally by us and GIC depending on the joint venture's business needs. We account for our investment in Gulf Re, shown as "Investment in joint venture," using the equity method and records its equity in the operating results of Gulf Re in "Other income" on a quarter lag basis.

Contractual Obligations

        The following table provides an analysis of our contractual commitments at December 31, 2010:

 
  Payment due by period  
 
  Total   Less than
1 year
  1 - 3
years
  4 - 5
years
  More than
5 years
 

Debt obligations

  $ 400,000   $ 100,000   $   $   $ 300,000  

Interest expense on long-term debt obligations

    518,607     22,482     44,100     44,100     407,925  

TALF borrowings

    326,219         165,833     160,386      

Operating lease obligations

    127,461     16,831     28,423     23,942     58,265  

Purchase obligations

    30,065     14,646     10,427     2,722     2,270  

Reserve for losses and loss adjustment expenses, gross(1)

    8,098,454     2,271,822     2,679,786     1,263,664     1,883,182  

Deposit accounting liabilities(2)

    32,407     4,850     6,657     5,267     15,633  

Securities lending collateral(3)

    78,021     78,021              

Investment in Joint Venture(4)

    100,000                 100,000  

Unfunded investment commitments

    95,507     95,507              
                       
 

Total

  $ 9,806,741   $ 2,604,159   $ 2,935,226   $ 1,500,081   $ 2,767,275  
                       

(1)
The estimated expected contractual commitments related to the reserves for losses and loss adjustment expenses are presented on a gross basis. It should be noted that until a claim has been presented to us, determined to be valid, quantified and settled, there is no known obligation on an individual transaction basis, and while estimable in the aggregate, the timing and amount contain significant uncertainty. Approximately 67% of our net reserves were incurred but not reported at December 31, 2010.

124


Table of Contents

(2)
The estimated expected contractual commitments related to deposit accounting liabilities have been estimated using projected cash flows from the underlying contracts. It should be noted that, due to the nature of such liabilities, the timing and amount contain significant uncertainty.

(3)
As part of our securities lending program, we loan certain fixed income securities to third parties and receive collateral, primarily in the form of cash. The collateral received is reinvested and is reflected as "Investment of funds received under securities lending agreements, at market value" and "Securities purchased under agreements to resell using funds received under securities lending agreements." Such collateral is due back to the third parties at the close of the securities lending transaction.

(4)
We have committed an additional $100.0 million to our investment in Gulf Re depending on the joint venture's business needs. We do not anticipate that additional funding will be required in the next five years.

OFF-BALANCE SHEET ARRANGEMENTS

        We are not party to any transaction, agreement or other contractual arrangement to which an entity unconsolidated with us is a party that management believes is reasonably likely to have a current or future effect on our financial condition, revenues or expenses, results of operations, liquidity, capital expenditures or capital resources that is material to investors.

MARKET SENSITIVE INSTRUMENTS AND RISK MANAGEMENT

        Our investment results are subject to a variety of risks, including risks related to changes in the business, financial condition or results of operations of the entities in which we invest, as well as changes in general economic conditions and overall market conditions. We are also exposed to potential loss from various market risks, including changes in equity prices, interest rates and foreign currency exchange rates.

        In accordance with the SEC's Financial Reporting Release No. 48, we performed a sensitivity analysis to determine the effects that market risk exposures could have on the future earnings, market values or cash flows of our financial instruments as of December 31, 2010. Market risk represents the risk of changes in the market value of a financial instrument and consists of several components, including liquidity, basis and price risks.

        The sensitivity analysis performed as of December 31, 2010 presents hypothetical losses in cash flows, earnings and market values of market sensitive instruments which were held by us on December 31, 2010 and are sensitive to changes in interest rates and equity security prices. This risk management discussion and the estimated amounts generated from the following sensitivity analysis represent forward-looking statements of market risk assuming certain adverse market conditions occur. Actual results in the future may differ materially from these projected results due to actual developments in the global financial markets. The analysis methods used by us to assess and mitigate risk should not be considered projections of future events of losses.

        The focus of the SEC's market risk rules is on price risk. For purposes of specific risk analysis, we employ sensitivity analysis to determine the effects that market risk exposures could have on the future earnings, market values or cash flows of our financial instruments. The financial instruments included in the following sensitivity analysis consist of all of our investments and cash.

125


Table of Contents

        Fixed Income Securities.    We invest in interest rate sensitive securities, primarily debt securities. We consider the effect of interest rate movements on the market value of our fixed maturities, fixed maturities pledged under securities lending agreements, short-term investments and certain of our other investments which invest in fixed income securities and the corresponding change in unrealized appreciation. As interest rates rise, the market value of our interest rate sensitive securities falls, and the converse is also true. Based on historical observations, there is a low probability that all interest rate yield curves would shift in the same direction at the same time. Furthermore, in recent months interest rate movements in many credit sectors have exhibited a much lower correlation to changes in U.S. Treasury yields. Accordingly, the actual effect of interest rate movements may differ materially from the amounts set forth in the following tables.

        The following table summarizes the effect that an immediate, parallel shift in the interest rate yield curve would have had on the portfolio at December 31, 2010 and 2009:

 
  Interest Rate Shift in Basis Points  
(U.S. dollars in millions)
  -100   -50   -   50   100  

December 31, 2010:

                               

Total market value

  $ 10,668.3   $ 10,542.6   $ 10,404.9   $ 10,249.0   $ 10,100.0  

Market value change from base

    2.53 %   1.32 %       (1.50 )%   (2.93 )%

Change in unrealized value

  $ 263.4   $ 137.7   $   $ (155.9 ) $ (304.9 )

December 31, 2009:

                               

Total market value

  $ 11,227.5   $ 11,078.3   $ 10,920.7   $ 10,757.7   $ 10,593.9  

Market value change from base

    2.81 %   1.44 %       (1.49 )%   (2.99 )%

Change in unrealized value

  $ 306.8   $ 157.6   $   $ (163.0 ) $ (326.8 )

        In addition, we consider the effect of credit spread movements on the market value of our fixed maturities, fixed maturities pledged under securities lending agreements, short-term investments and certain of our other investments and investment funds accounted for using the equity method which invest in fixed income securities and the corresponding change in unrealized appreciation. As credit spreads widen, the market value of our fixed income securities falls, and the converse is also true.

        The following table summarizes the effect that an immediate, parallel shift in credit spreads in a static interest rate environment would have had on the portfolio at December 31, 2010 and 2009:

 
  Credit Spread Shift in Basis Points  
(U.S. dollars in millions)
  -100   -50   -   50   100  

December 31, 2010:

                               

Total market value

  $ 10,608.2   $ 10,506.5   $ 10,404.9   $ 10,304.2   $ 10,204.4  

Market value change from base

    1.95 %   0.98 %       (0.97 )%   (1.93 )%

Change in unrealized value

  $ 203.3   $ 101.6   $   $ (100.7 ) $ (200.5 )

December 31, 2009:

                               

Total market value

  $ 11,198.4   $ 11,061.6   $ 10,920.7   $ 10,775.8   $ 10,627.8  

Market value change from base

    2.54 %   1.29 %       (1.33 )%   (2.68 )%

Change in unrealized value

  $ 277.7   $ 140.9   $   $ (144.9 ) $ (292.9 )

        Another method that attempts to measure portfolio risk is Value-at-Risk ("VaR"). VaR attempts to take into account a broad cross-section of risks facing a portfolio by utilizing relevant securities volatility data skewed towards the most recent months and quarters. VaR measures the amount of a portfolio at risk for outcomes 1.65 standard deviations from the mean based on normal market conditions over a one year time horizon and is expressed as a percentage of the portfolio's initial value.

126


Table of Contents


In other words, 95% of the time, should the risks taken into account in the VaR model perform per their historical tendencies, the portfolio's loss in any one year period is expected to be less than or equal to the calculated VaR, stated as a percentage of the measured portfolio's initial value. As of December 31, 2010, our portfolio's VaR was estimated to be 3.76%, compared to an estimated 4.79% at December 31, 2009.

        Equity Securities, Privately Held Securities and Other Investments.    Our investment portfolio includes an allocation to equity securities, privately held securities and certain other investments. At December 31, 2010 and 2009, the market value of our investments in equity securities, privately held securities (excluding our investment in Aeolus LP which is accounted for using the equity method) and certain other investments totaled $587.1 million and $44.5 million, respectively. These securities are exposed to price risk, which is the potential loss arising from decreases in market value. An immediate hypothetical 10% depreciation in the value of each position would reduce the market value of such investments by approximately $58.7 million and $4.4 million at December 31, 2010 and 2009, respectively, and would have decreased book value per common share by approximately $1.26 and $0.08, respectively.

        Investment—Related Derivatives.    Derivative instruments may be used to enhance investment performance, replicate investment positions or manage market exposures and duration risk that would be allowed under our investment guidelines if implemented in other ways. The market values of those derivatives are based on quoted market prices. See note 9, "Derivative Instruments," of the notes accompanying our consolidated financial Statements for additional disclosures concerning derivatives. At December 31, 2010, the notional value of the net long position of derivative instruments (excluding to-be-announced mortgage backed securities which are included in the fixed income securities analysis above and foreign currency forward contracts which are included in the foreign currency exchange risk analysis below) was $1.04 billion, compared to $1.13 billion at December 31, 2009. A 100 basis point depreciation of the underlying exposure to these derivative instruments at December 31, 2010 and 2009 would have resulted in a reduction in net income of approximately $10.4 million and $11.3 million, respectively, and would have decreased book value per common share by $0.22 and $0.21, respectively.

        For further discussion on investment activity, please refer to "—Financial Condition, Liquidity and Capital Resources—Financial Condition—Investable Assets."

        Foreign currency rate risk is the potential change in value, income and cash flow arising from adverse changes in foreign currency exchange rates. Through our subsidiaries and branches located in various foreign countries, we conduct our insurance and reinsurance operations in a variety of local currencies other than the U.S. Dollar. We generally hold investments in foreign currencies which are intended to mitigate our exposure to foreign currency fluctuations in our net insurance liabilities. We may also utilize foreign currency forward contracts and currency options as part of our investment strategy. In addition, as a result of the current financial and economic environment as well as the potential for additional investment returns, we may not match a portion of our projected liabilities in foreign currencies with investments in the same currencies, which would increase our exposure to foreign currency fluctuations and increase the volatility in our results of operations. A 10% appreciation of the U.S. Dollar against the major foreign currencies for our outstanding contracts, net of unrealized depreciation on our securities denominated in currencies other than the U.S. Dollar and the impact of foreign currency forward contracts and currency options, would have resulted in unrealized losses of approximately $16.5 million and would have decreased book value per common share by $0.35 at December 31, 2010, compared to unrealized losses of approximately $23.0 million and a decrease in book value per common share of $0.42 at December 31, 2009. Historical observations indicate a low probability that all foreign currency exchange rates would shift against the U.S. Dollar in the same direction and at the same time and, accordingly, the actual effect of foreign currency rate

127


Table of Contents

movements may differ materially from the amounts set forth above. For further discussion on foreign exchange activity, please refer to "—Results of Operations."

        We do not believe that inflation has had a material effect on our consolidated results of operations, except insofar as inflation may affect our reserves for losses and loss adjustment expenses and interest rates. The potential exists, after a catastrophe loss, for the development of inflationary pressures in a local economy. The anticipated effects of inflation on us are considered in our catastrophe loss models. The actual effects of inflation on our results cannot be accurately known until claims are ultimately settled.

ITEM 7A.    QUANTITATIVE AND QUALITATIVE DISCLOSURES ABOUT MARKET RISK

        Reference is made to the information appearing above under the subheading "Market Sensitive Instruments and Risk Management" under the caption "Management's Discussion and Analysis of Financial Condition and Results of Operation," which information is hereby incorporated by reference.

128


Table of Contents

ITEM 8.    FINANCIAL STATEMENTS AND SUPPLEMENTARY DATA

Index to Financial Statements and Schedules
  Page No.  

Report of Independent Registered Public Accounting Firm

    130  

Consolidated Balance Sheets At December 31, 2010 and December 31, 2009

   
131
 

Consolidated Statements of Income For the years ended December 31, 2010 and 2009 and 2008

   
133
 

Consolidated Statements of Changes in Shareholders' Equity For the years ended December 31, 2010 and 2009 and 2008

   
132
 

Consolidated Statements of Comprehensive Income For the years ended December 31, 2010 and 2009 and 2008

   
134
 

Consolidated Statements of Cash Flows For the years ended December 31, 2010 and 2009 and 2008

   
135
 

Notes to Consolidated Financial Statements

   
136
 

129


Table of Contents


Report of Independent Registered Public Accounting Firm

To the Board of Directors and Shareholders of
Arch Capital Group Ltd.:

        In our opinion, the consolidated financial statements listed in the accompanying index, present fairly, in all material respects, the financial position of Arch Capital Group Ltd. and its subsidiaries (the "Company") at December 31, 2010 and December 31, 2009, and the results of its operations and its cash flows for each of the three years in the period ended December 31, 2010 in conformity with accounting principles generally accepted in the United States of America. In addition, in our opinion, the financial statement schedules listed in the accompanying index present fairly, in all material respects, the information set forth therein when read in conjunction with the related consolidated financial statements. Also in our opinion, the Company maintained, in all material respects, effective internal control over financial reporting as of December 31, 2010, based on criteria established in Internal Control—Integrated Framework issued by the Committee of Sponsoring Organizations of the Treadway Commission (COSO). The Company's management is responsible for these financial statements and financial statement schedules, for maintaining effective internal control over financial reporting and for its assessment of the effectiveness of internal control over financial reporting, included in Management's Report on Internal Control over Financial Reporting appearing under Item 9A. Our responsibility is to express opinions on these financial statements, on the financial statement schedules, and on the Company's internal control over financial reporting based on our integrated audit. We conducted our audits in accordance with the standards of the Public Company Accounting Oversight Board (United States). Those standards require that we plan and perform the audits to obtain reasonable assurance about whether the financial statements are free of material misstatement and whether effective internal control over financial reporting was maintained in all material respects. Our audits of the financial statements included examining, on a test basis, evidence supporting the amounts and disclosures in the financial statements, assessing the accounting principles used and significant estimates made by management, and evaluating the overall financial statement presentation. Our audit of internal control over financial reporting included obtaining an understanding of internal control over financial reporting, assessing the risk that a material weakness exists, and testing and evaluating the design and operating effectiveness of internal control based on the assessed risk. Our audits also included performing such other procedures as we considered necessary in the circumstances. We believe that our audits provide a reasonable basis for our opinions.

        As discussed in Note 2 to the consolidated financial statements, the Company changed the manner in which it accounts for other-than-temporary impairment losses in 2009.

        A company's internal control over financial reporting is a process designed to provide reasonable assurance regarding the reliability of financial reporting and the preparation of financial statements for external purposes in accordance with generally accepted accounting principles. A company's internal control over financial reporting includes those policies and procedures that (i) pertain to the maintenance of records that, in reasonable detail, accurately and fairly reflect the transactions and dispositions of the assets of the company; (ii) provide reasonable assurance that transactions are recorded as necessary to permit preparation of financial statements in accordance with generally accepted accounting principles, and that receipts and expenditures of the company are being made only in accordance with authorizations of management and directors of the company; and (iii) provide reasonable assurance regarding prevention or timely detection of unauthorized acquisition, use, or disposition of the company's assets that could have a material effect on the financial statements.

        Because of its inherent limitations, internal control over financial reporting may not prevent or detect misstatements. Also, projections of any evaluation of effectiveness to future periods are subject to the risk that controls may become inadequate because of changes in conditions, or that the degree of compliance with the policies or procedures may deteriorate.

/s/ PricewaterhouseCoopers LLP
New York, New York
February 28, 2011

130


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

CONSOLIDATED BALANCE SHEETS

(U.S. dollars in thousands, except share data)

 
  December 31,  
 
  2010   2009  

Assets

             

Investments:

             

Fixed maturities available for sale, at market value (amortized cost: $8,896,957 and $9,227,432)

  $ 9,082,828   $ 9,391,926  

Short-term investments available for sale, at market value (amortized cost: $913,488 and $570,469)

    915,841     571,489  

Investment of funds received under securities lending agreements, at market value (amortized cost: $69,682 and $96,590)

    69,660     91,160  

TALF investments, at market value (amortized cost: $389,200 and $247,192)

    402,449     250,265  

Equity securities available for sale, at market value (cost: $346,019 and $36,478)

    363,255     36,623  

Other investments (cost: $326,324 and $126,027)

    349,272     135,549  

Investment funds accounted for using the equity method

    434,600     391,869  
           
 

Total investments

    11,617,905     10,868,881  

Cash

   
362,740
   
334,571
 

Accrued investment income

    74,837     70,673  

Investment in joint venture (cost: $100,000)

    105,698     102,855  

Fixed maturities and short-term investments pledged under securities lending agreements, at market value

    75,575     212,820  

Securities purchased under agreements to resell using funds received under securities lending agreements

        115,839  

Premiums receivable

    503,434     595,030  

Unpaid losses and loss adjustment expenses recoverable

    1,703,201     1,659,500  

Paid losses and loss adjustment expenses recoverable

    60,784     60,770  

Prepaid reinsurance premiums

    263,448     277,985  

Deferred acquisition costs, net

    277,861     280,372  

Receivable for securities sold

    56,145     187,171  

Other assets

    669,164     609,323  
           
 

Total Assets

  $ 15,770,792   $ 15,375,790  
           

Liabilities

             

Reserve for losses and loss adjustment expenses

  $ 8,098,454   $ 7,873,412  

Unearned premiums

    1,370,075     1,433,331  

Reinsurance balances payable

    132,452     156,500  

Senior notes

    300,000     300,000  

Revolving credit agreement borrowings

    100,000     100,000  

TALF borrowings, at market value (par: $326,219 and $218,740)

    325,770     217,565  

Securities lending payable

    78,021     219,116  

Payable for securities purchased

    200,192     136,381  

Other liabilities

    652,825     616,136  
           
 

Total Liabilities

    11,257,789     11,052,441  
           

Commitments and Contingencies

             

Shareholders' Equity

             

Non-cumulative preferred shares—Series A and B

    325,000     325,000  

Common shares ($0.01 par, shares issued: 53,357,872 and 54,761,678)

    534     548  

Additional paid-in capital

    110,325     253,466  

Retained earnings

    4,422,553     3,605,809  

Accumulated other comprehensive income, net of deferred income tax

    204,503     138,526  

Common shares held in treasury, at cost (shares: 6,813,797 and 0)

    (549,912 )    
           
 

Total Shareholders' Equity

    4,513,003     4,323,349  
           
 

Total Liabilities and Shareholders' Equity

  $ 15,770,792   $ 15,375,790  
           

See Notes to Consolidated Financial Statements

131


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

CONSOLIDATED STATEMENTS OF CHANGES IN SHAREHOLDERS' EQUITY

(U.S. dollars in thousands)

 
  Year Ended December 31,  
 
  2010   2009   2008  

Non-Cumulative Preferred Shares

                   

Balance at beginning and end of year

  $ 325,000   $ 325,000   $ 325,000  

Common Shares

                   

Balance at beginning of year

    548     605     673  

Common shares issued, net

    16     10     6  

Purchases of common shares under share repurchase program

    (30 )   (67 )   (74 )
               

Balance at end of year

    534     548     605  
               

Additional Paid-in Capital

                   

Balance at beginning of year

    253,466     669,715     1,126,797  

Common shares issued

    4,906     3,730     4,507  

Exercise of stock options

    37,866     16,518     23,812  

Common shares retired

    (217,562 )   (463,486 )   (515,325 )

Amortization of share-based compensation

    31,065     27,042     30,277  

Other

    584     (53 )   (353 )
               

Balance at end of year

    110,325     253,466     669,715  
               

Retained Earnings

                   

Balance at beginning of year

    3,605,809     2,693,239     2,428,117  

Cumulative effect of change in accounting principle(1)

        61,469      
               

Balance at beginning of year, as adjusted

    3,605,809     2,754,708     2,428,117  

Dividends declared on preferred shares

    (25,844 )   (25,844 )   (25,844 )

Net income

    842,588     876,945     290,966  
               

Balance at end of year

    4,422,553     3,605,809     2,693,239  
               

Accumulated Other Comprehensive Income (Loss)

                   

Balance at beginning of year

    138,526     (255,594 )   155,224  

Cumulative effect of change in accounting principle(1)

        (61,469 )    
               

Balance at beginning of year, as adjusted

    138,526     (317,063 )   155,224  

Change in unrealized appreciation (decline) in value of investments, net of deferred income tax

    66,805     525,606     (375,278 )

Portion of other-than-temporary impairment losses recognized in other comprehensive income, net of deferred income tax

    (1,752 )   (81,376 )    

Foreign currency translation adjustments, net of deferred income tax

    924     11,359     (35,540 )
               

Balance at end of year

    204,503     138,526     (255,594 )
               

Common Shares Held in Treasury, at Cost

                   

Balance at beginning of year

             

Shares repurchased for treasury

    (549,912 )        
               

Balance at end of year

    (549,912 )        
               

Total Shareholders' Equity

  $ 4,513,003   $ 4,323,349   $ 3,432,965  
               

(1)
Adoption of accounting guidance regarding the recognition and presentation of other-than-temporary impairments.

See Notes to Consolidated Financial Statements

132


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

CONSOLIDATED STATEMENTS OF INCOME

(U.S. dollars in thousands, except share data)

 
  Year Ended December 31,  
 
  2010   2009   2008  

Revenues

                   

Net premiums written

  $ 2,511,040   $ 2,763,112   $ 2,805,726  

Change in unearned premiums

    41,443     79,633     39,728  
               

Net premiums earned

    2,552,483     2,842,745     2,845,454  

Net investment income

    364,878     390,131     468,080  

Net realized gains (losses)

    252,751     143,582     (3,939 )

Other-than-temporary impairment losses

    (13,073 )   (147,509 )   (181,162 )

Less investment impairments recognized in other comprehensive income, before taxes

    1,752     81,376      
               

Net impairment losses recognized in earnings

    (11,321 )   (66,133 )   (181,162 )

Fee income

    5,365     3,462     4,706  

Equity in net income (loss) of investment funds accounted for using the equity method

    61,400     167,819     (178,608 )

Other income

    18,511     20,016     12,282  
               

Total revenues

    3,244,067     3,501,622     2,966,813  
               

Expenses

                   

Losses and loss adjustment expenses

    1,517,715     1,654,674     1,848,744  

Acquisition expenses

    441,202     493,560     490,509  

Other operating expenses

    432,795     392,138     395,802  

Interest expense

    30,007     24,440     23,838  

Net foreign exchange (gains) losses

    (28,108 )   39,157     (96,585 )
               

Total expenses

    2,393,611     2,603,969     2,662,308  
               

Income before income taxes

    850,456     897,653     304,505  

Income taxes:

                   

Current tax expense

    19,293     23,612     23,160  

Deferred tax benefit

    (11,425 )   (2,904 )   (9,621 )
               

Income tax expense

    7,868     20,708     13,539  
               

Net Income

    842,588     876,945     290,966  

Preferred dividends

    25,844     25,844     25,844  
               

Net income available to common shareholders

  $ 816,744   $ 851,101   $ 265,122  
               

Net income per common share

                   

Basic

  $ 16.28   $ 14.29   $ 4.27  

Diluted

  $ 15.55   $ 13.74   $ 4.09  

Weighted average common shares and common share equivalents outstanding

                   

Basic

    50,181,716     59,560,361     62,101,203  

Diluted

    52,521,719     61,927,132     64,789,052  

See Notes to Consolidated Financial Statements

133


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

CONSOLIDATED STATEMENTS OF COMPREHENSIVE INCOME

(U.S. dollars in thousands)

 
  Year Ended December 31,  
 
  2010   2009   2008  

Comprehensive Income (Loss)

                   

Net income

  $ 842,588   $ 876,945   $ 290,966  

Other comprehensive income (loss), net of deferred income tax

                   
 

Unrealized appreciation (decline) in value of investments:

                   
   

Unrealized holding gains (losses) arising during period

    236,736     574,184     (582,243 )
   

Portion of other-than-temporary impairment losses recognized in other comprehensive income, net of deferred income tax

    (1,752 )   (81,376 )    
   

Reclassification of net realized (gains) losses, net of income taxes, included in net income

    (169,931 )   (48,578 )   206,965  
 

Foreign currency translation adjustments

    924     11,359     (35,540 )
               
 

Other comprehensive income (loss)

    65,977     455,589     (410,818 )
               

Comprehensive Income (Loss)

  $ 908,565   $ 1,332,534   $ (119,852 )
               

See Notes to Consolidated Financial Statements

134


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

CONSOLIDATED STATEMENTS OF CASH FLOWS

(U.S. dollars in thousands)

 
  Year Ended December 31,  
 
  2010   2009   2008  

Operating Activities

                   

Net income

  $ 842,588   $ 876,945   $ 290,966  

Adjustments to reconcile net income to net cash provided by operating activities:

                   
 

Net realized (gains) losses

    (262,684 )   (123,841 )   8,752  
 

Net impairment losses recognized in earnings

    11,321     66,133     181,162  
 

Equity in net (income) loss of investment funds accounted for using the equity method and other income

    (56,035 )   (183,038 )   166,610  
 

Share-based compensation

    31,065     27,042     30,277  
 

Changes in:

                   
   

Reserve for losses and loss adjustment expenses, net of unpaid losses and loss adjustment expenses recoverable

    215,570     219,607     658,501  
   

Unearned premiums, net of prepaid reinsurance premiums

    (43,337 )   (79,842 )   (42,029 )
   

Premiums receivable

    83,380     44,438     8,031  
   

Deferred acquisition costs, net

    1,340     17,572     (9,626 )
   

Reinsurance balances payable

    (18,978 )   15,913     (153,882 )
   

Other liabilities

    (39,196 )   (24,297 )   (81,353 )
   

Other items, net

    37,040     136,015     81,689  
               
     

Net Cash Provided By Operating Activities

    802,074     992,647     1,139,098  
               

Investing Activities

                   

Purchases of:

                   
 

Fixed maturity investments

    (16,936,257 )   (21,270,266 )   (17,407,841 )
 

Equity securities

    (365,842 )   (70,002 )    
 

Other investments

    (523,532 )   (225,477 )   (480,417 )

Proceeds from the sales of:

                   
 

Fixed maturity investments

    16,654,774     19,777,948     16,171,374  
 

Equity securities

    70,441     38,336      
 

Other investments

    379,100     300,084     460,178  

Proceeds from redemptions and maturities of fixed maturity investments

    949,870     785,118     582,346  

Net (purchases) sales of short-term investments

    (341,887 )   19,570     92,053  

Change in investment of securities lending collateral

    141,094     534,412     750,195  

Investment in joint venture

            (100,000 )

Purchases of furniture, equipment and other assets

    (11,664 )   (19,483 )   (9,501 )
               
     

Net Cash Provided By (Used For) Investing Activities

    16,097     (129,760 )   58,387  
               

Financing Activities

                   

Purchases of common shares under share repurchase program

    (761,874 )   (458,402 )   (513,130 )

Proceeds from common shares issued, net

    27,649     9,966     21,881  

Proceeds from borrowings

    264,526     269,843     100,000  

Repayments of borrowings

    (157,057 )   (51,103 )    

Change in securities lending collateral

    (141,094 )   (534,412 )   (750,195 )

Other

    8,057     4,355     2,476  

Preferred dividends paid

    (25,844 )   (25,844 )   (25,844 )
               
     

Net Cash Used For Financing Activities

    (785,637 )   (785,597 )   (1,164,812 )
               

Effects of exchange rate changes on foreign currency cash

    (4,365 )   5,542     (20,849 )
               

Increase in cash

    28,169     82,832     11,824  

Cash beginning of year

    334,571     251,739     239,915  
               

Cash end of year

  $ 362,740   $ 334,571   $ 251,739  
               

See Notes to Consolidated Financial Statements

135


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS

1. General

        Arch Capital Group Ltd. ("ACGL") is a Bermuda public limited liability company which provides insurance and reinsurance on a worldwide basis through its wholly owned subsidiaries.

        ACGL was formed in September 2000 and became the sole shareholder of Arch Capital Group (U.S.) Inc. ("Arch-U.S.") pursuant to an internal reorganization transaction completed in November 2000, as described below. Arch-U.S. is a Delaware company formed in March 1995 under the original name of "Risk Capital Holdings, Inc." Prior to May 5, 2000, Arch-U.S. provided reinsurance and other forms of capital for insurance companies through its wholly owned subsidiary, Arch Reinsurance Company ("Arch Re U.S."), a Nebraska corporation formed in 1995 under the original name of "Risk Capital Reinsurance Company."

        On May 5, 2000, Arch-U.S. sold the prior reinsurance operations of Arch Re U.S. to White Mountains Reinsurance Company of America ("WTM Re"), formerly known as Folksamerica Reinsurance Company, in an asset sale, but retained its surplus and U.S.-licensed reinsurance platform. The WTM Re transaction was structured as a transfer and assumption agreement (and not reinsurance) and, accordingly, the loss reserves (and any related reinsurance recoverables) related to the transferred business are not included in the Company's balance sheet. However, in the event that WTM Re refuses or is unable to make payment of claims on the reinsurance business assumed by it in the May 2000 sale and the notice given to reinsureds is found not to be an effective release by such reinsureds, Arch Re U.S. would be liable for such claims (see Note 13). On November 8, 2000, following the approval of Arch-U.S.'s shareholders, Arch-U.S. completed an internal reorganization that resulted in Arch-U.S. becoming a wholly owned subsidiary of ACGL.

        In October 2001, the Company launched an underwriting initiative to meet current and future demand in the global insurance and reinsurance markets that included the recruitment of new management teams and an equity capital infusion of $763.2 million.

        As used herein, the "Company" means ACGL and its subsidiaries, except when referring to periods prior to November 8, 2000, when it means Arch-U.S. and its subsidiaries. Similarly, "Common Shares" means the common shares, par value $0.01, of ACGL, except when referring to periods prior to November 8, 2000, when it means the common stock of Arch-U.S.

2. Significant Accounting Policies

        The consolidated financial statements have been prepared in conformity with accounting principles generally accepted in the United States of America ("GAAP") and include the accounts of ACGL and its subsidiaries, including Arch Reinsurance Ltd. ("Arch Re Bermuda"), Arch Re U.S., Arch-U.S., Arch Insurance Company, Arch Specialty Insurance Company, Arch Excess & Surplus Insurance Company, Arch Indemnity Insurance Company, Arch Risk Transfer Services Ltd., Arch Reinsurance Europe Underwriting Limited ("Arch Re Europe"), Arch Insurance Company (Europe) Limited ("Arch Insurance Company Europe") and Lloyd's of London syndicate 2012 and related companies ("Arch Syndicate 2012"). All significant intercompany transactions and balances have been eliminated in consolidation. The preparation of financial statements in conformity with GAAP requires management to make estimates and assumptions that affect the reported amounts of assets and liabilities and disclosure of contingent assets and liabilities at the date of the financial statements and the reported

136


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

2. Significant Accounting Policies (Continued)

amounts of revenues and expenses during the reporting period. Actual results could differ from those estimates and assumptions.

        The Company has reclassified the presentation of certain prior year information to conform to the current presentation. Such reclassifications had no effect on the Company's net income, shareholders' equity or cash flows. Tabular amounts are in U.S. Dollars in thousands, except share amounts, unless otherwise noted.

        Insurance premiums written are generally recorded at the policy inception and are primarily earned on a pro rata basis over the terms of the policies for all products, usually 12 months. Premiums written include estimates in the Company's programs, specialty lines, collateral protection business and for participation in involuntary pools. Such premium estimates are derived from multiple sources which include the historical experience of the underlying business, similar business and available industry information. Unearned premium reserves represent the portion of premiums written that relates to the unexpired terms of in-force insurance policies.

        Reinsurance premiums written include amounts reported by brokers and ceding companies, supplemented by the Company's own estimates of premiums where reports have not been received. The determination of premium estimates requires a review of the Company's experience with the ceding companies, familiarity with each market, the timing of the reported information, an analysis and understanding of the characteristics of each line of business, and management's judgment of the impact of various factors, including premium or loss trends, on the volume of business written and ceded to the Company. On an ongoing basis, the Company's underwriters review the amounts reported by these third parties for reasonableness based on their experience and knowledge of the subject class of business, taking into account the Company's historical experience with the brokers or ceding companies. In addition, reinsurance contracts under which the Company assumes business generally contain specific provisions which allow the Company to perform audits of the ceding company to ensure compliance with the terms and conditions of the contract, including accurate and timely reporting of information. Based on a review of all available information, management establishes premium estimates where reports have not been received. Premium estimates are updated when new information is received and differences between such estimates and actual amounts are recorded in the period in which estimates are changed or the actual amounts are determined.

        Reinsurance premiums written are recorded based on the type of contracts the Company writes. Premiums on the Company's excess of loss and pro rata reinsurance contracts are estimated when the business is underwritten. For excess of loss contracts, premiums are recorded as written based on the terms of the contract. Estimates of premiums written under pro rata contracts are recorded in the period in which the underlying risks are expected to incept and are based on information provided by the brokers and the ceding companies. For multi-year reinsurance treaties which are payable in annual installments, generally, only the initial annual installment is included as premiums written at policy inception due to the ability of the reinsured to commute or cancel coverage during the term of the policy. The remaining annual installments are included as premiums written at each successive anniversary date within the multi-year term.

        Reinstatement premiums for the Company's insurance and reinsurance operations are recognized at the time a loss event occurs, where coverage limits for the remaining life of the contract are

137


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

2. Significant Accounting Policies (Continued)


reinstated under pre-defined contract terms. Reinstatement premiums, if obligatory, are fully earned when recognized. The accrual of reinstatement premiums is based on an estimate of losses and loss adjustment expenses, which reflects management's judgment.

        Premium estimates are reviewed by management at least quarterly. Such review includes a comparison of actual reported premiums to expected ultimate premiums along with a review of the aging and collection of premium estimates. Based on management's review, the appropriateness of the premium estimates is evaluated, and any adjustment to these estimates is recorded in the period in which it becomes known. Adjustments to premium estimates could be material and such adjustments could directly and significantly impact earnings favorably or unfavorably in the period they are determined because the estimated premium may be fully or substantially earned. A significant portion of amounts included as premiums receivable, which represent estimated premiums written, net of commissions, are not currently due based on the terms of the underlying contracts.

        Reinsurance premiums written, irrespective of the class of business, are generally earned on a pro rata basis over the terms of the underlying policies or reinsurance contracts. Contracts and policies written on a "losses occurring" basis cover claims that may occur during the term of the contract or policy, which is typically 12 months. Accordingly, the premium is earned evenly over the term. Contracts which are written on a "risks attaching" basis cover claims which attach to the underlying insurance policies written during the terms of such contracts. Premiums earned on such contracts usually extend beyond the original term of the reinsurance contract, typically resulting in recognition of premiums earned over a 24-month period.

        Certain of the Company's reinsurance contracts include provisions that adjust premiums or acquisition expenses based upon the experience under the contracts. Premiums written and earned, as well as related acquisition expenses, are recorded based upon the projected experience under such contracts.

        The Company also writes certain reinsurance business that is intended to provide insurers with risk management solutions that complement traditional reinsurance. Under these contracts, the Company assumes a measured amount of insurance risk in exchange for an anticipated margin, which is typically lower than on traditional reinsurance contracts. The terms and conditions of these contracts may include additional or return premiums based on loss experience, loss corridors, sublimits and caps. Examples of such business include aggregate stop-loss coverages, financial quota share coverages and multi-year retrospectively rated excess of loss coverages. If these contracts are deemed to transfer risk, they are accounted for as reinsurance.

        Acquisition expenses and other expenses that vary with, and are directly related to, the acquisition of business related to the Company's underwriting operations are deferred and amortized over the period in which the related premiums are earned. Acquisition expenses, net of ceding commissions received from reinsurers, consist principally of commissions and premium taxes paid to obtain the Company's business. Other operating expenses also include expenses that vary with, and are directly related to, the acquisition of business. Deferred acquisition costs, which are based on the related unearned premiums, are carried at their estimated realizable value and take into account anticipated losses and loss adjustment expenses, based on historical and current experience, and anticipated investment income. A premium deficiency occurs if the sum of anticipated losses and loss adjustment expenses, unamortized acquisition costs and maintenance costs and anticipated investment income exceed unearned premiums. A premium deficiency is recorded by charging any unamortized acquisition

138


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

2. Significant Accounting Policies (Continued)


costs to expense to the extent required in order to eliminate the deficiency. If the premium deficiency exceeds unamortized acquisition costs then a liability is accrued for the excess deficiency. No significant premium deficiency charges were recorded by the Company during 2010, 2009 or 2008.

        Certain assumed reinsurance contracts, which pursuant to Financial Accounting Standards Board ("FASB") guidance regarding the accounting and reporting for reinsurance and short-duration and long-duration contracts, are deemed not to transfer insurance risk, are accounted for using the deposit method of accounting as prescribed in the FASB guidance regarding the accounting for insurance and reinsurance contracts that do not transfer insurance risk. However, it is possible that the Company could incur financial losses on such contracts. Management exercises significant judgment in the assumptions used in determining whether assumed contracts should be accounted for as reinsurance contracts or deposit insurance contracts. Under the FASB guidance, for those contracts that contain an element of underwriting risk, the estimated profit margin is deferred and amortized over the contract period and such amount is included in the Company's underwriting results. When the estimated profit margin is explicit, the margin is reflected as fee income and any adverse financial results on such contracts are reflected as incurred losses. When the estimated profit margin is implicit, the margin is reflected as an offset to paid losses and any adverse financial results on such contracts are reflected as incurred losses. For those contracts that do not transfer an element of underwriting risk, the projected profit is reflected in earnings over the estimated settlement period using the interest method and such profit is included in investment income. Additional judgments are required when applying the accounting guidance with respect to the revenue recognition criteria for contracts deemed not to transfer insurance risk. Deposit accounting liabilities, which totaled $32.4 million and $38.2 million, respectively, at December 31, 2010 and 2009, are included in "Other liabilities" on the Company's balance sheet.

        Retroactive reinsurance reimburses a ceding company for liabilities incurred as a result of past insurable events covered by the underlying policies reinsured. In certain instances, reinsurance contracts cover losses both on a prospective basis and on a retroactive basis and, accordingly, the Company bifurcates the prospective and retrospective elements of these reinsurance contracts and accounts for each element separately. Underwriting income generated in connection with retroactive reinsurance contracts is deferred and amortized into income over the settlement period while losses are charged to income immediately. Subsequent changes in estimated or actual cash flows under such retroactive reinsurance contracts are accounted for by adjusting the previously deferred amount to the balance that would have existed had the revised estimate been available at the inception of the reinsurance transaction, with a corresponding charge or credit to income.

        In the normal course of business, the Company purchases reinsurance to increase capacity and to limit the impact of individual losses and events on its underwriting results by reinsuring certain levels of risk with other insurance enterprises or reinsurers. The Company uses pro rata, excess of loss and facultative reinsurance contracts. Reinsurance ceding commissions are recognized as income on a pro rata basis over the period of risk. The portion of such commissions that will be earned in the future is

139


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

2. Significant Accounting Policies (Continued)

deferred and reported as a reduction to acquisition costs. The accompanying consolidated statement of income reflects premiums and losses and loss adjustment expenses and acquisition costs, net of reinsurance ceded (see Note 4). Ceded unearned premiums are reported as prepaid reinsurance premiums and estimated amounts of reinsurance recoverable on unpaid losses are reported as unpaid losses and loss adjustment expenses recoverable. Reinsurance premiums ceded and unpaid losses and loss adjustment expenses recoverable are estimated in a manner consistent with that of the original policies issued and the terms of the reinsurance contracts. If the reinsurers are unable to satisfy their obligations under the agreements, the Company's insurance or reinsurance subsidiaries would be liable for such defaulted amounts.

        Cash includes cash equivalents, which are investments with original maturities of three months or less that are not managed by external or internal investment advisors.

        The Company currently classifies substantially all of its fixed maturity investments, equity securities and short-term investments as "available for sale" and, accordingly, they are carried at estimated market value (also known as fair value). The market value of fixed maturity securities and equity securities is generally determined from quotations received from nationally recognized pricing services, or when such prices are not available, by reference to broker or underwriter bid indications. Short-term investments comprise securities due to mature within one year of the date of issue. Short-term investments include certain cash equivalents which are part of investment portfolios under the management of external and internal investment managers.

        The Company participates in a securities lending program as a mechanism for generating additional interest income on its fixed income portfolio. Under the security lending agreements, certain of its fixed income portfolio securities are loaned to third parties, primarily major brokerage firms, for short periods of time through a lending agent. Such securities have been reclassified as "Fixed maturities and short-term investments pledged under securities lending agreements, at market value." The Company maintains legal control over the securities it lends, retains the earnings and cash flows associated with the loaned securities and receives a fee from the borrower for the temporary use of the securities. Collateral received, primarily in the form of cash, is required at a rate of 102% of the market value of the loaned securities (or 105% of the market value of the loaned securities when the collateral and loaned securities are denominated in non-U.S. currencies) including accrued investment income and is monitored and maintained by the lending agent. Such collateral is reinvested and is reflected as "Investment of funds received under securities lending agreements, at market value" and "Securities purchased under agreements to resell using funds received under securities lending agreements."

        During 2009, the Company purchased asset-backed and commercial mortgage-backed securities under the Federal Reserve Bank of New York's ("FRBNY") Term Asset-Backed Securities Loan Facility ("TALF") program. TALF provides secured financing for asset-backed securities backed by certain types of consumer and small business loans and for legacy commercial mortgage-backed securities. TALF financing is non-recourse to the Company, except in certain limited instances, and is collateralized by the purchased securities and provides financing for the purchase price of the securities,

140


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

2. Significant Accounting Policies (Continued)


less a 'haircut' that varies based on the type of collateral. The Company can deliver the collateralized securities to a special purpose vehicle created by FRBNY in full defeasance of the borrowing. The Company elected to carry the securities and related borrowings at fair value under the fair value option afforded by accounting guidance regarding the fair value option for financial assets and financial liabilities. The securities purchased under TALF are reflected as "TALF investments, at market value" and the secured financing from the FRBNY is reflected as "TALF borrowings, at market value." Changes in market value for both the securities and borrowings are included in "Net realized gains (losses)," while interest income on the TALF investments is reflected in net investment income and interest expense on the TALF borrowings is reflected in interest expense.

        The Company's investment portfolio includes certain funds that invest in fixed maturity securities which, due to their ownership structure, are accounted for by the Company using the equity method. In applying the equity method, these investments are initially recorded at cost and are subsequently adjusted based on the Company's proportionate share of the net income or loss of the funds (which include changes in the market value of the underlying securities in the funds). Such investments are generally recorded on a one month lag with some investments reported for on a three month lag based on the availability of reports from the investment funds. Changes in the carrying value of such investments are recorded in net income as "Equity in net income (loss) of investment funds accounted for using the equity method" while changes in the carrying value of the Company's other fixed income investments are recorded as an unrealized gain or loss component of accumulated other comprehensive income in shareholders' equity. As such, fluctuations in the carrying value of the investment funds accounted for using the equity method may increase the volatility of the Company's reported results of operations.

        Other investments include: (i) investment funds which predominantly invest in fixed maturity securities and (ii) privately held securities and other which include the Company's investment in Aeolus LP (see Note 12). The estimated market value of investments in privately held securities, other than those carried under the equity method, are initially valued based upon transaction price and then adjusted upwards or downwards from the transaction price to reflect expected exit values.

        Investments in equity securities are carried at estimated market value in accordance with FASB guidance regarding the accounting for certain investments in debt and equity securities. The Company elected to carry certain equity securities at fair value under the fair value option afforded by accounting guidance regarding the fair value option for financial assets and liabilities.

        The Company performs quarterly reviews of its investments to determine whether declines in market value below the cost basis are considered other-than-temporary in accordance with applicable accounting guidance regarding the recognition and presentation of other-than-temporary impairments ("OTTI"). The process of determining whether a security is other-than-temporarily impaired requires judgment and involves analyzing many factors. These factors include (i) an analysis of the liquidity, business prospects and overall financial condition of the issuer, (ii) the time period in which there was a significant decline in value, (iii) the significance of the decline and (iv) the analysis of specific credit events. The Company evaluates the unrealized losses of its equity securities by issuer and forecasts a reasonable period of time by which the fair value of the securities would increase and the Company would recover its cost. If the Company is unable to forecast a reasonable period of time in which to recover the cost of its equity securities, a net impairment loss in earnings equivalent to the entire unrealized loss is recognized.

141


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

2. Significant Accounting Policies (Continued)

        In 2009, the Company adopted additional guidance that requires entities to separate an other-than-temporary impairment of a debt security into two components when there are credit related losses associated with the impaired debt security for which an entity asserts that it does not have the intent to sell the security, and it is more likely than not that it will not be required to sell the security before recovery of its cost basis. The effect of adoption was an increase to the amortized cost basis of debt securities that were impaired prior to 2009, net of deferred tax, of $62.0 million. The cumulative effect adjustment had no effect on total shareholders' equity as it increased retained earnings and reduced accumulated other comprehensive income. In accordance with the additional guidance, the amount of the OTTI related to a credit loss is recognized in earnings, and the amount of the OTTI related to other factors (e.g., interest rates, market conditions, etc.) is recorded as a component of other comprehensive income (loss). The amount of the credit loss of an impaired debt security is the difference between the amortized cost and the greater of (i) the present value of expected future cash flows and (ii) the fair value of the security. In instances where no credit loss exists but it is more likely than not that the Company will have to sell the debt security prior to the anticipated recovery, the decline in market value below amortized cost is recognized as an OTTI in earnings. In periods after the recognition of an OTTI on debt securities, the Company accounts for such securities as if they had been purchased on the measurement date of the OTTI at an amortized cost basis equal to the previous amortized cost basis less the OTTI recognized in earnings. For debt securities for which OTTI were recognized in earnings, the difference between the new amortized cost basis and the cash flows expected to be collected will be accreted or amortized into net investment income. See Note 7, "Investment Information—Other-Than-Temporary Impairments" for additional information.

        Under FASB guidance regarding the accounting for derivative instruments and hedging activities, all derivative financial instruments, including embedded derivative instruments, are required to be recognized as either assets or liabilities in the consolidated balance sheets and measured at market value. The accounting for gains and losses associated with changes in the market value of a derivative and the effect on the consolidated financial statements depends on whether it has been designated and qualifies as part of a hedging relationship and whether the hedge is highly effective in achieving offsetting changes in the market value of the asset or liability hedged. The Company's investment strategy allows for the use of derivative instruments. Derivative instruments may be used to enhance investment performance, replicate investment positions or manage market exposures and duration risk that would be allowed under the Company's investment guidelines if implemented in other ways. Pursuant to FASB guidance, these instruments, which have no hedging designation, are recognized as assets and liabilities in the Company's balance sheet at market value, based on quoted market prices, and all realized and unrealized contract gains and losses are included in net realized gains and losses in its results of operations.

        Net investment income includes interest and dividend income together with amortization of market premiums and discounts and is net of investment management and custody fees. Anticipated prepayments and expected maturities are used in applying the interest method for certain investments such as mortgage and other asset-backed securities. When actual prepayments differ significantly from anticipated prepayments, the effective yield is recalculated to reflect actual payments to date and anticipated future payments. The net investment in such securities is adjusted to the amount that would have existed had the new effective yield been applied since the acquisition of the security. Such adjustments, if any, are included in net investment income when determined. Equity in net income

142


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

2. Significant Accounting Policies (Continued)


(loss) of investment funds accounted for using the equity method includes changes in the market value of certain alternative investments accounted for under the equity method.

        Investment gains or losses realized on the sale of investments are determined on a first-in, first-out basis and are reflected in net income. Unrealized appreciation or decline in the value of securities, which are carried at market value, is excluded from net income and recorded as a separate component of other comprehensive income, net of applicable deferred income tax.

        The reserve for losses and loss adjustment expenses consists of estimates of unpaid reported losses and loss adjustment expenses and estimates for losses incurred but not reported. The reserve for unpaid reported losses and loss adjustment expenses, established by management based on reports from ceding companies and claims from insureds, excludes estimates of amounts due from insureds related to losses under high deductible policies, and represents the estimated ultimate cost of events or conditions that have been reported to or specifically identified by the Company. Such reserves are supplemented by management's estimates of reserves for losses incurred for which reports or claims have not been received. The Company's reserves are based on a combination of reserving methods, incorporating both Company and industry loss development patterns. The Company selects the initial expected loss and loss adjustment expense ratios based on information derived by its underwriters and actuaries during the initial pricing of the business, supplemented by industry data where appropriate. Such ratios consider, among other things, rate changes and changes in terms and conditions that have been observed in the market. These estimates are reviewed regularly and, as experience develops and new information becomes known, the reserves are adjusted as necessary. Such adjustments, if any, are reflected in income in the period in which they are determined. As actual loss information has been reported, the Company has developed its own loss experience and its reserving methods include other actuarial techniques. Over time, such techniques have been given further weight in its reserving process based on the continuing maturation of the Company's reserves. Inherent in the estimates of ultimate losses and loss adjustment expenses are expected trends in claims severity and frequency and other factors which may vary significantly as claims are settled. Accordingly, ultimate losses and loss adjustment expenses may differ materially from the amounts recorded in the accompanying consolidated financial statements. Losses and loss adjustment expenses are recorded on an undiscounted basis, except for excess workers' compensation and employers' liability business written by the Company's insurance operations.

        Assets and liabilities of foreign operations whose functional currency is not the U.S. Dollar are translated at the prevailing exchange rates at each balance sheet date. Revenues and expenses of such foreign operations are translated at average exchange rates during the year. The net effect of the translation adjustments for foreign operations, net of applicable deferred income taxes, is included in accumulated other comprehensive income. Monetary assets and liabilities, such as premiums receivable and the reserve for losses and loss adjustment expenses, denominated in foreign currencies are revalued at the exchange rate in effect at the balance sheet date with the resulting foreign exchange gains and losses included in net income. Accounts that are classified as non-monetary, such as deferred acquisition costs and the unearned premium reserves, are not revalued. In the case of foreign currency denominated fixed maturity securities which are classified as "available for sale," the change in

143


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

2. Significant Accounting Policies (Continued)

exchange rates between the local currency and the Company's functional currency at each balance sheet date is included in unrealized appreciation or decline in value of securities, a component of accumulated other comprehensive income.

        Deferred income taxes reflect the expected future tax consequences of temporary differences between the carrying amounts of assets and liabilities for financial reporting purposes and amounts used for income tax purposes. A valuation allowance is recorded if it is more likely than not that some or all of a deferred tax asset may not be realized. The Company considers future taxable income and feasible tax planning strategies in assessing the need for a valuation allowance. In the event the Company determines that it will not be able to realize all or part of its deferred income tax assets in the future, an adjustment to the deferred income tax assets would be charged to income in the period in which such determination is made. In addition, if the Company subsequently assesses that the valuation allowance is no longer needed, a benefit would be recorded to income in the period in which such determination is made.

        The Company recognizes a tax benefit where it concludes that it is more likely than not that the tax benefit will be sustained on audit by the taxing authority based solely on the technical merits of the associated tax position. If the recognition threshold is met, the Company recognizes a tax benefit measured at the largest amount of the tax benefit that, in the Company's judgment, is greater than 50% likely to be realized. The Company records interest and penalties related to unrecognized tax benefits in the provision for income taxes.

        The calculation of basic earnings per common share excludes dilutive securities and is computed by dividing income available to common shareholders by the weighted average number of Common

144


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

2. Significant Accounting Policies (Continued)

Shares, including vested restricted shares, outstanding for the periods. The following table sets forth the computation of basic and diluted earnings per common share:

 
  Year Ended December 31,  
 
  2010   2009   2008  

Net income

  $ 842,588   $ 876,945   $ 290,966  

Preferred dividends

    (25,844 )   (25,844 )   (25,844 )
               

Net income available to common shareholders (numerator)

  $ 816,744   $ 851,101   $ 265,122  
               

Weighted average common shares and effect of dilutive common share equivalents used in the computation of earnings per common share:

                   
 

Weighted average common shares outstanding—basic (denominator)

    50,181,716     59,560,361     62,101,203  
 

Effect of dilutive common share equivalents:

                   
   

Nonvested restricted shares

    348,148     284,611     263,806  
   

Stock options(1)

    1,991,855     2,010,473     2,424,043  
               
 

Weighted average common shares and common share equivalents outstanding—diluted (denominator)

    52,521,719     61,855,445     64,789,052  
               

Earnings per common share:

                   
 

Basic

  $ 16.28   $ 14.29   $ 4.27  
               
 

Diluted

  $ 15.55   $ 13.76   $ 4.09  
               

(1)
Certain stock options were not included in the computation of diluted earnings per share where the exercise price of the stock options exceeded the average market price and would have been anti-dilutive or where, when applying the treasury stock method to in-the-money options, the sum of the proceeds, including unrecognized compensation, exceeded the average market price and would have been anti-dilutive. For 2010, 2009 and 2008, the number of stock options excluded were 192,385, 854,185 and 553,137, respectively.

        The Company applies a fair value based measurement method in accounting for its share-based payment arrangements with eligible employees and directors. Compensation expense is estimated based on the fair value of the award at the grant date and is recognized in net income over the requisite service period with a corresponding increase in shareholders' equity. No value is attributed to awards that employees forfeit because they fail to satisfy vesting conditions. As such, the number of shares granted is reduced by assumed forfeitures and adjusted based on actual forfeitures until vesting. The Company's share-based payment arrangements generally vest over a three year period with one-third vesting on the first, second and third anniversaries of the grant date. The share-based compensation expense associated with such awards that have graded vesting features and vest based on service conditions only is calculated on a straight-line basis over the requisite service period for the entire award. For awards granted to retirement-eligible employees where no service is required for the employee to retain the award, the grant date fair value is immediately recognized as compensation

145


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

2. Significant Accounting Policies (Continued)

expense at the grant date because the employee is able to retain the award without continuing to provide service. For employees near retirement eligibility, attribution of compensation cost is over the period from the grant date to the retirement eligibility date. These charges had no impact on the Company's cash flows or total shareholders' equity. See Note 15 for information relating to the Company's share-based payment awards.

        Liabilities for guaranty fund and other related assessments in the Company's insurance and reinsurance operations are accrued when the Company receives notice that an amount is payable, or earlier if a reasonable estimate of the assessment can be made.

        Treasury shares are common shares purchased by the Company and not subsequently cancelled. These shares are recorded at cost and result in a reduction of the Company's shareholders' equity in its Consolidated Balance Sheets.

        In October 2010, the Financial Accounting Standards Board ("FASB") issued an Accounting Standards Update ("ASU") that modifies the definition of the types of costs incurred by insurance entities that can be capitalized in the acquisition of new or renewal insurance contracts. The amended guidance specifies that certain costs incurred in the successful acquisition of new and renewal insurance contracts should be capitalized. Those costs include incremental direct costs of contract acquisition that result directly from and are essential to the contract transaction and would not have been incurred had the contract transaction not occurred. All other acquisition-related costs, such as costs incurred for soliciting business, administration, and unsuccessful acquisition or renewal efforts should be charged to expense as incurred. Administrative costs, including rent, depreciation, occupancy, equipment, and all other general overhead costs are considered indirect costs and should also be charged to expense as incurred. This ASU is effective for fiscal years, and interim periods within those fiscal years, beginning after December 15, 2011. Earlier adoption is permitted. Retrospective application to all prior periods presented upon the date of adoption is also permitted but is not required. The Company is evaluating the impact this new guidance will have on its consolidated statement of financial position and results of operations.

        In March 2010, the FASB issued an ASU that clarifies the type of embedded credit derivative that is exempt from embedded derivative bifurcation requirements. Only one form of embedded credit derivative qualifies for the exemption—one that is related only to the subordination of one financial instrument to another. As a result, entities that have contracts containing an embedded credit derivative feature in a form other than such subordination may need to separately account for the embedded credit derivative feature. This ASU was effective as of July 1, 2010 and its adoption did not have a material impact on the Company's consolidated financial position or results of operations.

        In January 2010, the FASB issued an ASU to improve disclosure requirements related to fair value measurements. The ASU requires more robust disclosures about (i) different classes of assets and liabilities measured at fair value, (ii) the valuation techniques and inputs to fair value measurements for both Levels 2 and 3, (iii) the activity within Level 3 fair value measurements (i.e., in the reconciliation

146


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

2. Significant Accounting Policies (Continued)


for fair value measurements using significant unobservable inputs activity should be presented on a gross basis), and (iv) the transfers between Levels 1, 2 and 3, (i.e., include the reasons for significant transfers in and out of Levels 1 and 2). The ASU is effective for interim and annual reporting periods beginning after December 15, 2009, except for the disclosures about purchases, sales, issuances, and settlements in the roll forward activity in Level 3 fair value measurements, which will become effective for fiscal years beginning after December 15, 2010. Accordingly, the Company adopted the appropriate disclosure provisions of the ASU on January 1, 2010.

3. Segment Information

        The Company classifies its businesses into two underwriting segments—insurance and reinsurance—and corporate and other (non-underwriting). The Company's insurance and reinsurance operating segments each have segment managers who are responsible for the overall profitability of their respective segments and who are directly accountable to the Company's chief operating decision makers, the Chairman, President and Chief Executive Officer of ACGL and the Chief Financial Officer of ACGL. The chief operating decision makers do not assess performance, measure return on equity or make resource allocation decisions on a line of business basis. The Company determined its reportable operating segments using the management approach described in accounting guidance regarding disclosures about segments of an enterprise and related information.

        Management measures segment performance based on underwriting income or loss. The Company does not manage its assets by segment and, accordingly, investment income is not allocated to each underwriting segment. In addition, other revenue and expense items are not evaluated by segment. The accounting policies of the segments are the same as those used for the preparation of the Company's consolidated financial statements. Intersegment business is allocated to the segment accountable for the underwriting results.

        The insurance segment consists of the Company's insurance underwriting subsidiaries which primarily write on both an admitted and non-admitted basis. Specialty product lines include: casualty; construction; executive assurance; healthcare; national accounts casualty; professional liability; programs; property, energy, marine and aviation; surety; travel and accident; and other (consisting of excess workers' compensation, employers' liability, collateral protection and alternative markets business).

        The reinsurance segment consists of the Company's reinsurance underwriting subsidiaries. The reinsurance segment generally seeks to write significant lines on specialty property and casualty reinsurance contracts. Classes of business include: casualty; marine and aviation; other specialty; property catastrophe; property excluding property catastrophe (losses on a single risk, both excess of loss and pro rata); and other (consisting of non-traditional and casualty clash business).

        Corporate and other (non-underwriting) includes net investment income, other income (loss), other expenses incurred by the Company, interest expense, net realized gains or losses, net impairment losses recognized in earnings, equity in net income (loss) of investment funds accounted for using the equity method, net foreign exchange gains or losses, income taxes and dividends on the Company's non-cumulative preferred shares.

147


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

3. Segment Information (Continued)

        The following tables set forth an analysis of the Company's underwriting income by segment, together with a reconciliation of underwriting income to net income available to common shareholders, summary information regarding net premiums written and earned by major line of business and net premiums written by location:

 
  Year Ended December 31, 2010  
 
  Insurance   Reinsurance   Total  

Gross premiums written(1)

  $ 2,402,202   $ 874,957   $ 3,266,787  

Net premiums written(1)

    1,658,963     852,077     2,511,040  

Net premiums earned(1)

  $ 1,651,106   $ 901,377   $ 2,552,483  

Fee income

    3,252     2,113     5,365  

Losses and loss adjustment expenses

    (1,117,564 )   (400,151 )   (1,517,715 )

Acquisition expenses, net

    (263,201 )   (178,001 )   (441,202 )

Other operating expenses

    (312,404 )   (91,523 )   (403,927 )
               

Underwriting income (loss)

  $ (38,811 ) $ 233,815     195,004  
                 

Net investment income

                364,878  

Net realized gains

                252,751  

Net impairment losses recognized in earnings

                (11,321 )

Equity in net income of investment funds accounted for using the equity method

                61,400  

Other income

                18,511  

Other expenses

                (28,868 )

Interest expense

                (30,007 )

Net foreign exchange gains

                28,108  
                   

Income before income taxes

                850,456  

Income tax expense

                (7,868 )
                   

Net income

                842,588  

Preferred dividends

                (25,844 )
                   

Net income available to common shareholders

              $ 816,744  
                   

Underwriting Ratios

                   

Loss ratio

    67.7 %   44.4 %   59.5 %

Acquisition expense ratio(2)

    15.7 %   19.7 %   17.2 %

Other operating expense ratio

    18.9 %   10.2 %   15.8 %
               

Combined ratio

    102.3 %   74.3 %   92.5 %
               

(1)
Certain amounts included in the gross premiums written of each segment are related to intersegment transactions. Accordingly, the sum of gross premiums written for each segment does not agree to the total gross premiums written as shown in the table above due to the elimination of intersegment transactions in the total. The insurance segment and reinsurance segment results include $1.0 and $9.3 million, respectively, of gross and net premiums written and $1.1 million and $11.8 million, respectively, of net premiums earned assumed through intersegment transactions.

(2)
The acquisition expense ratio is adjusted to include policy-related fee income.

148


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

3. Segment Information (Continued)

 
  Year Ended December 31, 2009  
 
  Insurance   Reinsurance   Total  

Gross premiums written(1)

  $ 2,512,127   $ 1,093,940   $ 3,592,931  

Net premiums written(1)

    1,704,284     1,058,828     2,763,112  

Net premiums earned(1)

  $ 1,688,519   $ 1,154,226   $ 2,842,745  

Fee income

    3,362     100     3,462  

Losses and loss adjustment expenses

    (1,139,415 )   (515,259 )   (1,654,674 )

Acquisition expenses, net

    (238,261 )   (255,299 )   (493,560 )

Other operating expenses

    (281,340 )   (80,567 )   (361,907 )
               

Underwriting income

  $ 32,865   $ 303,201     336,066  
                 

Net investment income

                390,131  

Net realized gains

                143,582  

Net impairment losses recognized in earnings

                (66,133 )

Equity in net income of investment funds accounted for using the equity method

                167,819  

Other income

                20,016  

Other expenses

                (30,231 )

Interest expense

                (24,440 )

Net foreign exchange losses

                (39,157 )
                   

Income before income taxes

                897,653  

Income tax expense

                (20,708 )
                   

Net income

                876,945  

Preferred dividends

                (25,844 )
                   

Net income available to common shareholders

              $ 851,101  
                   

Underwriting Ratios

                   

Loss ratio

    67.5 %   44.6 %   58.2 %

Acquisition expense ratio(2)

    13.9 %   22.1 %   17.2 %

Other operating expense ratio

    16.7 %   7.0 %   12.7 %
               

Combined ratio

    98.1 %   73.7 %   88.1 %
               

(1)
Certain amounts included in the gross premiums written of each segment are related to intersegment transactions. Accordingly, the sum of gross premiums written for each segment does not agree to the total gross premiums written as shown in the table above due to the elimination of intersegment transactions in the total. The insurance segment and reinsurance segment results include $1.1 million and $12.0 million, respectively, of gross and net premiums written and $1.6 million and $14.4 million, respectively, of net premiums earned assumed through intersegment transactions.

(2)
The acquisition expense ratio is adjusted to include policy-related fee income.

149


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

3. Segment Information (Continued)

 
  Year Ended December 31, 2008  
 
  Insurance   Reinsurance   Total  

Gross premiums written(1)

  $ 2,490,919   $ 1,201,903   $ 3,669,076  

Net premiums written(1)

    1,657,603     1,148,123     2,805,726  

Net premiums earned(1)

  $ 1,675,089   $ 1,170,365   $ 2,845,454  

Fee income

    3,445     1,261     4,706  

Losses and loss adjustment expenses

    (1,194,528 )   (654,216 )   (1,848,744 )

Acquisition expenses, net

    (224,539 )   (265,970 )   (490,509 )

Other operating expenses

    (288,883 )   (78,421 )   (367,304 )
               

Underwriting income

  $ (29,416 ) $ 173,019     143,603  
                 

Net investment income

                468,080  

Net realized losses

                (3,939 )

Net impairment losses recognized in earnings

                (181,162 )

Equity in net income of investment funds accounted for using the equity method

                (178,608 )

Other income

                12,282  

Other expenses

                (28,498 )

Interest expense

                (23,838 )

Net foreign exchange gains

                96,585  
                   

Income before income taxes

                304,505  

Income tax expense

                (13,539 )
                   

Net income

                290,966  

Preferred dividends

                (25,844 )
                   

Net income available to common shareholders

              $ 265,122  
                   

Underwriting Ratios

                   

Loss ratio

    71.3 %   55.9 %   65.0 %

Acquisition expense ratio(2)

    13.2 %   22.7 %   17.1 %

Other operating expense ratio

    17.2 %   6.7 %   12.9 %
               

Combined ratio

    101.7 %   85.3 %   95.0 %
               

(1)
Certain amounts included in the gross premiums written of each segment are related to intersegment transactions. Accordingly, the sum of gross premiums written for each segment does not agree to the total gross premiums written as shown in the table above due to the elimination of intersegment transactions in the total. The insurance segment and reinsurance segment results include $1.9 million and $21.8 million, respectively, of gross and net premiums written and $0.8 million and $29.9 million, respectively, of net premiums earned assumed through intersegment transactions.

(2)
The acquisition expense ratio is adjusted to include policy-related fee income.

150


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

3. Segment Information (Continued)

 
  Year Ended December 31,  
 
  2010   2009   2008  
 
  Amount   % of
Total
  Amount   % of
Total
  Amount   % of
Total
 

INSURANCE SEGMENT

                                     

Net premiums written(1)

                                     

Property, energy, marine and aviation

  $ 321,529     19.4   $ 353,761     20.8   $ 334,635     20.2  

Programs

    273,076     16.5     274,735     16.1     270,449     16.3  

Professional liability

    240,345     14.5     235,892     13.8     246,891     14.9  

Executive assurance

    224,497     13.5     220,088     12.9     193,602     11.7  

Construction

    135,619     8.2     154,087     9.0     165,490     10.0  

Casualty

    107,962     6.5     103,546     6.1     116,096     7.0  

Travel and accident

    71,237     4.3     68,617     4.0     61,986     3.7  

National accounts casualty

    67,925     4.1     79,088     4.6     47,936     2.9  

Healthcare

    37,508     2.3     42,350     2.5     44,596     2.7  

Surety

    34,149     2.1     43,353     2.5     50,376     3.0  

Other(2)

    145,116     8.6     128,767     7.7     125,546     7.6  
                           

Total

  $ 1,658,963     100.0   $ 1,704,284     100.0   $ 1,657,603     100.0  
                           

Net premiums earned(1)

                                     

Property, energy, marine and aviation

  $ 335,967     20.3   $ 338,430     20.0   $ 333,777     19.9  

Programs

    272,406     16.5     275,586     16.3     257,110     15.3  

Professional liability

    240,300     14.6     232,001     13.7     256,192     15.3  

Executive assurance

    220,364     13.3     212,962     12.6     181,333     10.8  

Construction

    131,468     8.0     163,079     9.7     166,146     9.9  

Casualty

    109,613     6.6     121,146     7.2     153,200     9.1  

Travel and accident

    66,791     4.0     66,127     3.9     62,564     3.7  

National accounts casualty

    74,538     4.5     67,093     4.0     42,102     2.5  

Healthcare

    39,722     2.4     43,947     2.6     49,754     3.0  

Surety

    37,967     2.3     49,219     2.9     51,556     3.1  

Other(2)

    121,970     7.5     118,929     7.1     121,355     7.4  
                           

Total

  $ 1,651,106     100.0   $ 1,688,519     100.0   $ 1,675,089     100.0  
                           

Net premiums written by client location(1)

                                     

United States

  $ 1,183,238     71.3   $ 1,268,347     74.4   $ 1,242,906     75.0  

Europe

    272,348     16.4     267,093     15.7     244,849     14.8  

Other

    203,377     12.3     168,844     9.9     169,848     10.2  
                           

Total

  $ 1,658,963     100.0   $ 1,704,284     100.0   $ 1,657,603     100.0  
                           

Net premiums written by underwriting location(1)

                                     

United States

  $ 1,133,173     68.3   $ 1,243,063     72.9   $ 1,236,712     74.6  

Europe

    436,483     26.3     384,363     22.6     342,021     20.6  

Other

    89,307     5.4     76,858     4.5     78,870     4.8  
                           

Total

  $ 1,658,963     100.0   $ 1,704,284     100.0   $ 1,657,603     100.0  
                           

(1)
Insurance segment results include premiums written and earned assumed through intersegment transactions of $1.0 million and $1.1 million, respectively, for 2010, $1.1 million and $1.6 million, respectively, for 2009 and $1.9 million and $0.8 million for 2008. Insurance segment results exclude premiums written and earned ceded through intersegment transactions of $9.3 million and $11.8 million, respectively, for 2010, $12.0 million and $14.4 million, respectively, for 2009 and $21.8 million and $29.9 million, respectively, for 2008.

(2)
Includes excess workers' compensation, employers' liability, collateral protection and alternative markets business.

151


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

3. Segment Information (Continued)

 
  Year Ended December 31,  
 
  2010   2009   2008  
 
  Amount   % of Total   Amount   % of Total   Amount   % of Total  

REINSURANCE SEGMENT

                                     

Net premiums written(1)

                                     

Property excluding property catastrophe(2)

  $ 249,791     29.3   $ 349,915     33.0   $ 328,684     28.6  

Property catastrophe

    202,989     23.8     237,445     22.4     231,146     20.1  

Casualty(3)

    186,774     21.9     325,699     30.8     347,198     30.2  

Other specialty

    131,158     15.4     65,189     6.2     146,452     12.8  

Marine and aviation

    77,063     9.0     77,677     7.3     90,733     7.9  

Other

    4,302     0.6     2,903     0.3     3,910     0.4  
                           

Total

  $ 852,077     100.0   $ 1,058,828     100.0   $ 1,148,123     100.0  
                           

Net premiums earned(1)

                                     

Property excluding property catastrophe(2)

  $ 282,163     31.3   $ 373,088     32.3   $ 278,234     23.8  

Property catastrophe

    215,148     23.9     236,073     20.5     219,767     18.8  

Casualty(3)

    231,338     25.7     344,938     29.9     415,983     35.5  

Other specialty

    95,611     10.6     106,698     9.2     147,185     12.6  

Marine and aviation

    72,886     8.1     90,441     7.8     103,649     8.9  

Other

    4,231     0.4     2,988     0.3     5,547     0.4  
                           

Total

  $ 901,377     100.0   $ 1,154,226     100.0   $ 1,170,365     100.0  
                           

Net premiums written(1)

                                     

Pro rata

  $ 411,962     48.3   $ 586,212     55.4   $ 735,655     64.1  

Excess of loss

    440,115     51.7     472,616     44.6     412,468     35.9  
                           

Total

  $ 852,077     100.0   $ 1,058,828     100.0   $ 1,148,123     100.0  
                           

Net premiums earned(1)

                                     

Pro rata

  $ 449,532     49.9   $ 704,470     61.0   $ 763,128     65.2  

Excess of loss

    451,845     50.1     449,756     39.0     407,237     34.8  
                           

Total

  $ 901,377     100.0   $ 1,154,226     100.0   $ 1,170,365     100.0  
                           

Net premiums written by client location(1)

                                     

United States

  $ 496,947     58.3   $ 668,985     63.2   $ 631,896     55.0  

Europe

    195,006     22.9     213,211     20.1     331,072     28.8  

Bermuda

    75,517     8.9     127,212     12.0     137,215     12.0  

Other

    84,607     9.9     49,420     4.7     47,940     4.2  
                           

Total

  $ 852,077     100.0   $ 1,058,828     100.0   $ 1,148,123     100.0  
                           

Net premiums written by underwriting location(1)

                                     

Bermuda

  $ 461,890     54.2   $ 596,334     56.3   $ 662,896     57.7  

United States

    307,639     36.1     396,947     37.5     419,805     36.6  

Other

    82,548     9.7     65,547     6.2     65,422     5.7  
                           

Total

  $ 852,077     100.0   $ 1,058,828     100.0   $ 1,148,123     100.0  
                           

(1)
Reinsurance segment results include premiums written and earned assumed through intersegment transactions of $9.3 million and $11.8 million, respectively, for 2010, $12.0 million and $14.4 million, respectively, for 2009 and $21.8 million and $29.9 million, respectively, for 2008. Reinsurance segment results exclude premiums written and earned ceded through intersegment transactions of $1.0 million and $1.1 million, respectively, for 2010, $1.1 million and $1.6 million, respectively, for 2009 and $1.9 million and $0.8 million, respectively, for 2008.

(2)
Includes facultative business.

(3)
Includes professional liability, executive assurance and healthcare business.

152


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

4. Reinsurance

        In the normal course of business, the Company's insurance subsidiaries cede a portion of their premium through pro rata and excess of loss reinsurance agreements on a treaty or facultative basis. The Company's reinsurance subsidiaries participate in "common account" retrocessional arrangements for certain pro rata treaties. Such arrangements reduce the effect of individual or aggregate losses to all companies participating on such treaties, including the reinsurers, such as the Company's reinsurance subsidiaries, and the ceding company. In addition, the Company's reinsurance subsidiaries may purchase retrocessional coverage as part of their risk management program. Reinsurance recoverables are recorded as assets, predicated on the reinsurers' ability to meet their obligations under the reinsurance agreements. If the reinsurers are unable to satisfy their obligations under the agreements, the Company's insurance or reinsurance subsidiaries would be liable for such defaulted amounts.

        The effects of reinsurance on the Company's written and earned premiums and losses and loss adjustment expenses with unaffiliated reinsurers were as follows:

 
  Year Ended December 31,  
 
  2010   2009   2008  

Premiums Written

                   

Direct

  $ 2,338,428   $ 2,427,044   $ 2,385,807  

Assumed

    928,359     1,165,887     1,283,269  

Ceded

    (755,747 )   (829,819 )   (863,350 )
               

Net

  $ 2,511,040   $ 2,763,112   $ 2,805,726  
               

Premiums Earned

                   

Direct

  $ 2,345,774   $ 2,439,173   $ 2,479,271  

Assumed

    976,911     1,269,454     1,402,478  

Ceded

    (770,202 )   (865,882 )   (1,036,295 )
               

Net

  $ 2,552,483   $ 2,842,745   $ 2,845,454  
               

Losses and Loss Adjustment Expenses

                   

Direct

  $ 1,538,131   $ 1,486,349   $ 1,717,158  

Assumed

    429,551     559,776     836,000  

Ceded

    (449,967 )   (391,451 )   (704,414 )
               

Net

  $ 1,517,715   $ 1,654,674   $ 1,848,744  
               

        The Company monitors the financial condition of its reinsurers and attempts to place coverages only with substantial, financially sound carriers. At December 31, 2010, approximately 91.1% of the Company's reinsurance recoverables on paid and unpaid losses (not including prepaid reinsurance premiums) of $1.76 billion were due from carriers which had an A.M. Best rating of "A-" or better and the largest reinsurance recoverables from any one carrier was approximately 5.5% of the Company's total shareholders' equity. At December 31, 2009, approximately 90.0% of the Company's reinsurance recoverables on paid and unpaid losses (not including prepaid reinsurance premiums) of $1.72 billion were due from carriers which had an A.M. Best rating of "A-" or better and the largest reinsurance recoverables from any one carrier was approximately 5.8% of the Company's total shareholders' equity.

153


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

5. Reserve for Losses and Loss Adjustment Expenses

        The following table represents an analysis of losses and loss adjustment expenses and a reconciliation of the beginning and ending reserve for losses and loss adjustment expenses:

 
  Year Ended December 31,  
 
  2010   2009   2008  

Reserve for losses and loss adjustment expenses at beginning of year

  $ 7,873,412   $ 7,666,957   $ 7,092,452  

Unpaid losses and loss adjustment expenses recoverable

    1,659,500     1,729,135     1,609,619  
               

Net reserve for losses and loss adjustment expenses at beginning of year

    6,213,912     5,937,822     5,482,833  

Net incurred losses and loss adjustment expenses relating to losses occurring in:

                   
 

Current year

    1,664,411     1,843,875     2,158,914  
 

Prior years

    (146,696 )   (189,201 )   (310,170 )
               
   

Total net incurred losses and loss adjustment expenses

    1,517,715     1,654,674     1,848,744  

Foreign exchange (gains) losses

   
(29,089

)
 
60,506
   
(133,881

)

Net paid losses and loss adjustment expenses relating to losses occurring in:

                   
 

Current year

    (200,789 )   (272,295 )   (305,513 )
 

Prior years

    (1,106,496 )   (1,166,795 )   (954,361 )
               
   

Total net paid losses and loss adjustment expenses

    (1,307,285 )   (1,439,090 )   (1,259,874 )

Net reserve for losses and loss adjustment expenses at end of year

   
6,395,253
   
6,213,912
   
5,937,822
 

Unpaid losses and loss adjustment expenses recoverable

    1,703,201     1,659,500     1,729,135  
               

Reserve for losses and loss adjustment expenses at end of year

  $ 8,098,454   $ 7,873,412   $ 7,666,957  
               

        During 2010, the Company recorded estimated net favorable development on prior year loss reserves of $146.7 million, which consisted of $127.6 million from the reinsurance segment and $19.1 million from the insurance segment.

        The reinsurance segment's net favorable development of $127.6 million, or 14.2 points, consisted of $84.2 million from short-tailed lines, $34.1 million from long-tailed lines and $9.3 million from medium-tailed lines. Favorable development in short-tailed lines included $61.0 million of favorable development from property catastrophe and property other than property catastrophe reserves. Such amount included reductions of $9.4 million, $11.2 million and $28.6 million from the 2007, 2008 and 2009 underwriting years, respectively, and $11.8 million from prior underwriting years. In addition, favorable development in other specialty business included $4.7 million and $7.8 million from the 2008 and 2009 underwriting years, respectively, and $10.7 million from prior underwriting years. The reduction of loss estimates for the reinsurance segment's short-tailed lines primarily resulted from a

154


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

5. Reserve for Losses and Loss Adjustment Expenses (Continued)


lower level of reported and paid claims activity than previously anticipated which led to decreases in certain loss ratio selections during 2010. Net favorable development of $34.1 million in long-tailed lines included reductions in casualty reserves from the 2002 to 2006 underwriting years of $10.8 million, $17.5 million, $33.3 million, $13.5 million and $5.8 million, respectively, which primarily resulted from a lower level of reported and paid claims activity than previously anticipated on U.S. and international excess liability, professional liability and D&O lines. Such amounts were partially offset by adverse development of $7.5 million, $31.9 and $5.6 million from the 2007 to 2009 underwriting years, respectively, on long-tailed lines which primarily resulted from increases in loss selections due to the reinsurance segment's view of the current insurance environment. Favorable development on medium-tailed lines resulted from reductions in marine and aviation reserves of $8.3 million from the 2007 underwriting year and $7.7 million from other underwriting years, partially offset by adverse development of $6.7 million from the 2008 underwriting year. The reinsurance segment's reserves for more mature underwriting years are now based more on actual loss activity and historical patterns than on the initial assumptions based on pricing indications.

        The insurance segment's net favorable development of $19.1 million, or 1.2 points, reflected reductions in property reserves from the 2005 to 2009 accident years (i.e., the year in which a loss occurred) of $5.3 million, $6.8 million, $7.9 million, $23.4 million and $4.3 million, respectively, and reductions in healthcare and other lines of $11.4 million and $11.5 million, respectively, which were spread across a number of accident years. In addition, the insurance segment had reductions in professional liability reserves from the 2007 and 2008 accident years of $11.2 million and $7.9 million, respectively, partially offset by adverse development from the 2006 accident year of $8.4 million. The loss ratio for the year ended December 31, 2010 reflected adverse development in casualty reserves from the 2003 to 2005 accident years of $16.6 million, $9.8 million and $11.0 million, respectively, which was primarily due to a small number of high severity claims in excess casualty and a high frequency of small claims in specialty casualty. Additionally, there was adverse development in program reserves from the 2003, 2005 and 2009 accident years of $7.6 million, $6.7 million and $9.3 million, respectively, partially offset by reductions from the 2006 to 2008 accident years of $6.1 million, $4.7 million and $4.2 million, respectively. In addition, the insurance segment had adverse development in executive assurance reserves from the 2008 and 2009 accident years of $14.1 million and $21.3 million, respectively, partially offset by reductions from the 2003, 2004, 2006 and 2007 accident years of $2.0 million, $2.6 million, $3.4 million and $7.6 million, respectively.

        During 2009, the Company recorded estimated net favorable development on prior year loss reserves of $189.2 million, which consisted of $142.1 million from the reinsurance segment and $47.1 million from the insurance segment.

        The reinsurance segment's net favorable development of $142.1 million, or 12.3 points, consisted of $83.4 million from short-tailed lines and $78.7 million came from long-tailed lines, partially offset by $20.0 million of adverse development on medium-tailed lines. Favorable development in short-tailed lines included $58.5 million of favorable development from property catastrophe and other property lines. Such amount included reductions in 2005 to 2008 underwriting years of $8.1 million, $5.6 million, $21.0 million and $20.9 million, respectively. In addition, favorable development in short-tailed lines included $22.7 million from other specialty business, which included reductions of $9.7 million, $4.3 million and $5.3 million from the 2004, 2005 and 2008 underwriting years. The reduction of loss

155


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

5. Reserve for Losses and Loss Adjustment Expenses (Continued)


estimates for the reinsurance segment's short-tailed lines primarily resulted from a lower level of reported and paid claims activity than previously anticipated which led to decreases in certain loss ratio selections during 2009. Net favorable development of $78.7 million in long-tailed lines included reductions in casualty reserves of $14.4 million, $25.9 million, $25.0 million and $32.3 million from the 2002 to 2005 underwriting years which primarily resulted from a lower level of reported and paid claims activity than previously anticipated on U.S. and international excess liability, professional liability and D&O lines. Such amounts were partially offset by adverse development of $25.0 million from the 2007 underwriting year, which primarily resulted from increases in loss selections due to the reinsurance segment's view of the insurance environment. Adverse development on medium-tailed lines resulted from increases on marine exposures in the 2007 and 2008 underwriting years of $7.2 million and $26.9 million, respectively, due in part to increases in Hurricane Ike estimates, partially offset by reductions in prior underwriting years.

        The insurance segment's net favorable development of $47.1 million, or 2.8 points, was primarily due to reductions in reserves in medium-tailed and short-tailed lines of business. Such amount included favorable development in professional liability reserves from the 2005 to 2007 accident years of $6.3 million, $16.1 million and $8.6 million, respectively, and adverse development on the 2008 accident year of $9.4 million. In addition, favorable development on construction reserves from the 2005 and 2006 accident years contributed $10.6 million and $5.4 million, respectively, which resulted from lower than expected large loss activity. Favorable development in short-tailed lines primarily consisted of reductions in property reserves from the 2007 and 2008 accident years of $9.4 million and $11.1 million, respectively. Offsetting favorable development on medium-tailed and short-tailed lines of business were increases in executive assurance reserves for the 2007 and 2008 accident years of $14.8 million and $28.3 million, respectively, due to large specific risk loss activity relating to the credit crisis, partially offset by favorable development in the 2004 to 2006 accident years of $4.1 million, $17.5 million and $3.6 million, respectively. Reductions in the 2004 to 2006 accident years relate to less large loss activity than expected in commercial D&O, a distinctive downward trend in security class action cases filed from 2004 through 2006, and to the claims-made nature of the coverage. The claims-made aspect eliminates the potential of new claims being reported for these years, and narrows the remaining liability to changes in reserve estimation for claims which have already been reported.

        During 2008, the Company recorded estimated net favorable development on prior year loss reserves of $310.2 million, which consisted of $231.2 million from the reinsurance segment and $79.0 million from the insurance segment.

        The reinsurance segment's net favorable development of $231.2 million, or 19.8 points, consisted of $126.1 million from short-tailed lines and $105.1 million from medium-tailed and long-tailed business. The reinsurance segment's favorable development in short-tailed lines of $126.1 million included $73.5 million of favorable development from property catastrophe and other property lines. Of such amount, $42.0 million of favorable development came from the reinsurance segment's property catastrophe business, including $10.8 million, $11.4 million and $15.7 million from the 2005 to 2007 underwriting years, respectively. The remainder was attributable to favorable development on other property business, primarily from the 2005 underwriting year. In addition, favorable development in short-tailed lines reflected $46.5 million of favorable development in other specialty business, including $16.7 million, $5.1 million and $9.5 million from the 2005 to 2007 underwriting years, respectively, with

156


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

5. Reserve for Losses and Loss Adjustment Expenses (Continued)


the remainder attributable to earlier underwriting years. The reduction of loss estimates for the reinsurance segment's short-tailed lines primarily resulted from a lower level of reported and paid claims activity than previously anticipated which led to decreases in certain loss ratio selections during 2008. The net favorable development of $105.1 million in medium-tailed and long-tailed lines was primarily in casualty reserves from the 2003 to 2005 underwriting years, which contributed $31.0 million, $38.7 million and $14.2 million, respectively. The reductions in casualty reserves primarily resulted from a lower level of reported and paid claims activity than previously anticipated on U.S. and international excess liability, professional liability and D&O lines.

        The insurance segment's net favorable development of $79.0 million, or 4.7 points, was primarily due to reductions in reserves in medium-tailed and long-tailed lines of business. Over 80 percent of this development is related to the executive assurance and professional liability lines of business. Executive assurance reserves developed favorably for accident years 2004 through 2006 by $15.8 million, $17.3 million, and $17.6 million, respectively. These reductions relate to less large loss activity than expected in commercial D&O, a distinctive downward trend in security class action cases filed from 2004 through 2006, and to the claims-made nature of the coverage. Accident year 2007 experienced unfavorable development of $19.7 million relating to the re-evaluation of claims given additional information available during 2008 regarding the impact of the credit crisis. Reserves for professional liability developed favorably as well, with the majority of the favorable development relating to accident years 2003 through 2005 with $5.2 million, $8.1 million, and $19.1 million, respectively.

6. Investment in Joint Venture

        In May 2008, the Company provided $100.0 million of funding to Gulf Reinsurance Limited ("Gulf Re"), a newly formed reinsurer based in the Dubai International Financial Centre, pursuant to the joint venture agreement with Gulf Investment Corporation GSC ("GIC"). Under the agreement, Arch Re Bermuda and GIC each own 50% of Gulf Re, which commenced underwriting activities in June 2008. Gulf Re provides property and casualty reinsurance primarily in the member states of the Gulf Cooperation Council, which include Bahrain, Kuwait, Oman, Qatar, Saudi Arabia and the United Arab Emirates. The initial capital of the joint venture consisted of $200.0 million with an additional $200.0 million commitment to be funded equally by the Company and GIC depending on the joint venture's business needs. The Company accounts for its investment in Gulf Re, shown as "Investment in joint venture," using the equity method and records its equity in the operating results of Gulf Re in "Other income" on a quarter lag basis.

157


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

7. Investment Information

        The following table summarizes the Company's invested assets:

 
  December 31,  
 
  2010   2009  

Fixed maturities available for sale, at market value

  $ 9,082,828   $ 9,391,926  

Fixed maturities pledged under securities lending agreements, at market value(1)

    75,575     208,826  
           
 

Total fixed maturities

    9,158,403     9,600,752  

Short-term investments available for sale, at market value

    915,841     571,490  

Short-term investments pledged under securities lending agreements, at market value(1)

        3,993  

TALF investments, at market value

    402,449     250,265  

Equity securities available for sale, at market value

    363,255     36,623  

Other investments

    349,272     135,549  

Investment funds accounted for using the equity method

    434,600     391,869  
           
 

Total investments(1)

    11,623,820     10,990,541  

Securities transactions entered into but not settled at the balance sheet date

    (144,047 )   50,790  
           
 

Total investments, net of securities transactions

  $ 11,479,773   $ 11,041,331  
           

(1)
In securities lending transactions, the Company receives collateral in excess of the market value of the fixed maturities and short-term investments pledged under securities lending agreements. For purposes of this table, the Company has excluded the collateral received and reinvested of $69.7 million and $207.0 million at December 31, 2010 and 2009, respectively, and included the $75.6 million and $212.8 million, respectively, of "fixed maturities and short-term investments pledged under securities lending agreements, at market value."

158


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

7. Investment Information (Continued)

        The following table summarizes the Company's fixed maturities and fixed maturities pledged under securities lending agreements (excluding TALF investments), and equity securities:

 
  Estimated
Market
Value
  Gross
Unrealized
Gains
  Gross
Unrealized
Losses
  Cost or
Amortized
Cost
  OTTI
Unrealized
Losses(1)
 

At December 31, 2010

                               

Fixed maturities and fixed maturities pledged under securities lending agreements:

                               

Corporate bonds

  $ 2,839,344   $ 97,400   $ (18,343 ) $ 2,760,287   $ (18,047 )

Mortgage backed securities

    1,806,813     18,801     (26,893 )   1,814,905     (21,147 )

Municipal bonds

    1,182,100     40,410     (6,958 )   1,148,648     (125 )

Commercial mortgage backed securities

    1,167,299     31,743     (6,028 )   1,141,584     (3,481 )

U.S. government and government agencies

    872,149     20,150     (5,696 )   857,695     (207 )

Non-U.S. government securities

    732,666     39,539     (11,894 )   705,021     (72 )

Asset backed securities

    558,032     20,672     (3,990 )   541,350     (3,954 )
                       
 

Total

  $ 9,158,403   $ 268,715   $ (79,802 ) $ 8,969,490   $ (47,033 )
                       

Equity securities:

                               
 

Total

  $ 363,255   $ 20,660   $ (3,424 ) $ 346,019        
                         

At December 31, 2009

                               

Fixed maturities and fixed maturities pledged under securities lending agreements:

                               

Corporate bonds

  $ 3,134,088   $ 99,446   $ (12,983 ) $ 3,047,625   $ (19,667 )

Mortgage backed securities

    1,449,382     13,158     (45,536 )   1,481,760     (43,930 )

Municipal bonds

    957,752     44,043     (2,284 )   915,993     (145 )

Commercial mortgage backed securities

    1,185,799     35,161     (11,724 )   1,162,362     (3,750 )

U.S. government and government agencies

    1,553,672     8,716     (12,999 )   1,557,955     (499 )

Non-U.S. government securities

    752,215     41,858     (7,712 )   718,069     (351 )

Asset backed securities

    567,844     21,713     (8,220 )   554,351     (6,111 )
                       
 

Total

  $ 9,600,752   $ 264,095   $ (101,458 ) $ 9,438,115   $ (74,453 )
                       

Equity securities:

                               
 

Total

  $ 36,623   $ 145   $   $ 36,478        
                         

(1)
Represents the total other-than-temporary impairments ("OTTI") recognized in accumulated other comprehensive income ("AOCI"). It does not include the change in market value subsequent to the impairment measurement date. At December 31, 2010, the net unrealized loss related to securities for which a non-credit OTTI was recognized in AOCI was $7.1 million, compared to $37.9 million at December 31, 2009.

159


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

7. Investment Information (Continued)

        The following table provides an analysis of the length of time each of those fixed maturities and fixed maturities pledged under securities lending agreements (excluding TALF investments), equity securities and short-term investments with an unrealized loss has been in a continual unrealized loss position:

 
  Less than 12 Months   12 Months or More   Total  
 
  Estimated
Market
Value
  Gross
Unrealized
Losses
  Estimated
Market
Value
  Gross
Unrealized
Losses
  Estimated
Market
Value
  Gross
Unrealized
Losses
 

At December 31, 2010

                                     

Fixed maturities and fixed maturities pledged under securities lending agreements:

                                     

Corporate bonds

  $ 530,956   $ (16,580 ) $ 20,351   $ (1,763 ) $ 551,307   $ (18,343 )

Mortgage backed securities

    913,138     (20,331 )   57,895     (6,562 )   971,033     (26,893 )

Municipal bonds

    294,978     (6,440 )   8,465     (518 )   303,443     (6,958 )

Commercial mortgage backed securities

    311,703     (5,273 )   22,030     (755 )   333,733     (6,028 )

U.S. government and government agencies

    190,497     (5,696 )           190,497     (5,696 )

Non-U.S. government securities

    271,446     (7,418 )   45,884     (4,476 )   317,330     (11,894 )

Asset backed securities

    75,655     (827 )   8,126     (3,163 )   83,781     (3,990 )
                           
 

Total fixed maturities

    2,588,373     (62,565 )   162,751     (17,237 )   2,751,124     (79,802 )

Equity securities

   
68,629
   
(3,424

)
 
   
   
68,629
   
(3,424

)

Other investments

    46,750     (916 )   2,850     (416 )   49,600     (1,332 )

Short-term investments

    42,030     (492 )           42,030     (492 )
                           
 

Total

  $ 2,745,782   $ (67,397 ) $ 165,601   $ (17,653 ) $ 2,911,383   $ (85,050 )
                           

At December 31, 2009

                                     

Fixed maturities and fixed maturities pledged under securities lending agreements:

                                     

Corporate bonds

  $ 547,376   $ (7,742 ) $ 45,399   $ (5,241 ) $ 592,775   $ (12,983 )

Mortgage backed securities

    636,817     (33,388 )   62,382     (12,148 )   699,199     (45,536 )

Municipal bonds

    151,412     (2,284 )           151,412     (2,284 )

Commercial mortgage backed securities

    154,087     (4,808 )   67,744     (6,916 )   221,831     (11,724 )

U.S. government and government agencies

    1,112,534     (12,510 )   5,309     (489 )   1,117,843     (12,999 )

Non-U.S. government securities

    218,394     (7,712 )           218,394     (7,712 )

Asset backed securities

    101,679     (5,838 )   22,915     (2,382 )   124,594     (8,220 )
                           
 

Total fixed maturities

    2,922,299     (74,282 )   203,749     (27,176 )   3,126,048     (101,458 )

Equity securities

   
   
   
   
   
   
 

Other investments

    9,071     (304 )   29,439     (5,195 )   38,510     (5,499 )

Short-term investments

    64,616     (1,858 )           64,616     (1,858 )
                           
 

Total

  $ 2,995,986   $ (76,444 ) $ 233,188   $ (32,371 ) $ 3,229,174   $ (108,815 )
                           

160


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

7. Investment Information (Continued)

        The contractual maturities of the Company's fixed maturities and fixed maturities pledged under securities lending agreements are shown in the following table. Expected maturities, which are management's best estimates, will differ from contractual maturities because borrowers may have the right to call or prepay obligations with or without call or prepayment penalties.

 
  December 31, 2010   December 31, 2009  
Maturity
  Estimated
Market Value
  Amortized
Cost
  Estimated
Market Value
  Amortized
Cost
 

Due in one year or less

  $ 415,453   $ 399,857   $ 227,668   $ 220,095  

Due after one year through five years

    2,996,991     2,906,069     3,988,306     3,885,111  

Due after five years through 10 years

    1,723,699     1,675,558     1,844,377     1,800,371  

Due after 10 years

    490,116     490,167     337,376     334,065  
                   

    5,626,259     5,471,651     6,397,727     6,239,642  

Mortgage backed securities

   
1,806,813
   
1,814,905
   
1,449,382
   
1,481,760
 

Commercial mortgage backed securities

    1,167,299     1,141,584     1,185,799     1,162,362  

Asset backed securities

    558,032     541,350     567,844     554,351  
                   
 

Total

  $ 9,158,403   $ 8,969,490   $ 9,600,752   $ 9,438,115  
                   

        At December 31, 2010, on a lot level basis, approximately 1,132 security lots out of a total of approximately 5,090 security lots were in an unrealized loss position and the largest single unrealized loss from a single lot in the Company's fixed maturity portfolio was $2.6 million. At December 31, 2009, on a lot level basis, approximately 1,430 security lots out of a total of approximately 4,520 security lots were in an unrealized loss position and the largest single unrealized loss from a single lot in the Company's fixed maturity portfolio was $2.2 million.

        The Company performs quarterly reviews of its investments in order to determine whether declines in market value below the amortized cost basis were considered other-than-temporary in accordance with applicable guidance. For 2010, the Company recorded $11.3 million of net impairment losses recognized in earnings, compared to $66.1 million for 2009. A description of the methodology and significant inputs used to measure the amount of OTTI related to credit losses in 2010 is as follows:

161


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

7. Investment Information (Continued)

        The Company believes that the $47.0 million of OTTI included in accumulated other comprehensive income at December 31, 2010 on the securities which were considered by the Company to be impaired was due to market and sector-related factors, including limited liquidity and wide credit spreads (i.e., not credit losses). At December 31, 2010, the Company did not have the intent to sell

162


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

7. Investment Information (Continued)

such securities, and determined that it is more likely than not that the Company will not be required to sell the securities before recovery of their cost basis.

        The following table provides a roll forward of the amount related to credit losses recognized in earnings for which a portion of an OTTI was recognized in accumulated other comprehensive income:

 
  Year Ended
December 31,
 
 
  2010   2009  

Balance at beginning of period

  $ 84,147   $ 35,474  
 

Credit loss impairments recognized on securities not previously impaired

    2,501     16,221  
 

Credit loss impairments recognized on securities previously impaired

    8,820     35,530  
 

Reductions for increases in cash flows expected to be collected that are recognized over the remaining life of the security

         
 

Reductions for securities sold during the period

    (9,428 )   (3,078 )
           

Balance at end of period

  $ 86,040   $ 84,147  
           

        At December 31, 2010, the market value and amortized cost of fixed maturities and short-term investments pledged under securities lending agreements were $75.6 million and $72.5 million. At December 31, 2009, the market value and amortized cost of fixed maturities and short-term investments pledged under securities lending agreements were $212.8 million and $214.7 million, respectively. At December 31, 2010, the reinvested collateral included sub-prime securities with a market value of $13.2 million, compared to $18.9 million at December 31, 2009.

        As of December 31, 2010, the Company had $402.4 million of securities under TALF which are reflected as "TALF investments, at market value" and $325.8 million of secured financing from the FRBNY which is reflected as "TALF borrowings, at market value." As of December 31, 2009, the Company had $250.3 million of TALF investments, at market value, and $217.6 million of TALF borrowings, at market value. Changes in market value for both the securities and borrowings are included in "Net realized gains (losses)" while interest income on the TALF investments is reflected in net investment income and interest expense on the TALF borrowings is reflected in interest expense. The Company recorded net realized gains for the year ended December 31, 2010 of $9.4 million on the TALF program, consisting of realized gains of $10.2 million and realized losses of $0.7 million on the TALF investments and TALF borrowings, respectively. See Note 13, "Commitments and Contingencies—TALF Program," for further details.

163


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

7. Investment Information (Continued)

        Other investments include: (i) investment funds which primarily invest in fixed income securities and (ii) other securities which include the Company's investment in Aeolus LP (see Note 12). The following table details the Company's other investments:

 
  December 31, 2010   December 31, 2009  
 
  Estimated
Market Value
  Cost   Estimated
Market Value
  Cost  

Fixed income investment funds

  $ 266,267   $ 250,349   $ 63,146   $ 60,571  

Other

    83,005     75,975     72,403     65,456  
                   
 

Total

  $ 349,272   $ 326,324   $ 135,549   $ 126,027  
                   

        The Company recorded $61.4 million of equity in net income for 2010 related to investment funds accounted for using the equity method, compared to $167.8 million of equity in net income for 2009. Due to the ownership structure of these investment funds, which invest in fixed maturity securities, the Company uses the equity method. In applying the equity method, these investments are initially recorded at cost and are subsequently adjusted based on the Company's proportionate share of the net income or loss of the funds (which include changes in the market value of the underlying securities in the funds). Such investments are generally recorded on a one month lag with some investments reported for on a three month lag based on the availability of reports from the investment funds. Changes in the carrying value of such investments are recorded in net income as "Equity in net income (loss) of investment funds accounted for using the equity method" while changes in the carrying value of the Company's other fixed income investments are recorded as an unrealized gain or loss component of accumulated other comprehensive income in shareholders' equity. As such, fluctuations in the carrying value of the investment funds accounted for using the equity method may increase the volatility of the Company's reported results of operations. Investment funds accounted for using the equity method totaled $434.6 million at December 31, 2010, compared to $391.9 million at December 31, 2009. The Company's investment commitments, which are primarily related to investment funds accounted for using the equity method were approximately $95.5 million at December 31, 2010.

        A summary of aggregate financial information for the Company's investment funds accounted for using the equity method as of September 30, 2010 and 2009 and for the nine months ended September 30, 2010, 2009 and 2008 is as follows:

 
  September 30,  
 
  2010   2009  

Invested assets

  $ 6,313,409   $ 4,302,646  

Total assets

    6,313,825     4,303,265  

Total liabilities

    142,378     607  
           

Net assets

  $ 6,171,447   $ 4,302,658  
           

164


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

7. Investment Information (Continued)

 

 
  Nine Months Ended September 30,  
 
  2010   2009   2008  

Total revenues

  $ 689,557   $ 1,611,145   $ (317,925 )

Total expenses

    177,781     40,869     28,016  
               

Net income (loss)

  $ 511,776   $ 1,570,276   $ (345,941 )
               

        The Company is required to maintain assets on deposit, which primarily consist of fixed maturities, with various regulatory authorities to support its insurance and reinsurance operations. The Company has investments in segregated portfolios which are primarily used to provide collateral or guarantees for letters of credit to third parties. See Note 13, "Commitments and Contingencies—Letter of Credit and Revolving Credit Facilities," for further details. In addition, the Company maintains assets on deposit which are available to settle insurance and reinsurance liabilities to third parties. In addition, certain of the Company's operating subsidiaries maintain assets in trust accounts as collateral for insurance and reinsurance transactions with affiliated companies. At December 31, 2010 and 2009, such amounts approximated $4.38 billion and $4.28 billion, respectively. The following table details the value of restricted assets:

 
  December 31,  
 
  2010   2009  

Assets used for collateral or guarantees

  $ 948,020   $ 1,017,482  

Deposits with U.S. regulatory authorities

    263,077     279,136  

Deposits with non-U.S. regulatory authorities

    122,341     76,094  

Trust funds

    48,140     115,585  
           
 

Total restricted assets

  $ 1,381,578   $ 1,488,297  
           

        The components of net investment income were derived from the following sources:

 
  Year Ended December 31,  
 
  2010   2009   2008  

Fixed maturities

  $ 378,682   $ 404,861   $ 437,492  

Short-term investments

    1,337     1,897     21,006  

Other(1)

    5,245     4,413     23,473  
               
 

Gross investment income

    385,264     411,171     481,971  

Investment expenses

    (20,386 )   (21,040 )   (13,891 )
               
 

Net investment income

  $ 364,878   $ 390,131   $ 468,080  
               

(1)
Primarily consists of interest income on operating cash accounts, other investments, equity securities and securities lending transactions.

165


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

7. Investment Information (Continued)

        The following table provides an analysis of net realized gains (losses):

 
  Year Ended December 31,  
 
  2010   2009   2008  

Fixed maturities

  $ 186,363   $ 135,426   $ (17,793 )

Equity securities

    14,129     4,420      

Other investments

    9,187     746     (10,039 )

Other(1)

    43,072     2,990     23,893  
               
 

Net realized gains (losses)

  $ 252,751   $ 143,582   $ (3,939 )
               

(1)
Primarily consists of net realized gains or losses related to investment-related derivatives and foreign currency forward contracts (see Note 9) and changes in the market value of TALF investments and TALF borrowings.

        Proceeds from the sales of fixed maturities during 2010, 2009 and 2008 were $16.65 billion, $19.78 billion and $16.17 billion, respectively. Gross gains of $284.6 million, $370.6 million and $250.2 million were realized on those transactions during 2010, 2009 and 2008, respectively. Gross losses of $98.2 million, $235.2 million and $268.0 million were realized on those transactions during 2010, 2009 and 2008, respectively. Realized gains or losses on fixed maturities include changes in the market value of certain hybrid securities pursuant to applicable guidance. The fair market values of such securities at December 31, 2010 were approximately $122.4 million, compared to $84.8 million at December 31, 2009. The Company recorded realized losses of $0.5 million for 2010 on such securities, compared to realized gains of $14.8 million for 2009 and $5.4 million of realized losses in 2008.

        Proceeds from the sales of equity securities during 2010 and 2009 were $70.4 million and $38.3 million, respectively. The Company elected to carry certain equity securities at fair value under the fair value option afforded by accounting guidance regarding the fair value option for financial assets and liabilities. The fair market values of such securities at December 31, 2010 were approximately $66.3 million, compared to $36.4 million at December 31, 2009. The Company recorded $14.2 million of realized gains for 2010 on such securities, compared to $4.4 million of realized gains for 2009.

8. Fair Value

        Accounting guidance regarding fair value measurements addresses how companies should measure fair value when they are required to use a fair value measure for recognition or disclosure purposes under GAAP and provides a common definition of fair value to be used throughout GAAP. It defines fair value as the price that would be received to sell an asset or paid to transfer a liability in an orderly fashion between market participants at the measurement date. In addition, it establishes a three-level valuation hierarchy for the disclosure of fair value measurements. The valuation hierarchy is based upon the transparency of inputs to the valuation of an asset or liability as of the measurement date. The level in the hierarchy within which a given fair value measurement falls is determined based on the lowest level input that is significant to the measurement (Level 1 being the highest priority and Level 3 being the lowest priority).

166


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

8. Fair Value (Continued)

        The three levels are defined as follows:

  Level 1:   Inputs to the valuation methodology are observable inputs that reflect quoted prices (unadjusted) for identical assets or liabilities in active markets

 

Level 2:

 

Inputs to the valuation methodology include quoted prices for similar assets and liabilities in active markets, and inputs that are observable for the asset or liability, either directly or indirectly, for substantially the full term of the financial instrument

 

Level 3:

 

Inputs to the valuation methodology are unobservable and significant to the fair value measurement

        Following is a description of the valuation methodologies used for securities measured at fair value, as well as the general classification of such securities pursuant to the valuation hierarchy.

        The Company determines the existence of an active market based on its judgment as to whether transactions for the financial instrument occur in such market with sufficient frequency and volume to provide reliable pricing information. The independent pricing sources obtain market quotations and actual transaction prices for securities that have quoted prices in active markets. The Company uses quoted values and other data provided by nationally recognized independent pricing sources as inputs into its process for determining fair values of its fixed maturity investments. To validate the techniques or models used by pricing sources, the Company's review process includes, but is not limited to: (i) quantitative analysis (e.g., comparing the quarterly return for each managed portfolio to its target benchmark, with significant differences identified and investigated); (ii) a review of the average number of prices obtained in the pricing process and the range of resulting market values; (iii) initial and ongoing evaluation of methodologies used by outside parties to calculate fair value including a review of deep dive reports on selected securities which indicated the use of observable inputs in the pricing process; (iv) comparing the fair value estimates to its knowledge of the current market; (v) a comparison of the pricing services' fair values to other pricing services' fair values for the same investments; and (vi) back-testing, which includes randomly selecting purchased or sold securities and comparing the executed prices to the fair value estimates from the pricing service. At December 31, 2010, the Company obtained an average of 2.7 quotes per investment, compared to 2.6 quotes at December 31, 2009. Where multiple quotes or prices were obtained, a price source hierarchy was maintained in order to determine which price source provided the fair value (i.e., a price obtained from a pricing service with more seniority in the hierarchy will be used from a less senior one in all cases). The hierarchy prioritizes pricing services based on availability and reliability and assigns the highest priority to index providers. Based on the above review, the Company will challenge any prices for a security or portfolio which are considered not to be representative of fair value. The Company did not adjust the prices or quotes provided by the pricing services at December 31, 2010 or December 31, 2009.

        The independent pricing sources obtain market quotations and actual transaction prices for securities that have quoted prices in active markets. Each source has its own proprietary method for determining the fair value of securities that are not actively traded. In general, these methods involve the use of "matrix pricing" in which the independent pricing source uses observable market inputs including, but not limited to, investment yields, credit risks and spreads, benchmarking of like

167


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

8. Fair Value (Continued)


securities, broker-dealer quotes, reported trades and sector groupings to determine a reasonable fair market value. In addition, pricing vendors use model processes, such as an Option Adjusted Spread model, to develop prepayment and interest rate scenarios. The Option Adjusted Spread model is commonly used to estimate fair value for securities such as mortgage backed and asset backed securities. In certain circumstances, when fair market values are unavailable from these independent pricing sources, quotes are obtained directly from broker-dealers who are active in the corresponding markets. Such quotes are subject to the validation procedures noted above. Of the $11.44 billion of financial assets and liabilities measured at fair value at December 31, 2010, approximately $1.81 billion, or 15.8%, were priced using non-binding broker-dealer quotes. Of the $10.74 billion of financial assets and liabilities measured at fair value at December 31, 2009, approximately $1.17 billion, or 10.8%, were priced using non-binding broker-dealer quotes.

        The Company reviews its securities measured at fair value and discusses the proper classification of such investments with investment advisors and others. Upon adoption of the accounting guidance regarding fair value measurement, the Company determined that Level 1 securities included highly liquid, recent issue U.S. Treasuries and certain of its short-term investments held in highly liquid money market-type funds where it believes that quoted prices are available in an active market. On January 1, 2010, the Company determined that all U.S. Treasuries would be classified as Level 1 securities due to observed levels of trading activity, the high number of strongly correlated pricing quotes received on U.S. Treasuries and other factors. Such determination resulted in $1.09 billion of U.S. Treasuries previously classified as Level 2 being moved into Level 1.

        Where the Company believes that quoted market prices are not available or that the market is not active, fair values are estimated by using quoted prices of securities with similar characteristics, pricing models or matrix pricing and are generally classified as Level 2 securities. The Company determined that Level 2 securities included corporate bonds, mortgage backed securities, municipal bonds, asset backed securities, non-U.S. government securities, TALF investments and TALF borrowings, certain short-term securities and certain other investments.

        The Company determined that three Euro-denominated corporate bonds which invest in underlying portfolios of fixed income securities for which there is a low level of transparency around inputs to the valuation process should be classified within Level 3 of the valuation hierarchy. In addition, the Company determined that two mutual funds, included in other investments, which invest in underlying portfolios of fixed income securities for which there is a low level of transparency around inputs to the valuation process should be classified within Level 3 of the valuation hierarchy. In addition, Level 3 securities include a small number of premium-tax bonds. The Company reviews the classification of its investments each quarter. No securities were reclassified between Level 2 and Level 3 during 2010.

        In securities lending transactions, the Company receives collateral in excess of the fair value of the fixed maturities and short-term investments pledged under securities lending agreements. For purposes of the following table, the Company has excluded the collateral received and reinvested of $69.7 million and $207.0 million at December 31, 2010 and 2009, respectively, and included the $75.6 million and $212.8 million, respectively, of "fixed maturities and short-term investments pledged under securities lending agreements, at market value."

168


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

8. Fair Value (Continued)

        The following table presents the Company's financial assets and liabilities measured at fair value by level:

 
   
  Fair Value Measurement Using:  
 
  Estimated
Market
Value
  Quoted Prices
in Active
Markets for
Identical Assets
(Level 1)
  Significant
Other
Observable
Inputs
(Level 2)
  Significant
Unobservable
Inputs
(Level 3)
 

December 31, 2010:

                         

Assets measured at fair value:

                         
 

Fixed maturities:

                         
 

Corporate bonds

  $ 2,839,344   $   $ 2,685,835   $ 153,509  
 

Mortgage backed securities

    1,806,813         1,806,813      
 

Municipal bonds

    1,182,100         1,182,100      
 

Commercial mortgage backed securities

    1,167,299         1,167,299      
 

U.S. government and government agencies

    872,149     872,149          
 

Non-U.S. government securities

    732,666         732,666      
 

Asset backed securities

    558,032         558,032      
                   
   

Total

    9,158,403     872,149     8,132,745     153,509  
 

Short-term investments

   
915,841
   
859,042
   
56,799
   
 
 

TALF investments, at market value

    402,449         402,449      
 

Equity securities

    363,255     350,684     12,571      
 

Other investments

    275,538         267,680     7,858  
                   
   

Total assets measured at fair value

  $ 11,115,486   $ 2,081,875   $ 8,872,244   $ 161,367  
                   

Liabilities measured at fair value:

                         
 

TALF borrowings, at market value

  $ 325,770   $   $ 325,770   $  
                   

December 31, 2009:

                         

Assets measured at fair value:

                         
 

Fixed maturities:

                         
 

Corporate bonds

  $ 3,134,088   $   $ 2,955,703   $ 178,385  
 

Mortgage backed securities

    1,449,382         1,449,382      
 

Municipal bonds

    957,752         957,752      
 

Commercial mortgage backed securities

    1,185,799         1,185,799      
 

U.S. government and government agencies

    1,553,672     466,779     1,086,893      
 

Asset backed securities

    567,844         567,844      
 

Non-U.S. government securities

    752,215         752,215      
                   
   

Total

    9,600,752     466,779     8,955,588     178,385  
 

Short-term investments

   
575,483
   
564,281
   
11,202
   
 
 

TALF investments, at market value

    250,265         250,265      
 

Equity securities

    36,623     36,623          
 

Other investments

    58,751         9,083     49,668  
                   
   

Total assets measured at fair value

  $ 10,521,874   $ 1,067,683   $ 9,226,138   $ 228,053  
                   

Liabilities measured at fair value:

                         
 

TALF borrowings, at market value

  $ 217,565   $   $ 217,565   $  
                   

169


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

8. Fair Value (Continued)

        The following table presents a reconciliation of the beginning and ending balances for all investments measured at fair value on a recurring basis using Level 3 inputs:

 
  Fair Value Measurements Using:
Significant Unobservable Inputs (Level 3)
 
 
  Corporate
Bonds
  Other
Investments
  Total  

Year Ended December 31, 2010:

                   

Balance at beginning of period

  $ 178,385   $ 49,668   $ 228,053  
 

Total gains or (losses) (realized/unrealized)

                   
   

Included in earnings(1)

    11,687     3,250     14,937  
   

Included in other comprehensive income

    (8,744 )   (694 )   (9,438 )
 

Purchases, issuances and settlements

    (27,819 )   (44,366 )   (72,185 )
 

Transfers in and/or out of Level 3

             
               

Balance at end of period

  $ 153,509   $ 7,858   $ 161,367  
               

Year Ended December 31, 2009:

                   

Balance at beginning of year

  $ 142,571   $ 40,339   $ 182,910  
 

Total gains or (losses) (realized/unrealized)

                   
   

Included in earnings(1)

    2,395     (14,117 )   (11,722 )
   

Included in other comprehensive income

    52,698     24,075     76,773  
 

Purchases, issuances and settlements

    (19,279 )   (629 )   (19,908 )
 

Transfers in and/or out of Level 3

             
               

Balance at end of period

  $ 178,385   $ 49,668   $ 228,053  
               

Year Ended December 31, 2008:

                   

Balance at beginning of year

  $ 3,752   $ 11,504   $ 15,256  
 

Total gains or (losses) (realized/unrealized)

                   
   

Included in earnings(1)

    (780 )   757     (23 )
   

Included in other comprehensive income

        (2,660 )   (2,660 )
 

Purchases, issuances and settlements

    2,803     (829 )   1,974  
 

Transfers in and/or out of Level 3

    136,796     31,567     168,363  
               

Balance at end of period

  $ 142,571   $ 40,339   $ 182,910  
               

(1)
Gains or losses on fixed maturities were recorded as a component of net investment income while gains or losses on other investments were recorded in net realized gains (losses).

        The amount of total gains for 2010 included in earnings attributable to the change in unrealized gains or losses relating to assets still held at December 31, 2010 was $14.9 million. The amount of total losses for 2009 included in earnings attributable to the change in unrealized gains or losses relating to assets still held at December 31, 2009 was $2.6 million, compared to a de minimis amount at December 31, 2008.

170


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

8. Fair Value (Continued)

        The Company measures the fair value of certain assets on a non-recurring basis, generally quarterly, annually, or when events or changes in circumstances indicate that the carrying amount of the assets may not be recoverable. These assets include investment funds accounted for using the equity method, investment in joint venture, certain other investments, goodwill and intangible assets, and long-lived assets. The Company uses a variety of techniques to measure the fair value of these assets when appropriate, as described below:

        Investment funds accounted for using the equity method and Investment in joint venture and certain other investments. When the Company determines that the carrying value of these assets may not be recoverable, the Company records the assets at fair value with the loss recognized in income. In such cases, the Company measures the fair value of these assets using the techniques discussed above in "—Fair Value Measurements on a Recurring Basis."

        Goodwill and Intangible Assets.    The goodwill and intangible assets of acquired businesses, which totaled $23.2 million and $24.2 million, respectively, at December 31, 2010 and 2009, is included in "Other assets" in the Company's balance sheet and represents the difference between the purchase price and the fair value of the net tangible assets of the acquired businesses. The Company tests goodwill and intangible assets for impairment whenever events or changes in circumstances indicate the carrying amount may not be recoverable, but at least annually for goodwill. When the Company determines goodwill and intangible assets may be impaired, the Company uses techniques including discounted expected future cash flows, to measure fair value.

        Long-Lived Assets.    The Company tests its long-lived assets for impairment whenever events or changes in circumstances indicate the carrying amount of a long-lived asset may not be recoverable.

9. Derivative Instruments

        The Company's investment strategy allows for the use of derivative securities. The Company's derivative instruments are recorded on its consolidated balance sheets at market value. The market values of those derivatives are based on quoted market prices. All realized and unrealized contract gains and losses are reflected in the Company's results of operations. The Company utilizes exchange traded U.S. Treasury note, Eurodollar and other futures contracts and commodity futures to manage portfolio duration or replicate investment positions in its portfolios. Certain of the Company's corporate bonds are managed in a global bond portfolio which incorporates the use of foreign currency forward contracts which are intended to provide an economic hedge against foreign currency movements on the portfolio's non-U.S. Dollar denominated holdings. In addition, the Company utilizes other foreign currency forward contracts and currency options as part of its investment strategy.

        In addition, the Company purchases to-be-announced mortgage backed securities ("TBAs") as part of its investment strategy. TBAs represent commitments to purchase a future issuance of agency mortgage backed securities. For the period between purchase of a TBA and issuance of the underlying security, the Company's position is accounted for as a derivative. The Company purchases TBAs in both long and short positions to enhance investment performance and as part of its overall investment strategy. The Company did not hold any derivatives which were designated as hedging instruments at December 31, 2010 or December 31, 2009.

171


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

9. Derivative Instruments (Continued)

        The following table summarizes information on the balance sheet locations, market values and notional values of the Company's derivative instruments:

 
   
  Asset Derivatives   Liability Derivatives  
 
  Balance Sheet
Location
  Estimated
Market
Value
  Notional
Value
  Estimated
Market
Value
  Notional
Value
 

December 31, 2010:

                             

Futures

  Other investments   $ 1,968   $ 512,292   $ (62 ) $ 23,544  

Foreign currency forwards

  Other investments     4,093     119,969     (13,582 )   277,908  

TBAs

  Fixed maturities     125,397     121,100          

Other

  Other investments     14,236     239,552     (4,595 )   268,597  
                           
 

Total

      $ 145,694         $ (18,239 )      
                           

December 31, 2009:

                             

Futures

  Other investments   $ 577   $ 472,904   $ (208 ) $ 513,034  

Foreign currency forwards

  Other investments     757     73,340     (12,408 )   310,030  

TBAs

  Fixed maturities     11,070     11,000     (616 )   600  

Other

  Other investments     26     1,975     (1,010 )   143,870  
                           
 

Total

      $ 12,430         $ (14,242 )      
                           

        The following table summarizes derivative instrument activity, which is reflected as net realized gains or losses in the consolidated statements of operations:

 
  Year Ended December 31,  
Derivatives not designated as hedging instruments
  2010   2009  

Futures

  $ 36,675   $ 3,791  

Foreign currency forwards

    (5,266 )   (5,798 )

TBAs

    6,311     1,154  

Other

    4,303     389  
           
 

Total

  $ 42,023   $ (464 )
           

172


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

10. Other Comprehensive Income (Loss)

        Following are the related tax effects allocated to each component of other comprehensive income (loss):

 
  Before
Tax
Amount
  Tax
Expense
(Benefit)
  Net
of Tax
Amount
 

Year Ended December 31, 2010

                   

Unrealized appreciation in value of investments:

                   
 

Unrealized holding gains arising during period

  $ 242,515   $ 5,779   $ 236,736  
 

Portion of other-than-temporary impairment losses recognized in other comprehensive income

    (1,752 )       (1,752 )
 

Less reclassification of net realized gains included in net income

    175,628     5,697     169,931  
 

Foreign currency translation adjustments

    2,312     1,388     924  
               

Other comprehensive income

  $ 67,447   $ 1,470   $ 65,977  
               

Year Ended December 31, 2009

                   

Unrealized appreciation in value of investments:

                   
 

Unrealized holding gains arising during period

  $ 585,278   $ 11,094   $ 574,184  
 

Portion of other-than-temporary impairment losses recognized in other comprehensive income

    (81,376 )       (81,376 )
 

Less reclassification of net realized gains included in net income

    54,655     6,077     48,578  
 

Foreign currency translation adjustments

    13,555     2,196     11,359  
               

Other comprehensive income

  $ 462,802   $ 7,213   $ 455,589  
               

Year Ended December 31, 2008

                   

Unrealized decline in value of investments:

                   
 

Unrealized holding losses arising during period

  $ (568,422 ) $ 13,821   $ (582,243 )
 

Portion of other-than-temporary impairment losses recognized in other comprehensive income

             
 

Less reclassification of net realized losses included in net income

    (201,911 )   5,054     (206,965 )
 

Foreign currency translation adjustments

    (38,079 )   (2,539 )   (35,540 )
               

Other comprehensive loss

  $ (404,590 ) $ 6,228   $ (410,818 )
               

11. Income Taxes

        ACGL is incorporated under the laws of Bermuda and, under current Bermuda law, is not obligated to pay any taxes in Bermuda based upon income or capital gains. The Company has received a written undertaking from the Minister of Finance in Bermuda under the Exempted Undertakings Tax Protection Act 1966 that, in the event that any legislation is enacted in Bermuda imposing any tax computed on profits, income, gain or appreciation on any capital asset, or any tax in the nature of estate duty or inheritance tax, such tax will not be applicable to ACGL or any of its operations until March 28, 2016. This undertaking does not, however, prevent the imposition of taxes on any person ordinarily resident in Bermuda or any company in respect of its ownership of real property or leasehold interests in Bermuda.

173


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

11. Income Taxes (Continued)

        ACGL and its non-U.S. subsidiaries will be subject to U.S. federal income tax only to the extent that they derive U.S. source income that is subject to U.S. withholding tax or income that is effectively connected with the conduct of a trade or business within the U.S. and is not exempt from U.S. tax under an applicable income tax treaty with the U.S. ACGL and its non-U.S. subsidiaries will be subject to a withholding tax on dividends from U.S. investments and interest from certain U.S. payors (subject to reduction by any applicable income tax treaty). ACGL and its non-U.S. subsidiaries intend to conduct their operations in a manner that will not cause them to be treated as engaged in a trade or business in the United States and, therefore, will not be required to pay U.S. federal income taxes (other than U.S. excise taxes on insurance and reinsurance premium and withholding taxes on dividends and certain other U.S. source investment income). However, because there is uncertainty as to the activities which constitute being engaged in a trade or business within the United States, there can be no assurances that the U.S. Internal Revenue Service will not contend successfully that ACGL or its non-U.S. subsidiaries are engaged in a trade or business in the United States. If ACGL or any of its non-U.S. subsidiaries were subject to U.S. income tax, ACGL's shareholders' equity and earnings could be materially adversely affected. ACGL has subsidiaries and branches that operate in various jurisdictions around the world that are subject to tax in the jurisdictions in which they operate. The significant jurisdictions in which ACGL's subsidiaries and branches are subject to tax include the United States, United Kingdom, Ireland, Canada, Switzerland and Denmark.

        The components of income taxes attributable to operations were as follows:

 
  Year Ended December 31,  
 
  2010   2009   2008  

Current expense:

                   

U.S. Federal

  $ 10,054   $ 20,243   $ 16,704  

U.S. State

    619     742     825  

Non-U.S. 

    8,620     2,627     5,631  
               

    19,293     23,612     23,160  

Deferred expense (benefit):

                   

U.S. Federal

    (12,796 )   (1,485 )   (7,740 )

Non-U.S. 

    1,371     (1,419 )   (1,881 )
               

    (11,425 )   (2,904 )   (9,621 )
               

Income tax expense

  $ 7,868   $ 20,708   $ 13,539  
               

        The expected tax provision computed on pre-tax income at the weighted average tax rate has been calculated as the sum of the pre-tax income in each jurisdiction multiplied by that jurisdiction's

174


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

11. Income Taxes (Continued)


applicable statutory tax rate. A reconciliation of the difference between the provision for income taxes and the expected tax provision at the weighted average tax rate follows:

 
  Year Ended December 31,  
 
  2010   2009   2008  

Expected income tax expense computed on pre-tax income at weighted average income tax rate

  $ 10,155   $ 31,162   $ 19,854  

Addition (reduction) in income tax expense (benefit) resulting from:

                   
 

Tax-exempt investment income

    (8,281 )   (8,911 )   (11,403 )
 

Meals and entertainment

    657     462     641  
 

State taxes, net of U.S. federal tax benefit

    402     506     536  
 

U.S. operations' foreign taxes, net of U.S. federal tax benefit

    (253 )   (983 )   2,133  
 

Reorganization of foreign branch

            589  
 

Prior year adjustment

    677     (1,992 )   253  
 

Non deductible foreign exchange losses

    1,067          
 

Changes in applicable tax rate

    1,469          
 

Dividend withholding taxes

    718          
 

Other

    1,257     464     936  
               

Income tax expense

  $ 7,868   $ 20,708   $ 13,539  
               

        The Company has net operating loss carryforwards in its U.S. operating subsidiaries totaling $5.0 million at December 31, 2010. Such net operating losses are currently available to offset future taxable income of the subsidiaries. Under applicable law, the U.S. net operating loss carryforwards expire between 2018 and 2020.

        The Company also has a foreign tax credit carryforward of $6.2 million, of which $5.0 million relates to the Company's U.S. operations and will expire between 2018 and 2020. Additionally, the Company has an alternative minimum tax ("AMT") credit carryforward in the amount of $6.6 million which can be carried forward indefinitely.

        On November 20, 2001, the Company underwent an ownership change for U.S. federal income tax purposes as a result of the investment led by investment funds associated with Warburg Pincus LLC ("Warburg Pincus") and Hellman and Friedman LLC ("Hellman & Friedman"). As a result of this ownership change, limitations have been imposed upon the utilization by the Company's U.S. operating subsidiaries of existing net operating losses. Utilization by such subsidiaries of the net operating losses is limited to approximately $2.4 million per year in accordance with Section 382 of the Internal Revenue Code of 1986 as amended (the "Code").

        The Company's Danish subsidiary has a net operating loss carryforward of $2.5 million which can be carried forward without expiration.

175


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

11. Income Taxes (Continued)

        Deferred income tax assets and liabilities reflect temporary differences based on enacted tax rates between the carrying amounts of assets and liabilities for financial reporting and income tax purposes. Significant components of the Company's deferred income tax assets and liabilities were as follows:

 
  December 31,  
 
  2010   2009  

Deferred income tax assets:

             
 

Net operating loss

  $ 2,387   $ 2,601  
 

Deferred ceding commission

    6,697     9,548  
 

AMT credit carryforward

    6,642      
 

Discounting of net loss reserves

    37,955     35,657  
 

Net unearned premium reserve

    13,563     13,210  
 

Compensation liabilities

    22,396     21,693  
 

Foreign tax credit carryforward

    6,238     2,283  
 

Interest expense

    950     3,161  
 

Other, net

    9,784     5,066  
           

Total deferred tax assets

    106,612     93,219  
           

Deferred income tax liabilities:

             
 

Depreciation and amortization

    (6,211 )   (3,954 )
 

Deferred acquisition costs, net

    (2,850 )   (2,196 )
 

Deposit accounting liability

    (4,702 )   (5,090 )
 

Net unrealized foreign exchange gains

    (3,021 )   (1,634 )
 

Net unrealized appreciation of investments

    (21,102 )   (20,876 )
 

Other, net

    (2,748 )   (3,181 )
           

Total deferred tax liabilities

    (40,634 )   (36,931 )
           

Net deferred income tax asset

  $ 65,978   $ 56,288  
           

        FASB guidance regarding the accounting for uncertainty in income taxes prescribes a "more likely than not" threshold for the financial statement recognition of a tax position taken or expected to be taken in a tax return, assuming the relevant tax authority has full knowledge of all relevant information. The amount recognized represents the largest amount of tax benefit that is greater than 50% likely of being ultimately realized. A liability is recognized for any benefit claimed, or expected to be claimed, in a tax return in excess of the benefit recorded in the financial statements, along with any interest and penalty (if applicable) on the excess. The Company recognizes interest and penalties relating to unrecognized tax benefits in the provision for income taxes.

        As of December 31, 2010 and 2009, the Company's total unrecognized tax benefits, including interest and penalties, were nil.

        The Company or its subsidiaries or branches files income tax returns in the U.S. federal jurisdiction and various state, local and foreign jurisdictions. With few exceptions, the Company is no longer subject to U.S. federal, state, local, or non-U.S. income tax examination for years before 2007.

176


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

11. Income Taxes (Continued)

        In addition to unrecognized tax benefits, the Company provides a valuation allowance to reduce certain deferred tax assets to an amount which management expects to more likely than not be realized. As of December 31, 2010 and 2009, the Company's valuation allowance was nil.

        During 2010, 2009 and 2008, the Company paid $7.2 million, $31.4 million and $11.4 million for income taxes, net of recoveries, respectively. As of December 31, 2010, the Company's current income tax recoverable (included in "Other assets") was $10.2 million.

        The United States also imposes an excise tax on insurance and reinsurance premiums paid to non-U.S. insurers or reinsurers with respect to risks located in the United States. The rates of tax, unless reduced by an applicable U.S. tax treaty, are four percent for non-life insurance premiums and one percent for life insurance and all reinsurance premiums. The Company incurs federal excise taxes on certain of its reinsurance transactions, including amounts ceded through intercompany transactions. For 2010, 2009 and 2008, the Company incurred approximately $11.5 million, $12.8 million and $12.8 million, respectively, of federal excise taxes. Such amounts are reflected as acquisition expenses in the Company's consolidated statements of income.

12. Transactions with Related Parties

        The Company made an investment of $50.0 million in Aeolus LP ("Aeolus") in 2006. Aeolus operates as an unrated reinsurance platform that provides property catastrophe protection to insurers and reinsurers on both an ultimate net loss and industry loss warranty basis. In return for its investment, included in "Other investments" on the Company's balance sheet, the Company received an approximately 4.9% preferred interest in Aeolus and a pro rata share of certain founders' interests. The investment is accounted for using the equity method. The Company made its investment in Aeolus on the same economic terms as a fund affiliated with Warburg Pincus. During 2010, all remaining shares of the Company owned by Warburg Pincus were distributed. In addition, one of the founders of Aeolus is Peter Appel, former President and CEO and a former director of the Company. During 2009, the Company received a distribution of $14.0 million from Aeolus as part of a repurchase agreement. Following such receipt, the Company's preferred interest percentage decreased to approximately 4.4%.

13. Commitments and Contingencies

        The creditworthiness of a counterparty is evaluated by the Company, taking into account credit ratings assigned by independent agencies. The credit approval process involves an assessment of factors, including, among others, the counterparty, country and industry credit exposure limits. Collateral may be required, at the discretion of the Company, on certain transactions based on the creditworthiness of the counterparty.

        The areas where significant concentrations of credit risk may exist include unpaid losses and loss adjustment expenses recoverable, prepaid reinsurance premiums and paid losses and loss adjustment expenses recoverable net of reinsurance balances payable (collectively, "reinsurance recoverables"), investments and cash and cash equivalent balances. The Company's reinsurance recoverables at December 31, 2010 and 2009 amounted to $1.89 billion and $1.84 billion, respectively, and primarily

177


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

13. Commitments and Contingencies (Continued)


resulted from reinsurance arrangements entered into in the course of its operations. A credit exposure exists with respect to reinsurance recoverables as they may become uncollectible. The Company manages its credit risk in its reinsurance relationships by transacting with reinsurers that it considers financially sound and, if necessary, the Company may hold collateral in the form of funds, trust accounts and/or irrevocable letters of credit. This collateral can be drawn on for amounts that remain unpaid beyond specified time periods on an individual reinsurer basis.

        In addition, the Company underwrites a significant amount of its business through brokers and a credit risk exists should any of these brokers be unable to fulfill their contractual obligations with respect to the payments of insurance and reinsurance balances owed to the Company. During 2010, approximately 18.8% and 15.1% of the Company's consolidated gross written premiums were generated from or placed by Aon Corporation and its subsidiaries and Marsh & McLennan Companies and its subsidiaries, respectively, compared to approximately 21.4% and 15.6% for 2009, respectively, and 15.3% and 17.0% for 2008, respectively. No other broker and no one insured or reinsured accounted for more than 10% of gross premiums written for 2010, 2009 and 2008.

        The Company's available for sale investment portfolio is managed in accordance with guidelines that have been tailored to meet specific investment strategies, including standards of diversification, which limit the allowable holdings of any single issue. There were no investments in any entity in excess of 10% of the Company's shareholders' equity at December 31, 2010 other than investments issued or guaranteed by the United States government or its agencies. The Company's unfunded commitments relating to investments totaled approximately $95.5 million at December 31, 2010.

        As of December 31, 2010, the Company had a $300 million unsecured revolving loan and letter of credit facility and a $1.0 billion secured letter of credit facility (the "Credit Agreement"). Under the terms of the Credit Agreement, Arch Re U.S. is limited to issuing $100 million of unsecured letters of credit as part of the $300 million unsecured revolving loan. Borrowings of revolving loans may be made by ACGL and Arch Re U.S. at a variable rate based on LIBOR or an alternative base rate at the option of the Company. Secured letters of credit are available for issuance on behalf of the Company's insurance and reinsurance subsidiaries. The Credit Agreement and related documents are structured such that each party that requests a letter of credit or borrowing does so only for itself and for only its own obligations. Issuance of letters of credit and borrowings under the Credit Agreement are subject to the Company's compliance with certain covenants and conditions, including absence of a material adverse change. These covenants require, among other things, that the Company maintain a debt to total capital ratio of not greater than 0.35 to 1 and shareholders' equity in excess of $1.95 billion plus 25% of future aggregate net income for each quarterly period (not including any future net losses) beginning after June 30, 2006 and 25% of future aggregate proceeds from the issuance of common or preferred equity and that the Company's principal insurance and reinsurance subsidiaries maintain at least a "B++" rating from A.M. Best. In addition, certain of the Company's subsidiaries which are party to the Credit Agreement are required to maintain minimum shareholders' equity levels. The Company was in compliance with all covenants contained in the Credit Agreement at December 31, 2010. The Credit Agreement expires on August 30, 2011.

178


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

13. Commitments and Contingencies (Continued)

        Including the secured letter of credit portion of the Credit Agreement, the Company has access to letter of credit facilities for up to a total of $1.38 billion. Arch Re Bermuda also has access to other letter of credit facilities, some of which are available on a limited basis and for limited purposes (together with the secured portion of the Credit Agreement and these letter of credit facilities, the "LOC Facilities"). The principal purpose of the LOC Facilities is to issue, as required, evergreen standby letters of credit in favor of primary insurance or reinsurance counterparties with which the Company has entered into reinsurance arrangements to ensure that such counterparties are permitted to take credit for reinsurance obtained from the Company's reinsurance subsidiaries in United States jurisdictions where such subsidiaries are not licensed or otherwise admitted as an insurer, as required under insurance regulations in the United States, and to comply with requirements of Lloyd's of London in connection with qualifying quota share and other arrangements. The amount of letters of credit issued is driven by, among other things, the timing and payment of catastrophe losses, loss development of existing reserves, the payment pattern of such reserves, the further expansion of the Company's business and the loss experience of such business. When issued, certain letters of credit are secured by a portion of the Company's investment portfolio. In addition, the LOC Facilities also require the maintenance of certain covenants, which the Company was in compliance with at December 31, 2010. At such date, the Company had approximately $743.1 million in outstanding letters of credit under the LOC Facilities, which were secured by investments totaling $831.6 million. In May 2008, the Company borrowed $100.0 million under the Credit Agreement at a Company-selected variable interest rate that is based on 1 month, 3 month or 6 month reset option terms and their corresponding term LIBOR rates plus 27.5 basis points. The proceeds from such borrowings, which are repayable in August 2011, were contributed as additional share capital to Arch Re Bermuda and used to fund the investment in Gulf Re (see Note 6).

        TALF provides secured financing for asset-backed securities backed by certain types of consumer and small business loans and for legacy commercial mortgage-backed securities. TALF financing is non-recourse to the Company, except in certain limited instances, and is collateralized by the purchased securities and provides financing for the purchase price of the securities, less a 'haircut' that varies based on the type of collateral. The Company can deliver the collateralized securities to a special purpose vehicle created by the FRBNY in full defeasance of the borrowings.

        As of December 31, 2010, the Company had $402.4 million of securities under TALF, consisting of 19 individual TALF investments, which are reflected as "TALF investments, at market value" and $325.8 million of secured financing from the FRBNY which is reflected as "TALF borrowings, at market value." The maturity dates for the TALF borrowings range from July 2012 to May 2015, with interest rates that range from approximately 1.2% to 3.9% based on either variable or fixed interest rates depending on the related TALF investments. See Note 7, "Investment Information—TALF Program," for additional information.

179


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

13. Commitments and Contingencies (Continued)

        At December 31, 2010, the future minimum rental commitments, exclusive of escalation clauses and maintenance costs and net of rental income, for all of the Company's operating leases are as follows:

2011

  $ 16,831  

2012

    14,766  

2013

    13,657  

2014

    12,714  

2015

    11,228  

Thereafter

    58,265  
       
 

Total

  $ 127,461  
       

        All of these leases are for the rental of office space, with expiration terms that range from 2011 to 2024. Rental expense, net of income from subleases, was approximately $15.0 million, $16.9 million and $17.5 million for 2010, 2009 and 2008, respectively.

        The Company has also entered into certain agreements which commit the Company to purchase goods or services, primarily related to software and computerized systems. Such purchase obligations were approximately $30.1 million and $22.0 million at December 31, 2010 and 2009, respectively.

        At December 31, 2010, the Company has entered into employment agreements with certain of its executive officers for periods extending up to November 2012. Such employment arrangements provide for compensation in the form of base salary, annual bonus, share-based awards, participation in the Company's employee benefit programs and the reimbursements of expenses.

        On May 5, 2000, the Company sold the prior reinsurance operations of Arch Re U.S. pursuant to an agreement entered into as of January 10, 2000 with White Mountains Reinsurance Company of America, formerly known as Folksamerica Reinsurance Company, and a related holding company (collectively, "WTM Re"). WTM Re assumed Arch Re U.S.'s liabilities under the reinsurance agreements transferred in the asset sale and Arch Re U.S. transferred to WTM Re assets estimated in an aggregate amount equal in book value to the book value of the liabilities assumed. The WTM Re transaction was structured as a transfer and assumption agreement (and not reinsurance) and, accordingly, the loss reserves (and any related reinsurance recoverables) relating to the transferred business are not included as assets or liabilities on the Company's balance sheet. WTM Re assumed Arch Re U.S.'s rights and obligations under the reinsurance agreements transferred in the asset sale. The reinsureds under such agreements were notified that WTM Re had assumed Arch Re U.S.'s obligations and that, unless the reinsureds object to the assumption, Arch Re U.S. will be released from its obligations to those reinsured. None of such reinsureds objected to the assumption. However, Arch Re U.S. will continue to be liable under those reinsurance agreements if the notice is found not to be an effective release by the reinsureds. WTM Re has agreed to indemnify the Company for any losses arising out of the reinsurance agreements transferred to WTM Re in the asset sale. However, in

180


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

13. Commitments and Contingencies (Continued)

the event that WTM Re refuses or is unable to perform its obligations to the Company, Arch Re U.S. may incur losses relating to the reinsurance agreements transferred in the asset sale. WTM Re's A.M. Best rating was "A-" (Excellent) at December 31, 2010. WTM Re reported policyholders' surplus of $832.0 million at December 31, 2009.

        Under the terms of the agreement, in 2000, the Company had also purchased reinsurance protection covering the Company's transferred aviation business to reduce the net financial loss to WTM Re on any large commercial airline catastrophe to $5.4 million, net of reinstatement premiums. Although the Company believes that any such net financial loss will not exceed $5.4 million, the Company has agreed to reimburse WTM Re if a loss is incurred that exceeds $5.4 million for aviation losses under certain circumstances prior to May 5, 2003. The Company also made representations and warranties to WTM Re about the Company and the business transferred to WTM Re for which the Company retains exposure for certain periods, and made certain other agreements. In addition, the Company retained its tax and employee benefit liabilities and other liabilities not assumed by WTM Re, including all liabilities not arising under reinsurance agreements transferred to WTM Re in the asset sale and all liabilities (other than liabilities arising under reinsurance agreements) arising out of or relating to a certain managing underwriting agency. Although WTM Re has not asserted that any amount is currently due under any of the indemnities provided by the Company under the asset purchase agreement, WTM Re has previously indicated a potential indemnity claim under the agreement in the event of the occurrence of certain future events. Based on all available information, the Company has denied the validity of any such potential claim.

14. Senior Notes

        On May 4, 2004, ACGL completed a public offering of $300 million principal amount of 7.35% senior notes ("Senior Notes") due May 1, 2034 and received net proceeds of $296.4 million. ACGL used $200 million of the net proceeds to repay all amounts outstanding under a revolving credit agreement. The Senior Notes are ACGL's senior unsecured obligations and rank equally with all of its existing and future senior unsecured indebtedness. Interest payments on the Senior Notes are due on May 1st and November 1st of each year. ACGL may redeem the Senior Notes at any time and from time to time, in whole or in part, at a "make-whole" redemption price. For 2010, 2009 and 2008, interest expense on the Senior Notes was $22.1 million. The market value of the Senior Notes at December 31, 2010 and 2009 was $310.9 million and $298.6 million, respectively.

        During 2010, 2009 and 2008, the Company made interest payments of $29.9 million, $24.6 million and $23.8 million, respectively, related to its Senior Notes and other financing arrangements discussed in Note 13.

15. Share Capital

        The authorized share capital of the Company consists of 200,000,000 Common Shares, par value of $0.01 per share, and 50,000,000 Preferred Shares, par value of $0.01 per share.

181


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

15. Share Capital (Continued)

        Changes in the Company's issued and outstanding Common Shares are reflected in the table below:

 
  Year Ended December 31,  
 
  2010   2009   2008  

Common Shares:

                   

Shares issued and outstanding, beginning of year

    54,761,678     60,511,974     67,318,466  

Shares issued(1)

    1,237,076     527,953     695,769  

Restricted shares issued, net of cancellations

    369,061     519,423     17,345  

Shares repurchased and retired(2)

    (3,009,943 )   (6,797,672 )   (7,519,606 )
               

Shares issued, end of year

    53,357,872     54,761,678     60,511,974  

Common shares in treasury, end of year

    (6,813,797 )        
               

Shares issued and outstanding, end of year

    46,544,075     54,761,678     60,511,974  
               

(1)
Includes shares issued from the exercise of stock options and shares issued from the employee share purchase plan.

(2)
Includes shares repurchased and retired from the share repurchase plan.

        The board of directors of ACGL has authorized the investment in ACGL's common shares through a share repurchase program. Authorizations have consisted of a $1.0 billion authorization in February 2007, a $500 million authorization in May 2008 and a $1.0 billion authorization in November 2009. Since the inception of the share repurchase program through December 31, 2010, ACGL has repurchased approximately 31.7 million common shares for an aggregate purchase price of $2.27 billion. During 2010, ACGL repurchased 9.7 million common shares for an aggregate purchase price of $761.9 million, compared to 6.7 million common shares for an aggregate purchase price of $458.4 million during 2009 and 7.5 million shares repurchased for an aggregate purchase price of $513.1 million during 2008. Weighted average shares outstanding for 2010 were reduced by 27.0 million shares, compared to 16.2 million shares for 2009 and 12.9 million shares for 2008. At December 31, 2010, approximately $229.5 million of share repurchases were available under the program.

        In addition, the board of directors of ACGL approved a $1.0 billion authorization in February 2011 (see Note 20, "Subsequent Events"). Repurchases under the program may be effected from time to time in open market or privately negotiated transactions through December 2012. The timing and amount of the repurchase transactions under this program will depend on a variety of factors, including market conditions and corporate and regulatory considerations.

        In May 2010, ACGL's shareholders approved amendments to the bye-laws to permit ACGL to hold its own acquired shares as treasury shares in lieu of cancellation, as determined by ACGL's board of directors. From May 5 to December 31, 2010, all repurchases of ACGL's common shares in

182


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

15. Share Capital (Continued)

connection with the share repurchase plan noted above and other share-based transactions were held in the treasury under the cost method, and the cost of the common shares acquired is included in 'Common shares held in treasury, at cost.' Prior to May 5, 2010, such acquisitions were reflected as a reduction in additional paid-in capital. At December 31, 2010, the Company held 6.8 million shares for an aggregate cost of $549.9 million in treasury, at cost.

        On May 11, 2007, following shareholder approval, the Company adopted the 2007 Employee Share Purchase Plan (the "ESPP"). The purpose of the ESPP is to give employees of ACGL and its subsidiaries an opportunity to purchase common shares through payroll deductions, thereby encouraging employees to share in the economic growth and success of ACGL and its subsidiaries. The ESPP is designed to qualify as an "employee share purchase plan" under Section 423 of the Code. A total of 750,000 common shares are reserved for issuance under the ESPP. At December 31, 2010, approximately 510,839 shares remain available for issuance. The ESPP provides for consecutive six-month offering periods (or other periods of not more than 27 months as determined by the compensation committee) under which participating employees can elect to have up to 20% of their total compensation withheld and applied to the purchase of common shares of the Company at the end of the period. Unless otherwise determined by the compensation committee before an offering period commences, (1) the purchase price will be 85% of the fair market value of the common shares at the beginning of the offering period; and (2) the maximum number of common shares that may be purchased by an employee in any offering period is 3,000 shares. In addition, applicable Code limitations specify, in general, that a participant's right to purchase stock under the ESPP cannot accumulate at a rate in excess of $25,000 (based on the value at the beginning of the applicable offering periods) per calendar year. The Company recorded $0.6 million of share-based compensation expense, net of a tax benefit of $0.2 million, related to the ESPP for 2010, compared to $0.5 million, net of a tax benefit of $0.1 million, for 2009 and $0.6 million, net of a tax benefit of $0.2 million, for 2008.

        On May 11, 2007, following shareholder approval, the Company adopted the 2007 Long Term Incentive and Share Award Plan (the "2007 Plan"). The 2007 Plan is intended to provide for competitive compensation opportunities, to encourage long-term service, to recognize individual contributions and reward achievement of performance goals and to promote the creation of long-term value for shareholders by aligning the interests of such persons with those of shareholders. The 2007 Plan provides for the grant to eligible employees and directors stock options, stock appreciation rights, restricted shares, restricted share units payable in common shares or cash, share awards in lieu of cash awards, dividend equivalents and other share-based awards. The 2007 Plan also provides the Company's non-employee directors with the opportunity to receive the annual retainer fee for Board service in common shares.

        Following shareholder approval on May 11, 2007, the 2005 Long Term Incentive and Share Award Plan (the "2005 Plan"), whose terms are substantially similar to the 2007 Plan, was merged into the 2007 Plan. As of the effective date, the 1,533,527 remaining shares available for issuance under the 2005 Plan were transferred into the 2007 Plan. No additional grants will be made thereafter under the 2005 Plan.

183


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

15. Share Capital (Continued)

        Grants which were outstanding at May 11, 2007 under the 2005 Plan will continue in accordance with their original terms (subject to such amendments as the compensation committee determines appropriate, consistent with the terms of the 2005 Plan), and the shares with respect to such outstanding grants will be issued or transferred under the 2007 Plan. The number of common shares reserved for issuance under the 2007 Plan, subject to anti-dilution adjustments in the event of certain changes in the Company's capital structure, is equal to the sum of (i) 2,500,000 and (ii) the number of common shares subject to outstanding grants under the 2005 Plan as of the effective date as well as common shares remaining available for issuance under the 2005 Plan but not subject to previously exercised or vested grants as of the effective date, except that no more than 2,000,000 common shares may be issued as incentive stock options under Section 422 of the Code. At December 31, 2010, approximately 1,527,988 shares are available for grant under the 2007 Plan.

        In June 2002, following shareholder approval, the Company adopted the 2002 Long Term Incentive and Share Award Plan (the "2002 Plan"). An aggregate of 3,165,830 Common Shares has been reserved for issuance under the 2002 Plan. The 2002 Plan provides for the grant to eligible employees and directors of stock options, stock appreciation rights, restricted shares, restricted share units payable in Common Shares or cash, share awards in lieu of cash awards, dividend equivalents and other share-based awards. The 2002 Plan provides the Company's non-employee directors with the opportunity to receive their annual retainer fee for service as a director in Common Shares. As of December 31, 2010, approximately 18,584 shares are available for grant under the 2002 Plan.

        With respect to certain subsidiaries, the Company may withhold, or require a participant to remit to the Company, an amount sufficient to satisfy any federal, state or local withholding tax requirements associated with awards under the Company's share award plans. This includes the authority to withhold or receive shares or other property and to make cash payments in respect thereof.

        The Company generally issues stock options and stock appreciation rights to eligible employees, with exercise prices equal to the fair market values of the Company's Common Shares on the grant dates. Such grants generally vest over a three year period with one-third vesting on the first, second and third anniversaries of the grant date. Option awards have a 10 year contractual life. Refer to Note 2(l) for details related to the Company's accounting for stock options.

        The Company recorded after-tax share-based compensation expense of $6.6 million related to stock option awards for 2010, net of a tax benefit of $1.4 million, compared to $4.8 million related to stock option awards for 2009, net of a tax benefit of $1.3 million, and $7.2 million related to stock option awards for 2008, net of a tax benefit of $2.1 million. As of December 31, 2010, there was approximately $6.5 million of unrecognized compensation cost related to nonvested stock options. Such cost is expected to be recognized over a weighted average period of 1.5 years.

184


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

15. Share Capital (Continued)

        For purposes of determining estimated market value, the Company has computed the estimated market values of share-based compensation related to stock options using the Black-Scholes option valuation model and has applied the assumptions set forth in the following table. As described above, stock options generally vest over a three year period with one-third vesting on the first, second and third anniversaries of the grant date. The expected life assumption (i.e., the estimated period of time between the date an option is granted and the date the option is exercised) was based on an expected term analysis which incorporated the Company's historical share option exercise experience. The Company based its estimate of expected volatility for options granted during 2010 on daily historical trading data of its common shares from September 20, 2002, the date marking the completion of the Company's transition as a worldwide insurance and reinsurance company. For options granted during 2009 and 2008, the Company based its volatility estimate under the same method used for 2010, using the period from September 20, 2002 through the last day of the applicable period.

 
  Year Ended December 31,  
 
  2010   2009   2008  

Dividend yield

    0.0 %   0.0 %   0.0 %

Expected volatility

    25.5 %   26.2 %   20.4 %

Risk free interest rate

    2.7 %   2.6 %   3.4 %

Expected option life

    5.9 years     5.8 years     5.7 years  

        The Black-Scholes option pricing model requires the input of highly subjective assumptions. Because the Company's employee stock options have characteristics significantly different from those of traded options, and because changes in the subjective input assumptions can materially affect the fair value estimate, in management's opinion, the existing models may not provide a reliable single measure of the fair value of its employee stock options. In addition, management will continue to assess the assumptions and methodologies used to calculate estimated fair value of share-based compensation. Circumstances may change and additional data may become available over time, which could result in changes to these assumptions and methodologies, and which could materially impact the Company's fair value determination.

        A summary of option activity under the Company's Long Term Incentive and Share Award Plans during 2010 is presented below:

 
  Year Ended December 31, 2010  
 
  Number of
Options
  Weighted Average
Exercise Price
 

Outstanding, beginning of year

    5,016,104   $ 38.03  

Granted

    362,170   $ 74.87  

Exercised

    (1,270,466 ) $ 29.61  

Forfeited or expired

    (23,952 ) $ 66.09  
             

Outstanding, end of period

    4,083,856   $ 43.75  
             

Exercisable, end of period

    3,468,425   $ 39.53  

        The weighted average grant-date fair value of options granted during 2010, 2009 and 2008 was $22.90, $17.68 and $19.07, respectively. The aggregate intrinsic value of options exercised during 2010, 2009 and 2008 was approximately $61.7 million, $20.2 million, and $22.6 million, respectively and

185


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

15. Share Capital (Continued)


represents the difference between the exercise price of the option and the closing market price of the Company's common shares on the exercise dates. Shares issued upon exercise of stock options were from the Company's authorized but unissued share capital pool.

        The aggregate intrinsic value of the Company's outstanding and exercisable stock options at December 31, 2010 was $180.9 million and $168.3 million, respectively. The weighted average remaining contractual life of the Company's outstanding and exercisable stock options at December 31, 2010 was 4.1 years and 3.3 years, respectively. During 2010, the Company received proceeds of $28.9 million from the exercise of stock options and recognized a tax benefit of $10.2 million from the exercise of such options.

        The Company also issues restricted share and unit awards to eligible employees and directors, for which the fair value is equal to the fair market values of the Company's Common Shares on the grant dates. Compensation equal to the fair value of the shares at the measurement date is amortized and charged to income over the requisite service period, which is generally the vesting period unless the employee is retirement eligible. Restricted share and unit awards generally vest over a three year period with one-third vesting on the first, second and third anniversaries of the grant date. Refer to Note 2(l) for details related to the Company's accounting for restricted share and unit awards.

        The Company recorded $17.3 million of share-based compensation expense, net of a tax benefit of $5.0 million, related to restricted share and unit awards for 2010, compared to $15.8 million, net of a tax benefit of $4.5 million, for 2009 and $16.0 million, net of a tax benefit of $4.1 million, for 2008. As of December 31, 2010, there were $16.7 million and $4.5 million, respectively, of unrecognized compensation costs related to unvested restricted share and unit awards which are expected to be recognized over a weighted average period of 1.7 years and 0.9 years, respectively.

        A summary of restricted share and unit activity under the Company's Long Term Incentive and Share Award Plans for 2010 is presented below:

 
  Year Ended
December 31, 2010
 
 
  Restricted
Common
Shares
  Restricted
Unit
Awards
 

Non-Vested Shares:

             

Unvested balance, beginning of year

    429,055     261,012  

Granted

    273,765     32,304  

Vested

    (225,190 )   (113,645 )

Forfeited

    (18,349 )   (6,493 )
           

Unvested balance, end of year

    459,281     173,178  
           

Weighted Average Grant Date Fair Value:

             

Unvested balance, beginning of year

  $ 59.82      

Granted

  $ 75.08      

Vested

  $ 62.52      

Forfeited

  $ 65.31      

Unvested balance, end of year

  $ 67.36      

186


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

15. Share Capital (Continued)

        During 2010, 2009 and 2008, the Company granted an aggregate of 306,069, 380,123 and 348,339 restricted share and restricted unit awards, respectively, with weighted average grant date fair values of $75.16, $57.79 and $69.25, respectively. During 2010, 2009 and 2008, the aggregate fair value of restricted shares and units that vested was $25.1 million, $20.8 million and $15.3 million, respectively. The aggregate intrinsic value of restricted units outstanding and exercisable at December 31, 2010 was $15.2 million and $2.3 million, respectively.

        The issuance of share-based awards and amortization thereon has no effect on the Company's consolidated shareholders' equity.

        During 2006, ACGL completed two public offerings of non-cumulative preferred shares ("Preferred Shares"). On February 1, 2006, $200.0 million principal amount of 8.0% series A non-cumulative preferred shares ("Series A Preferred Shares") were issued with net proceeds of $193.5 million and, on May 24, 2006, $125.0 million principal amount of 7.875% series B non-cumulative preferred shares ("Series B Preferred Shares") were issued with net proceeds of $120.9 million. The net proceeds of the offerings were used to support the underwriting activities of ACGL's insurance and reinsurance subsidiaries. ACGL has the right to redeem all or a portion of each series of Preferred Shares at a redemption price of $25.00 per share on or after (1) February 1, 2011 for the Series A Preferred Shares and (2) May 15, 2011 for the Series B Preferred Shares. Dividends on the Preferred Shares are non-cumulative. Consequently, in the event dividends are not declared on the Preferred Shares for any dividend period, holders of Preferred Shares will not be entitled to receive a dividend for such period, and such undeclared dividend will not accrue and will not be payable. Holders of Preferred Shares will be entitled to receive dividend payments only when, as and if declared by ACGL's board of directors or a duly authorized committee of the board of directors. Any such dividends will be payable from the date of original issue on a non-cumulative basis, quarterly in arrears. To the extent declared, these dividends will accumulate, with respect to each dividend period, in an amount per share equal to 8.0% of the $25.00 liquidation preference per annum for the Series A Preferred Shares and 7.875% of the $25.00 liquidation preference per annum for the Series B Preferred Shares. The Company paid $25.8 million in 2010, 2009 and 2008 to holders of the Preferred Shares. At December 31, 2010, the Company had declared an aggregate of $3.3 million of dividends to be paid to holders of the Preferred Shares. Certain executive officers and directors of the Company own less than 1% of the aggregate outstanding Preferred Shares.

16. Retirement Plans

        For purposes of providing employees with retirement benefits, the Company maintains defined contribution retirement plans. Contributions are based on the participants' eligible compensation. For 2010, 2009 and 2008, the Company expensed approximately $18.1 million, $16.8 million and $19.6 million, respectively, related to these retirement plans.

17. Legal Proceedings

        The Company, in common with the insurance industry in general, is subject to litigation and arbitration in the normal course of its business. As of December 31, 2010, the Company was not a

187


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

17. Legal Proceedings (Continued)


party to any litigation or arbitration which is expected by management to have a material adverse effect on the Company's results of operations and financial condition and liquidity.

18. Statutory Information

        The Company's insurance and reinsurance subsidiaries are subject to insurance and/or reinsurance laws and regulations in the jurisdictions in which they operate. These regulations include certain restrictions on the amount of dividends or other distributions available to shareholders without prior approval of the insurance regulatory authorities.

        The statutory capital and surplus for the Company's principal operating subsidiaries at December 31, 2010 and 2009 was as follows:

 
  Year Ended December 31,  
 
  2010   2009  

Statutory capital and surplus(1):

             

Bermuda

  $ 4,441,225   $ 4,260,704  

Ireland

  $ 418,834   $ 407,809  

United States

  $ 870,600   $ 850,473  

United Kingdom

  $ 99,901   $ 97,867  

(1)
Such amounts include ownership interests in affiliated insurance and reinsurance subsidiaries.

        The statutory net income (loss) for the Company's principal operating subsidiaries for 2010, 2009 and 2008 was as follows:

 
  Year Ended December 31,  
 
  2010   2009   2008  

Statutory net income (loss):

                   

Bermuda

  $ 896,328   $ 940,313   $ 349,834  

Ireland

  $ 11,457   $ 438   $ (1,217 )

United States

  $ 22,235   $ 74,470   $ 46,227  

United Kingdom

  $ 3,707   $ (1,371 ) $ 2,855  

        Statutory accounting differs from U.S. GAAP in the reporting of certain items such as acquisition costs, deferred income taxes and investments.

        Under The Insurance Act 1978, as amended, and related regulations of Bermuda (the "Insurance Act"), Arch Re Bermuda, the Company's Bermuda reinsurance and insurance subsidiary, is registered as a Class 4 insurer and long-term insurer and is required to annually prepare and file statutory financial statements and a statutory financial return with the Bermuda Monetary Authority ("BMA"). The Insurance Act also requires Arch Re Bermuda to maintain minimum share capital of $1.0 million, to meet minimum liquidity ratios and a minimum solvency margin equal to the greatest of (A) $100 million, (B) 50% of net premiums written (being gross premiums written less any premiums

188


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

18. Statutory Information (Continued)

ceded by Arch Re Bermuda but Arch Re Bermuda may not deduct more than 25% of gross premiums when computing net premiums written), and (C) 15% of net discounted aggregated losses and loss expense provisions and other insurance reserves. At December 31, 2010 and 2009, such requirements were met.

        Arch Re Bermuda is also required to file a regulatory risk based capital model that measures risks and determines enhanced capital requirements and a target capital level (defined as 120% of the enhanced capital requirements). In addition, all Class 4 Bermuda insurers must prepare and file with the BMA audited GAAP basis annual financial statements, which must be made publicly available. Declarations of dividends from retained earnings and distributions from additional paid-in-capital are subject to these requirements being met. For all applicable periods presented herein, Arch Re Bermuda satisfied these requirements.

        The Bermuda Companies Act 1981 (the "Companies Act") limits Arch Re Bermuda's ability to pay dividends and distributions to shareholders if there are reasonable grounds for believing that: (a) Arch Re Bermuda is, or would after the payment be, unable to pay its liabilities as they become due; or (b) the realizable value of Arch Re Bermuda's assets would thereby be less than the aggregate of its liabilities and its issued share capital and share premium accounts. Under the Insurance Act, Arch Re Bermuda is restricted with respect to the payment of dividends. Arch Re Bermuda is prohibited from declaring or paying in any financial year dividends of more than 25% of its total statutory capital and surplus (as shown on its previous financial year's statutory balance sheet) unless it files, at least seven days before payment of such dividends, with the Bermuda Monetary Authority an affidavit stating that it will continue to meet the required margins. In addition, Arch Re Bermuda is prohibited, without prior approval of the Bermuda Monetary Authority, from reducing by 15% or more its total statutory capital, as set out in its previous year's statutory financial statements. Accordingly, Arch Re Bermuda can pay approximately $1.11 billion to ACGL during 2011 without providing an affidavit to the Bermuda Monetary Authority, as discussed above.

        The Company's Ireland subsidiary, Arch Re Europe, was licensed and authorized by the Central Bank of Ireland ("CBOI"), which replaced the Irish Financial Services Regulatory Authority, as a non-life reinsurer in October 2008 and as a life reinsurer in November 2009. Irish authorized reinsurers, such as Arch Re Europe, are also subject to the general body of Irish laws and regulations including the provisions of the Companies Acts 1963-2006. Arch Re Europe must file and submit its annual audited financial statements in accordance with Irish generally accepted accounting principles and related reports to the Registrar of Companies ("Registrar") under the Companies Acts 1963-2006 together with an annual return of certain core corporate information. Changes to core corporate information during the year must also be notified to the Registrar. These requirements are in addition to the regulatory returns required to be filed annually with the CBOI. Arch Re Europe is required to maintain reserves, particularly in respect of underwriting liabilities and a solvency margin as provided for in the European Communities (Reinsurance) Regulations, 2006, related guidance and the European Communities Insurance Accounts Regulations, 1996. Assets constituting statutory reserves must comply with certain principles including obligations to secure sufficiency, liquidity, security, quality, profitability and currency matching of investments. Statutory reserves must be actuarially certified annually.

189


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

18. Statutory Information (Continued)

        Under Irish company law, Arch Re Europe is permitted to make distributions only out of profits available for distribution. A company's profits available for distribution are its accumulated, realized profits, so far as not previously utilized by distribution or capitalization, less its accumulated, realized losses, so far as not previously written off in a reduction or reorganization of capital duly made. Further, the CBOI has powers to intervene if a dividend payment were to lead to a breach of regulatory capital requirements.

        The Company's U.S. insurance and reinsurance subsidiaries file financial statements prepared in accordance with statutory accounting practices prescribed or permitted by insurance regulators. Statutory net income and statutory surplus, as reported to the insurance regulatory authorities, differ in certain respects from the amounts prepared in accordance with GAAP. The main differences between statutory net income and GAAP net income relate to deferred acquisition costs and deferred income taxes. In addition to deferred acquisition costs and deferred income tax assets, other differences between statutory surplus and GAAP shareholder's equity are unrealized appreciation or decline in value of investments and non-admitted assets.

        The Company's U.S. insurance and reinsurance subsidiaries are subject to insurance laws and regulations in the jurisdictions in which they operate. The ability of the Company's regulated insurance subsidiaries to pay dividends or make distributions is dependent on their ability to meet applicable regulatory standards. These regulations include restrictions that limit the amount of dividends or other distributions, such as loans or cash advances, available to shareholders without prior approval of the insurance regulatory authorities. Dividends or distributions, if any, made by the Company's U.S. regulated insurance and reinsurance subsidiaries to non-insurance affiliates would result in an increase in available capital at Arch-U.S., the Company's U.S. holding company, which is owned by Arch Re Europe and a related holding company, which are subsidiaries of Arch Re Bermuda.

        The Company's European insurance operations are conducted on two platforms: Arch Insurance Company Europe and Arch Syndicate 2012 (collectively, the insurance operations are referred to as "Arch Insurance Europe"). Arch Insurance Company Europe was licensed and authorized by the Financial Services Authority ("FSA") to underwrite all classes of general insurance in the U.K. in May 2004. In April 2009, the Company received approval in principle from the Lloyd's Franchise Board and the FSA to establish a managing agent and syndicate at Lloyd's of London. Arch Underwriting at Lloyd's Ltd is the managing agent of Arch Syndicate 2012 and is responsible for the daily management of Arch Syndicate 2012. The operations of AUAL and related Arch Syndicate 2012 and its corporate member, Arch Syndicate Investments Ltd, are subject to the byelaws and regulations made by (or on behalf of) the Council of Lloyd's, and requirements made under those byelaws.

        Arch Insurance Europe must file annual audited financial statements in accordance with International Financial Reporting Standards with Companies House under the Companies Act 1985 (as amended). In addition, Arch Insurance Europe is required to file regulatory returns with the FSA, which regulates insurance and reinsurance companies operating from the U.K. The financial statements required to be submitted to Companies House form the basis for the regulatory return required to be submitted to the FSA. The FSA's capital adequacy and solvency regulations require a margin of capital

190


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

18. Statutory Information (Continued)


to be determined by Arch Insurance Europe's own individual capital assessment to value capital adequacy. The model Arch Insurance Europe uses to determine the capital requirement is reviewed and approved by the FSA who then issue an individual capital guidance.

        Under U.K. law, all U.K. companies are restricted from declaring a dividend to their shareholders unless they have "profits available for distribution." The calculation as to whether a company has sufficient profits is based on its accumulated realized profits minus its accumulated realized losses. U.K. insurance regulatory laws do not prohibit the payment of dividends, but the FSA requires that insurance companies maintain certain solvency margins and may restrict the payment of a dividend by Arch Insurance Europe. Dividends or distributions, if any, made by Arch Insurance Europe would result in an increase in available capital at Arch Re Europe, a subsidiary of Arch Re Bermuda.

191


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

19. Unaudited Quarterly Financial Information

 
  Fourth
Quarter
  Third
Quarter
  Second
Quarter
  First
Quarter
 

2010 Income Statement Data:

                         

Net premiums written

  $ 482,911   $ 636,117   $ 624,258   $ 767,754  
                   

Net premiums earned

  $ 632,146   $ 627,409   $ 623,011   $ 669,917  

Fee income

    2,814     874     883     794  

Other income

    6,165     1,840     4,528     5,978  

Net investment income

    90,601     90,768     90,537     92,972  

Equity in net income (loss) of investment funds accounted for using the equity method

    22,990     9,708     (348 )   29,050  

Net realized gains (losses)

    74,027     68,828     62,114     47,782  

Net impairment losses recognized in earnings

    (3,230 )   (2,075 )   (4,410 )   (1,606 )

Losses and loss adjustment expenses

    (367,326 )   (359,193 )   (363,145 )   (428,051 )

Acquisition expenses

    (104,824 )   (111,279 )   (107,475 )   (117,624 )

Other operating expenses

    (121,335 )   (103,121 )   (101,533 )   (106,806 )

Interest expense

    (7,460 )   (7,371 )   (7,916 )   (7,260 )

Net foreign exchange gains (losses)

    6,039     (65,157 )   48,625     38,601  

Income tax expense

    3,505     (3,200 )   (1,420 )   (6,753 )
                   

Net income

    234,112     148,031     243,451     216,994  

Preferred dividends

    (6,461 )   (6,461 )   (6,461 )   (6,461 )
                   

Net income available to common shareholders

  $ 227,651   $ 141,570   $ 236,990   $ 210,533  
                   

Net income per common share data

                         
 

Basic

  $ 4.77   $ 2.89   $ 4.65   $ 3.97  
 

Diluted

  $ 4.54   $ 2.77   $ 4.45   $ 3.79  

2009 Income Statement Data:

                         

Net premiums written

  $ 519,087   $ 727,308   $ 693,854   $ 822,863  
                   

Net premiums earned

  $ 708,538   $ 734,385   $ 699,258   $ 700,564  

Fee income

    894     826     817     925  

Other income

    5,428     5,687     4,950     3,951  

Net investment income

    93,551     100,213     100,485     95,882  

Equity in net income (loss) of investment funds accounted for using the equity method

    32,391     69,119     75,890     (9,581 )

Net realized gains (losses)

    89,901     70,638     (11,793 )   (5,164 )

Net impairment losses recognized in earnings

    (4,493 )   (4,643 )   (20,863 )   (36,134 )

Losses and loss adjustment expenses

    (410,360 )   (444,914 )   (398,858 )   (400,542 )

Acquisition expenses

    (120,549 )   (122,739 )   (123,814 )   (126,458 )

Other operating expenses

    (105,985 )   (99,743 )   (99,294 )   (87,116 )

Interest expense

    (7,015 )   (6,001 )   (5,712 )   (5,712 )

Net foreign exchange gains (losses)

    9,051     (19,755 )   (53,658 )   25,205  

Income tax expense

    (195 )   (2,205 )   (8,818 )   (9,490 )
                   

Net income

    291,157     280,868     158,590     146,330  

Preferred dividends

    (6,461 )   (6,461 )   (6,461 )   (6,461 )
                   

Net income available to common shareholders

  $ 284,696   $ 274,407   $ 152,129   $ 139,869  
                   

Net income per common share data

                         
 

Basic

  $ 4.96   $ 4.56   $ 2.52   $ 2.32  
 

Diluted

  $ 4.75   $ 4.39   $ 2.43   $ 2.24  

192


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

NOTES TO CONSOLIDATED FINANCIAL STATEMENTS (Continued)

20. Subsequent Events

        The Company's 2011 first quarter results will be impacted by the Australian flooding and Cyclone Yasi that occurred in Australia in January 2011. Although it is early in the estimation process, the Company's preliminary estimate of losses for the 2011 first quarter events is in the range of $30 million to $60 million, net of reinsurance and reinstatement premiums. The Company's preliminary estimates for the Australian floods and Cyclone Yasi are based on currently available information derived from modeling techniques, industry assessments of exposure, preliminary claims information obtained from the Company's clients and brokers to date and a review of in-force contracts. The Company's actual losses from these events may vary materially from the estimates due to the inherent uncertainties in making such determinations resulting from several factors, including the preliminary nature of available information, the potential inaccuracies and inadequacies in the data provided by clients and brokers, the modeling techniques and the application of such techniques, the contingent nature of business interruption exposures, the effects of any resultant demand surge on claims activity and attendant coverage issues. In addition, actual losses may increase if the Company's reinsurers fail to meet their obligations to the Company or the reinsurance protections purchased by the Company are exhausted or are otherwise unavailable.

        On February 22, 2011, there was a major earthquake in southern New Zealand. The Company provides property and casualty coverage in New Zealand. Due to the recentness of this event, the Company is unable to estimate the amount of loss at this time; however, the Company anticipates that the loss will adversely impact the first quarter 2011 financial results, but will not have a material adverse effect on its financial condition.

        From January 1 to February 24, 2011, the Company repurchased 1.7 million common shares for an aggregate purchase price of $145.2 million. In February 2011, the board of directors of ACGL approved an investment of up to $1.0 billion in ACGL's common shares through December 31, 2012. Including the remaining amount available under the previous authorization, $1.08 billion of repurchases were available under the share repurchase program at February 24, 2011.

193


Table of Contents

ITEM 9.    CHANGES IN AND DISAGREEMENTS WITH ACCOUNTANTS ON ACCOUNTING AND FINANCIAL DISCLOSURE

        None.

ITEM 9A.    CONTROLS AND PROCEDURES

Evaluation of Disclosure Controls and Procedures

        In connection with the filing of this Form 10-K, our management, including the Chief Executive Officer and Chief Financial Officer, conducted an evaluation, as of December 31, 2010, for the purposes set forth in the applicable rules under the Securities and Exchange Act of 1934, as amended (the "Exchange Act"). Based on that evaluation, the Chief Executive Officer and Chief Financial Officer concluded that the disclosure controls and procedures are effective.

        We continue to enhance our operating procedures and internal controls (including the timely and successful implementation of our information technology initiatives, which include the implementation of improved computerized systems and programs to replace and support manual systems, and including controls over financial reporting) to effectively support our business and our regulatory and reporting requirements. Our management does not expect that our disclosure controls or our internal controls will prevent all errors and all fraud. A control system, no matter how well conceived and operated, can provide only reasonable, not absolute, assurance that the objectives of the control system are met. Further, the design of a control system must reflect the fact that there are resource constraints, and the benefits of controls must be considered relative to their costs. As a result of the inherent limitations in all control systems, no evaluation of controls can provide absolute assurance that all control issues and instances of fraud, if any, within the company have been detected. These inherent limitations include the realities that judgments in decision-making can be faulty, and that breakdowns can occur because of simple error or mistake. Additionally, controls can be circumvented by the individual acts of some persons or by collusion of two or more people. The design of any system of controls also is based in part upon certain assumptions about the likelihood of future events, and there can be no assurance that any design will succeed in achieving its stated goals under all potential future conditions; over time, controls may become inadequate because of changes in conditions, or the degree of compliance with the policies or procedures may deteriorate. As a result of the inherent limitations in a cost-effective control system, misstatement due to error or fraud may occur and not be detected. Accordingly, our disclosure controls and procedures are designed to provide reasonable, not absolute, assurance that the disclosure controls and procedures are met.

        Our management is responsible for establishing and maintaining adequate internal control over financial reporting, as defined in Rules 13a-15(f) and 15d-15(f) under the Exchange Act. Our management assessed the effectiveness of our internal control over financial reporting as of December 31, 2010. In making this assessment, management used the criteria set forth by the Committee of Sponsoring Organizations (COSO) of the Treadway Commission in Internal Control—Integrated Framework.

        Based on our assessment, management determined that, as of December 31, 2010, our internal control over financial reporting was effective. The effectiveness of our internal control over financial reporting as of December 31, 2010 has been audited by PricewaterhouseCoopers LLP, an independent registered public accounting firm, as stated in their report which appears on page F-2.

194


Table of Contents

        There have been no changes in internal control over financial reporting that occurred in connection with our evaluation required pursuant to Rules 13a-15 and 15d-15 under the Exchange Act during the fiscal quarter ended December 31, 2010 that have materially affected, or are reasonably likely to materially affect, internal control over financial reporting.

ITEM 9B.    OTHER INFORMATION

        None.


PART III

ITEM 10.    DIRECTORS, EXECUTIVE OFFICERS AND CORPORATE GOVERNANCE

        The information required by this item is incorporated by reference from the information to be included in our definitive proxy statement ("Proxy Statement") for our annual meeting of shareholders to be held in 2011, which we intend to file with the SEC pursuant to Regulation 14A. Copies of our code of ethics applicable to our chief executive officer, chief financial officer and principal accounting officer or controller are available free of charge to investors upon written request addressed to the attention of ACGL's corporate secretary, Wessex House, 45 Reid Street, Hamilton HM 12, Bermuda. In addition, our code of ethics and certain other basic corporate documents, including the charters of our audit committee, compensation committee and nominating committee are posted on our website. If any substantive amendments are made to the code of ethics or if there is a grant of a waiver, including any implicit waiver, we will disclose the nature of such amendment or waiver on our website or in a report on Form 8-K, to the extent required by applicable law or the rules and regulations of any exchange applicable to us. Our website address is intended to be an inactive, textual reference only and none of the material on our website is incorporated by reference into this report.

ITEM 11.    EXECUTIVE COMPENSATION

        The information required by this item is incorporated by reference from the information to be included in the Proxy Statement to be filed pursuant to Regulation 14A with the SEC before April 30, 2011, which Proxy Statement is incorporated by reference.

ITEM 12.    SECURITY OWNERSHIP OF CERTAIN BENEFICIAL OWNERS AND MANAGEMENT AND RELATED STOCKHOLDER MATTERS

        Other than the information set forth below, the information required by this item is incorporated by reference from the information to be included in the Proxy Statement to be filed pursuant to Regulation 14A with the SEC before April 30, 2011, which Proxy Statement is incorporated by reference.

        SECURITIES AUTHORIZED FOR ISSUANCE UNDER EQUITY COMPENSATION PLANS

        In October 2001, we adopted the Long Term Incentive Plan for New Employees ("New Employee Plan") to provide incentives to attract and motivate new hires in connection with the launch of our underwriting initiative. A total of 3,634,170 of such share awards were granted under the New Employee Plan. The New Employee Plan was not approved by our shareholders and was subsequently terminated in 2002, although a total of 750,973 share awards remain outstanding under the New Employee Plan as of December 31, 2010. For information about our equity compensation plans, see note 15, "Share Capital," of the notes accompanying our consolidated financial statements.

195


Table of Contents

        The following information is as of December 31, 2010:

Plan category
  Number of
securities to be
issued upon
exercise of
outstanding
options(1),
warrants and
rights
(a)
  Weighted-
average exercise
price of
outstanding
options(1),
warrants and
rights
(b)
  Number of securities
remaining available
for future issuance
under equity
compensation plans
(excluding securities
reflected in column (a))

(c)
 

Equity compensation plans approved by security holders

    3,506,061   $ 46.18     1,546,572  

Equity compensation plans not approved by security holders

    750,973   $ 22.29      
               

Total

    4,257,034   $ 41.97     1,546,572  
                 

(1)
Includes all vested and unvested options outstanding of 4,083,856 and restricted stock units outstanding of 173,178.

ITEM 13.    CERTAIN RELATIONSHIPS AND RELATED TRANSACTIONS, AND DIRECTOR INDEPENDENCE

        The information required by this item is incorporated by reference from the information to be included in the Proxy Statement to be filed pursuant to Regulation 14A with the SEC before April 30, 2011, which Proxy Statement is incorporated by reference.

ITEM 14.    PRINCIPAL ACCOUNTANT FEES AND SERVICES

        The information required by this item is incorporated by reference from the information to be included in our Proxy Statement to be filed pursuant to Regulation 14A with the SEC before April 30, 2011, which Proxy Statement is incorporated by reference.

196


Table of Contents

PART IV

ITEM 15.    EXHIBITS AND FINANCIAL STATEMENT SCHEDULES

(a)
Financial Statements, Financial Statement Schedules and Exhibits.

1.
Financial Statements

 
   
  Page No.  

I.

 

Summary of Investments Other Than Investments in Related Parties
At December 31, 2010

    208  

II.

 

Condensed Financial Information of Registrant

   
209
 

III.

 

Supplementary Insurance Information
For the years ended ended December 31, 2010 and 2009 and 2008

   
212
 

IV.

 

Reinsurance
For the years ended ended December 31, 2010 and 2009 and 2008

   
213
 

VI.

 

Supplementary Information for Property and Casualty Insurance Underwriters
For the years ended ended December 31, 2010 and 2009 and 2008

   
214
 

        Schedules other than those listed above are omitted for the reason that they are not applicable.

Exhibit Number   Description
  3.1   Memorandum of Association of Arch Capital Group Ltd. ("ACGL")(l)

 

3.2

 

Bye-Laws of ACGL (filed herewith)

 

3.3

 

ACGL Certificate of Deposit (filed herewith)

 

4.1.1

 

Certificate of Designations of Series A Non-Cumulative Preferred Shares(gg)

 

4.1.2

 

Certificate of Designations of Series B Non-Cumulative Preferred Shares(kk)

 

4.2.1

 

Specimen Common Share Certificate(n)

 

4.2.2

 

Specimen Series A Non-Cumulative Preferred Share Certificate(gg)

 

4.2.3

 

Specimen Series B Non-Cumulative Preferred Share Certificate(kk)

 

4.3

 

Indenture and First Supplemental Indenture, dated as of May 4, 2004, between ACGL and JPMorgan Chase Bank, N.A. (formerly JPMorgan Chase Bank) ("JPMCB")(w)

 

10.1

 

Lease Agreement, dated as of July 22, 2008, between M-C Plaza II & II L.L.C. and Arch Insurance(ww)

 

10.2.1

 

ACGL 1995 Long Term Incentive and Share Award Plan ("1995 Stock Plan")(b)†

 

10.2.2

 

First Amendment to the 1995 Stock Plan(c)†

 

10.3

 

ACGL 1999 Long Term Incentive and Share Award Plan(g)†

 

10.4.1

 

ACGL Long Term Incentive Plan for New Employees ("2001 Plan")(p)†

197


Table of Contents

Exhibit Number   Description
  10.4.2   First Amendment to the 2001 Plan(xx)†

 

10.5.1

 

ACGL 2002 Long Term Incentive and Share Award Plan ("2002 Plan")(s)†

 

10.5.2

 

First Amendment to the 2002 Plan(u)†

 

10.5.3

 

Second Amendment to the 2002 Plan(ww)†

 

10.6

 

Second Amended and Restated ACGL Incentive Compensation Plan(ww)†

 

10.7

 

ACGL 2007 Long Term Incentive and Share Award Plan(mm)†

 

10.8.1

 

ACGL 2007 Employee Share Purchase Plan ("2007 ESPP")(mm)†

 

10.8.2

 

Amendment to ACGL 2007 ESPP, dated as of November 7, 2007(qq)†

 

10.9.1

 

Restricted Share Agreements with ACGL—Executive Officers of ACGL—September 19, 1995 grants(d)†

 

10.9.2

 

Restricted Share Agreements with ACGL—Marc Grandisson—October 23, 2001 grant(o), February 26, 2004 grant(aa) September 22, 2004 grant(x) and November 15, 2005 grant(hh) †

 

10.9.3

 

Restricted Share Agreement with ACGL—W. Preston Hutchings—July 1, 2005 grant(hh)†

 

10.9.4

 

Restricted Share Agreements with ACGL—Louis T. Petrillo—January 30, 2001 grant(o), February 20, 2003 grant(v) and September 22, 2004 grant(x)†

 

10.9.5

 

Restricted Share Agreements with ACGL—Constantine Iordanou—January 1, 2002 grant(p), February 26, 2004 grant(aa) and September 22, 2004 grant(x)†

 

10.9.6

 

Restricted Share Agreements with ACGL—John D. Vollaro—January 18, 2002 grant ("January Restricted Share Agreement")(s), February 20, 2003 grant(v), Amendment No. 1 to January Restricted Share Agreement(t) and September 22, 2004 grant(x)†

 

10.9.7

 

Restricted Share Agreement with ACGL substantially in the form signed by Constantine Iordanou, John D. Vollaro and Marc Grandisson—May 11, 2007 grants(qq)†

 

10.9.8

 

Restricted Share Agreement with ACGL substantially in the form signed by W. Preston Hutchings and Louis T. Petrillo—May 11, 2007 grants(qq)†

 

10.9.9

 

Restricted Share Unit Agreement—Constantine Iordanou—February 20, 2003 grant ("February RSU Agreement")(v), First Amendment to February RSU Agreement—December 9, 2008 grant(ww) and Second Amendment to February RSU Agreement—July 9, 2009 grant(zz)†

 

10.9.10

 

Restricted Share Unit Agreement with ACGL substantially in the form signed by each of Constantine Iordanou, John D. Vollaro, Marc Grandisson, W. Preston Hutchings, Mark D. Lyons and Louis T. Petrillo—May 9, 2008 grants(uu)†

 

10.9.11

 

Restricted Share Unit Agreement with ACGL—Mark D. Lyons—May 9, 2008 grant(uu), May 6, 2009 grant(aaa) and May 5, 2010(bbb)†

 

10.9.12

 

Agreement, dated as of September 17, 2003, between ACGL and John D. Vollaro(v)†

 

10.9.13

 

Restricted Share Agreements with ACGL substantially in the form signed by the Non-Employee Directors of ACGL—2003 annual grants(z), 2004 annual grants(y), 2005 annual grants(qq), 2008 annual grants(ww) and 2009 grants(bbb)†

 

10.9.14

 

Restricted Share Agreements with ACGL substantially in the form signed by Constantine Iordanou, John D. Vollaro and Marc Grandisson—February 23, 2006 grants(ll)†

198


Table of Contents

Exhibit Number   Description
  10.9.15   Restricted Share Agreements ACGL substantially in the form signed by W. Preston Hutchings and Louis T. Petrillo—February 23, 2006 grants(ll)†

 

10.9.16

 

Restricted Share Agreement with ACGL—John C.R. Hele—April 1, 2009 grant(xx)†

 

10.9.17

 

Restricted Share Agreements with ACGL substantially in the form signed by each of Constantine Iordanou, John C.R. Hele, John D. Vollaro, Louis T. Petrillo, W. Preston Hutchings and Marc Grandisson—May 6, 2009 grants(aaa)†

 

10.9.18

 

Restricted Share Agreements with ACGL substantially in the form signed by each of Constantine Iordanou, John C.R. Hele, Louis T. Petrillo, W. Preston Hutchings and Marc Grandisson—May 5, 2010 grants(bbb) †

 

10.10.1

 

Stock Option Agreements with ACGL—Executive Officers of ACGL—1995 and 1996 grants(d), 1997 and 1998 grants(f) and 2000 grants(m)†

 

10.10.2

 

Amendments to Stock Option Agreements with ACGL—Executive Officers and Directors of ACGL—May 5, 2000(n)†

 

10.10.3

 

Stock Option Agreements with ACGL—Non-Employee Directors of ACGL—initial grants(f)(i), 1996 and 1997 annual grants(c), 1998 annual grants(e), 1999 annual grants(f), 2000 annual grants(i) and 2001 annual grants(n)†

 

10.10.4

 

Stock Option Agreements with ACGL—Louis T. Petrillo—January 30, 2001 grant(o), October 23, 2001 grant(o) and September 22, 2004 grant(x)(dd)†

 

10.10.5

 

Stock Option Agreements with ACGL—Marc Grandisson—October 23, 2001 grant(o), September 22, 2004 grant(x)(dd) and November 15, 2005(hh)†

 

10.10.6

 

Stock Option Agreement, dated July 1, 2005, between ACGL and W. Preston Hutchings(hh)†

 

10.10.7

 

Stock Option Agreements with ACGL—John M. Pasquesi—October 23, 2001 grant(p)†

 

10.10.8

 

Stock Option Agreements with ACGL—Constantine Iordanou—January 1, 2002 grant(p) and September 22, 2004 grant(x)(ee)†

 

10.10.9

 

Stock Option Agreements with ACGL—John D. Vollaro—January 18, 2002 grant(s) and September 22, 2004 grant(x)(ee)†

 

10.10.10

 

Stock Option Agreements with Constantine Iordanou, John D. Vollaro and Marc Grandisson—February 23, 2006 grants(ll)†

 

10.10.11

 

Stock Option Agreements with W. Preston Hutchings and Louis T. Petrillo—February 23, 2006 grants(ll)†

 

10.10.12

 

Stock Option Agreement with John C.R. Hele—April 1, 2009 grant(xx)†

 

10.11.1

 

Share Appreciation Right Agreement with ACGL substantially in the form signed by Louis T. Petrillo and W. Preston Hutchings—May 11, 2007 grants(qq)†

 

10.11.2

 

Share Appreciation Right Agreement with ACGL substantially in the form signed by Constantine Iordanou, John D. Vollaro and Marc Grandisson—May 11, 2007 grants(qq)†

 

10.11.3

 

Share Appreciation Right Agreement with ACGL substantially in the form signed by each of Constantine Iordanou, John D. Vollaro, Marc Grandisson, W. Preston Hutchings, Mark D. Lyons and Louis T. Petrillo—May 9, 2008 grants(ww)†

199


Table of Contents

Exhibit Number   Description
  10.11.4   Share Appreciation Right Agreement with ACGL substantially in the form signed by each of Constantine Iordanou, John C.R. Hele, Marc Grandisson, W. Preston Hutchings, Mark D. Lyons, John D. Vollaro and Louis T. Petrillo—May 6, 2009 grant(aaa)†

 

10.11.5

 

Share Appreciation Right Agreement with ACGL substantially in the form signed by each of Constantine Iordanou, John C.R. Hele, Marc Grandisson, W. Preston Hutchings, Mark D. Lyons and Louis T. Petrillo—May 5, 2010 grant(bbb)†

 

10.12

 

Employment and Change in Control Agreement, dated as of May 5, 2000, between ACGL and Louis T. Petrillo(k) and Amendment to Change in Control Agreement, dated as of December 31, 2008(ww) †

 

10.13

 

Employment Agreement, dated as of October 23, 2001, among ACGL, Arch Re Bermuda and Marc Grandisson(p), First Amendment to same, dated as of November 16, 2005(hh) and Second Amendment to same, dated as of November 24, 2008(ww)†

 

10.14

 

Employment Letter Agreement, dated as of May 29, 2005, between ACGL and W. Preston Hutchings(ff) and Amendment to same, dated as of May 21, 2008(ss)†

 

10.15

 

Employment Agreement, dated as of November 28, 2007 between ACGL and Constantine Iordanou(pp) and Amendment to same, dated as of December 31, 2008(ww)†

 

10.16

 

Employment Agreement, dated as of October 27, 2008, between ACGL and John D. Vollaro(tt)†

 

10.17

 

Employment Agreement, dated as of October 22, 2008, between ACGL and John C.R. Hele(tt)†

 

10.18

 

Employment Agreement, dated as of August 1, 2006, between Arch Insurance Group Inc. and Mark D. Lyons(ww) and Amendment to same, dated as of November 24, 2008(ww)†

 

10.19

 

Assumption of Change in Control Agreements(n)†

 

10.20

 

ACGL 1995 Employee Stock Purchase Plan(a)†

 

10.21

 

Arch Capital Group (U.S.) Inc. ("Arch U.S.") Executive Supplemental Non-Qualified Savings and Retirement Plan(ww)†

 

10.22

 

Asset Purchase Agreement, dated as of January 10, 2000, by and among Arch U.S., Folksamerica Holding Company, Inc. ("FHC") and Folksamerica(h)

 

10.23

 

Transfer and Assumption Agreement, dated May 5, 2000, between Arch Reinsurance Company (formerly Risk Capital Reinsurance Company) ("Arch Re U.S.") and Folksamerica(j)

 

10.24

 

Escrow Agreement, dated December 28, 2000, by and among ACGL, FHC, Folksamerica and the Escrow Agent(n)

 

10.25

 

Agreement, dated May 5, 2000, by and among Arch U.S., Arch Re U.S., FHC and Folksamerica regarding Aviation Business(l)

 

10.26

 

Agreement and Plan of Merger, dated as of September 25, 2000, by and among Arch U.S., ACGL, The Arch Purpose Trust and Arch Merger Corp.(l)

200


Table of Contents

Exhibit Number   Description
  10.27.1   Second Amended and Restated Credit Agreement, dated as of August 30, 2006 ("Second Amended and Restated Credit Agreement"), by and among ACGL, Arch U.S., Arch Reinsurance Ltd. ("Arch Re Bermuda"), Arch Reinsurance Company, Arch Insurance Company, Arch Specialty Insurance Company, Arch Excess & Surplus Insurance Company, Arch Indemnity Insurance Company (formerly Western Diversified Casualty Insurance Company) and Arch Insurance Company (Europe) Limited, with Barclays Bank Plc, The Bank of New York, Calyon, New York Branch, Citibank, N.A., ING Bank N.V., London Branch, Lloyd's TSB Bank plc, and Wachovia Bank, N.A., as documentation agents, Bank of America, N.A., as syndication agent, JPMCB, as administrative agent, and the lenders named therein(kk)

 

10.27.2

 

First Amendment to the Second Amended and Restated Credit Agreement, dated as of October 1, 2007(nn)

 

10.27.3

 

Second Amendment to the Second Amended and Restated Credit Agreement, dated as of June 26, 2009(yy)

 

10.28

 

Letter of Credit and Reimbursement Agreement, dated as of November 18, 2010 by and among Arch Re Bermuda, ING Bank N.V., London Branch ("ING Bank"), as agent, and ING Bank and Lloyds Bank TSB Bank plc ("Lloyds TSB Bank"), as original lenders, and ING Bank and Lloyds TSB as mandated lead arrangers(ccc)

 

10.29

 

Master Reimbursement Agreement, dated as of November 6, 2009, between Citibank Europe PLC and Arch Re Bermuda(aaa)

 

10.30.1

 

Stock Purchase Agreement, dated as of May 13, 2004, by and among Protective Underwriting Services, Inc. ("Protective"), Arch Capital Holdings Ltd. ("Arch Capital Holdings") and ACGL, as amended by Amendment No. 1, dated as of July 9, 2004, Amendment No. 2, dated as of July 13, 2004, Amendment No. 3, dated as of July 16, 2004 and Amendment No. 4, dated as of July 28, 2004(aa)

 

10.30.2

 

Waiver Letter Agreement related to the Stock Purchase Agreement, dated as of October 5, 2004, signed by Arch Capital Holdings, ACGL and Protective(bb)

 

10.31

 

Joint Venture Agreement, dated as of January 22, 2008, between Gulf Investment Corporation GSC and Arch Re Bermuda relating to Gulf Holdings Limited(rr)(vv)

 

12

 

Statement regarding computation of ratios (filed herewith)

 

21

 

Subsidiaries of Registrant (filed herewith)

 

23

 

Consent of PricewaterhouseCoopers LLP (filed herewith)

 

24

 

Power of Attorney (filed herewith)

 

25

 

Form T-1 Statement of Eligibility of Trustee(cc)

 

31.1

 

Certification of Chief Executive Officer pursuant to Section 302 of the Sarbanes-Oxley Act of 2002 (filed herewith)

 

31.2

 

Certification of Chief Financial Officer pursuant to Section 302 of the Sarbanes-Oxley Act of 2002 (filed herewith)

 

32.1

 

Certification of Chief Executive Officer pursuant to Section 906 of the Sarbanes-Oxley Act of 2002 (filed herewith)

201


Table of Contents

Exhibit Number   Description
  32.2   Certification of Chief Financial Officer pursuant to Section 906 of the Sarbanes-Oxley Act of 2002 (filed herewith)

 

101

 

The following financial information from ACGL's Annual Report on Form 10-K for the year ended December 31, 2010 formatted in XBRL: (i) Consolidated Balance Sheets at December 31, 2010 and 2009; (ii) Consolidated Statements of Income for the years ended December 31, 2010, 2009 and 2008; (iii) Consolidated Statements of Changes in Shareholders' Equity for the years ended December 31, 2010, 2009 and 2008; (iv)  Consolidated Statements of Comprehensive Income for the years ended December 31, 2010, 2009 and 2008; (v) Consolidated Statements of Cash Flows for the years ended December 31, 2010, 2009 and 2008; and (vi) Notes to the Consolidated Financial Statements, tagged as blocks of text (filed herewith)(ddd)

(a)
Filed as an exhibit to our Registration Statement on Form S-8 (No. 33-99974), as filed with the SEC on December 4, 1995, and incorporated by reference.

(b)
Filed as an exhibit to our Annual Report on Form 10-K for the year ended December 31, 1995, as filed with the SEC on March 29, 1996, and incorporated by reference.

(c)
Filed as an exhibit to our Annual Report on Form 10-K for the year ended December 31, 1996, as filed with the SEC on March 31, 1997, and incorporated by reference.

(d)
Filed as an exhibit to our Report on Form 10-Q for the period ended June 30, 1997, as filed with the SEC on August 14, 1997, and incorporated by reference.

(e)
Filed as an exhibit to our Annual Report on Form 10-K for the year ended December 31, 1997, as filed with the SEC on March 27, 1998, and incorporated by reference.

(f)
Filed as an exhibit to our Annual Report on Form 10-K for the year ended December 31, 1998, as filed with the SEC on March 30, 1999, and incorporated by reference.

(g)
Filed as an exhibit to our Definitive Proxy Statement, as filed with the SEC on April 14, 1999, and incorporated by reference.

(h)
Filed as an exhibit to our Report on Form 8-K as filed with the SEC on January 18, 2000, and incorporated by reference.

(i)
Filed as an exhibit to our Annual Report on Form 10-K for the year ended December 31, 1999, as filed with the SEC on March 30, 2000, and incorporated by reference.

(j)
Filed as an exhibit to our Report on Form 8-K, as filed with the SEC on May 19, 2000, and incorporated by reference.

(k)
Filed as an exhibit to our Report on Form 8-K, as filed with the SEC on September 8, 2000, and incorporated by reference.

(l)
Filed as an annex to our Definitive Proxy Statement/Prospectus included in our Registration Statement on Form S-4 (No. 333-45418), as filed with the SEC on September 26, 2000, and incorporated by reference.

(m)
Filed as an exhibit to our Report on Form 10-Q for the period ended September 30, 2000, as filed with the SEC on November 14, 2000, and incorporated by reference.

(n)
Filed as an exhibit to our Annual Report on Form 10-K for the year ended December 31, 2000, as filed with the SEC on April 2, 2001, and incorporated by reference.

202


Table of Contents

(o)
Filed as an exhibit to our Report on Form 10-Q for the period ended September 30, 2001, as filed with the SEC on November 14, 2001, and incorporated by reference.

(p)
Filed as an exhibit to our Report on Form 8-K, as filed with the SEC on January 4, 2002, and incorporated by reference.

(q)
Filed as an exhibit to our Registration Statement on Form S-8 (No. 333-72182), as filed with the SEC on January 8, 2002, and incorporated by reference.

(r)
Filed as an exhibit to our Annual Report on Form 10-K for the year ended December 31, 2001, as filed with the SEC on March 18, 2002, and incorporated by reference.

(s)
Filed as an exhibit to our Report on Form 10-Q for the period ended June 30, 2002, as filed with the SEC on August 14, 2002, and incorporated by reference.

(t)
Filed as an exhibit to our Annual Report on Form 10-K for the year ended December 31, 2002, as filed with the SEC on March 31, 2003, and incorporated by reference.

(u)
Filed as an exhibit to our Report on Form 10-Q for the period ended September 30, 2003, as filed with the SEC on November 12, 2003, and incorporated by reference.

(v)
Filed as an exhibit to our Annual Report on Form 10-K for the year ended December 31, 2003, as filed with the SEC on March 10, 2004, and incorporated by reference.

(w)
Filed as an exhibit to our Report on Form 8-K, as filed with the SEC on May 7, 2004, and incorporated by reference.

(x)
Form of agreement filed as an exhibit to our Report on Form 8-K, as filed with the SEC on September 28, 2004, and incorporated by reference.

(y)
Filed as an exhibit to our Report on Form 8-K, as filed with the SEC on October 6, 2004, and incorporated by reference.

(z)
Filed as an exhibit to our Report on Form 10-Q for the period ended March 31, 2004, as filed with the SEC on May 10, 2004, and incorporated by reference.

(aa)
Filed as an exhibit to our Report on Form 10-Q for the period ended June 30, 2004, as filed with the SEC on August 9, 2004, and incorporated by reference.

(bb)
Filed as an exhibit to our Report on Form 8-K, as filed with the SEC on October 8, 2004, and incorporated by reference.

(cc)
Filed as an exhibit to our Report on Form 8-K, as filed with the SEC on May 3, 2004, and incorporated by reference.

(dd)
Revised form of agreement originally filed as an exhibit to our Report on Form 8-K, as filed with the SEC on September 28, 2004, and incorporated by reference.

(ee)
Revised form of agreement originally filed as an exhibit to our Report on Form 8-K, as filed with the SEC on September 28, 2004, and incorporated by reference.

(ff)
Filed as an exhibit to our Report on Form 8-K, as filed with the SEC on June 9, 2005, and incorporated by reference.

(gg)
Filed as an exhibit to our Report on Form 8-K, as filed with the SEC on February 2, 2006, and incorporated by reference.

(hh)
Filed as an exhibit to our Annual Report on Form 10-K for the year ended December 31, 2005, as filed with the SEC on March 13, 2006, and incorporated by reference.

203


Table of Contents

(ii)
Filed as an exhibit to our Report on Form 10-Q for the period ended March 31, 2006, as filed with the SEC on May 8, 2006, and incorporated by reference.

(jj)
Filed as an exhibit to our Report on Form 8-K, as filed with the SEC on August 31, 2006, and incorporated by reference.

(kk)
Filed as an exhibit to our Report on Form 8-K, as filed with the SEC on May 24, 2006, and incorporated by reference.

(ll)
Filed as an exhibit to our Report on Form 10-Q for the period ending September 30, 2006, as filed with the SEC on November 9, 2006, and incorporated by reference.

(mm)
Filed as an appendix to our Definitive Proxy Statement, as filed with the SEC on April 3, 2007, and incorporated by reference.

(nn)
Filed as an exhibit to our Report on Form 8-K, as filed with the SEC on October 2, 2007, and incorporated by reference.

(oo)
Filed as an exhibit to our Report on Form 8-K, as filed with the SEC on December 3, 2007, and incorporated by reference.

(pp)
Filed as an exhibit to our Report on Form 8-K, as filed with the SEC on December 3, 2007, and incorporated by reference.

(qq)
Filed as an exhibit to our Annual Report on Form 10-K for the year ended December 31, 2007, as filed with the SEC on February 29, 2008, and incorporated by reference.

(rr)
Filed as an exhibit to our Report on Form 10-Q for the period ending March 31, 2008, as filed with the SEC on May 8, 2008, and incorporated by reference.

(ss)
Filed as an exhibit to our Report on Form 10-Q for the period ending June 30, 2008, as filed with the SEC on August 8, 2008, and incorporated by reference.

(tt)
Filed as an exhibit to our Report on Form 8-K, as filed with the SEC on October 28, 2008, and incorporated by reference.

(uu)
Filed as an exhibit to our Report on Form 10-Q for the period ending September 30, 2008, as filed with the SEC on November 10, 2008, and incorporated by reference.

(vv)
Pursuant to 17 CFR 240.24 b-2, confidential information has been omitted and filed separately with the SEC.

(ww)
Filed as an exhibit to our Annual Report on Form 10-K for the year ended December 31, 2008, as filed with the SEC on March 2, 2009, and incorporated by reference.

(xx)
Filed as an exhibit to our Report on Form 10-Q for the period ending March 31, 2009, as filed with the SEC on May 11, 2009, and incorporated by reference.

(yy)
Filed as an exhibit to our Report on Form 8-K, as filed with the SEC on June 29, 2009, and incorporated by reference.

(zz)
Filed as an exhibit to our Report on Form 10-Q for the period ending September 30, 2009, as filed with the SEC on November 9, 2009, and incorporated by reference.

(aaa)
Filed as an exhibit to our Annual Report on Form 10-K for the year ended December 31, 2009, as filed with the SEC on February 26, 2010, and incorporated by reference.

(bbb)
Filed as an exhibit to our Report on Form 10-Q for the period ending September 30, 2010, as filed with the SEC on November 8, 2010, and incorporated by reference.

204


Table of Contents

(ccc)
Filed as an exhibit to our Report on Form 8-K, as filed with the SEC on November 19, 2010, and incorporated by reference.

(ddd)
This exhibit will not be deemed "filed" for the purposes of Section 18 of the Securities Exchange Act of 1934 (15 U.S.C. 78r), or otherwise subject to the liability of that section. Such exhibit will not be deemed to be incorporated by reference into any filing under the Securities Act or Securities Exchange Act, except to the extent that we specifically incorporate it by reference.

Management contract or compensatory plan or arrangement.

205


Table of Contents


SIGNATURES

        Pursuant to the requirements of Section 13 or 15(d) of the Securities Exchange Act of 1934, the Registrant has duly caused this report to be signed on its behalf by the undersigned, thereunto duly authorized.

    ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD.

    (Registrant)

 

 

By:

 

/s/ CONSTANTINE IORDANOU

        Name:   Constantine Iordanou
        Title:   Chairman of the Board of Directors,
President & Chief Executive Officer

February 28, 2011

        Pursuant to the requirements of the Securities Exchange Act of 1934, this report has been signed below by the following persons on behalf of the Registrant and in the capacities and on the dates indicated.

Name
 
Title
 
Date

 

 

 

 

 

 

 
/s/ CONSTANTINE IORDANOU

Constantine Iordanou
  Chairman of the Board of Directors, President and Chief Executive Officer (Principal Executive Officer)   February 28, 2011

/s/ JOHN C.R. HELE

John C.R. Hele

 

Executive Vice President, Chief Financial Officer and Treasurer (Principal Financial and Principal Accounting Officer)

 

February 28, 2011

*

Wolfe "Bill" H. Bragin

 

Director

 

February 28, 2011

*

John L. Bunce. Jr.

 

Director

 

February 28, 2011

*

Eric W. Doppstadt

 

Director

 

February 28, 2011

*

Kewsong Lee

 

Director

 

February 28, 2011

206


Table of Contents

Name
 
Title
 
Date

 

 

 

 

 

 

 
*

Yiorgos Lillikas
  Director   February 28, 2011

*

James J. Meenaghan

 

Director

 

February 28, 2011

*

John M. Pasquesi

 

Director

 

February 28, 2011

*

Brian S. Posner

 

Director

 

February 28, 2011

*

John D. Vollaro

 

Director

 

February 28, 2011

*

Robert F. Works

 

Director

 

February 28, 2011

*
By John C.R. Hele, as attorney-in-fact and agent, pursuant to a power of attorney, a copy of which has been filed with the Securities and Exchange Commission as Exhibit 24 to this report.

/s/ JOHN C.R. HELE

Name: John C.R. Hele
Attorney-in-Fact
   

207


Table of Contents

SCHEDULE I

ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES

SUMMARY OF INVESTMENTS
OTHER THAN INVESTMENTS IN RELATED PARTIES
(U.S. dollars in thousands)

 
  December 31, 2010  
 
  Cost or
Amortized
Cost(1)
  Estimated
Market
Value
  Amount
at Which
Shown in
the Balance
Sheet
 

Fixed maturities and fixed maturities pledged under securities lending agreements(2):

                   
 

Corporate bonds

  $ 2,760,287   $ 2,839,344   $ 2,839,344  
 

Mortgage backed securities

    1,814,905     1,806,813     1,806,813  
 

Municipal bonds

    1,148,648     1,182,100     1,182,100  
 

Commercial mortgage backed securities

    1,141,584     1,167,299     1,167,299  
 

U.S. government and government agencies

    857,695     872,149     872,149  
 

Non-U.S. government securities

    705,021     732,666     732,666  
 

Asset backed securities

    541,350     558,032     558,032  
               
   

Total

    8,969,490     9,158,403     9,158,403  

TALF investments, at market value

   
389,200
   
402,449
   
402,449
 

Equity securities available for sale, at market value

    346,019     363,255     363,255  

Other investments(3)

    252,590     275,538     275,538  

Short-term investments and short-term investments pledged under securities lending agreements(2)

    913,488     915,841     915,841  
               
   

Total investments(3)(4)

  $ 10,870,787   $ 11,115,486   $ 11,115,486  
               

(1)
Investments in fixed maturities and short-term investments are shown at amortized cost.

(2)
In securities lending transactions, the Company receives collateral in excess of the market value of the fixed maturities and short-term investments pledged under securities lending agreements. For purposes of this table, the Company has excluded the $69.7 million of collateral received and reinvested and included the $75.6 million of "Fixed maturities and short-term investments pledged under securities lending agreements, at market value."

(3)
Excludes the Company's investment in Aeolus LP, which is accounted for using the equity method.

(4)
Includes certain securities transactions entered into but not settled at the balance sheet date. Net of such amounts, total investments at market value were approximately $11.0 billion. Excludes $434.6 million of investment funds accounted for using the equity method. In applying the equity method, these investments are initially recorded at cost and are subsequently adjusted based on the Company's proportionate share of the net income or loss of the funds (which include changes in the market value of the underlying securities in the funds). Changes in the carrying value of such investments are recorded as 'Equity in net income (loss) of investment funds accounted for using the equity method' rather than as an unrealized gain or loss component of accumulated other comprehensive income in shareholders' equity as are changes in the carrying value of the Company's other fixed income investments.

208


Table of Contents

SCHEDULE II

ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES
CONDENSED FINANCIAL INFORMATION OF REGISTRANT

Balance Sheet
(Parent Company Only)
(U.S. dollars in thousands, except share data)

 
  December 31,  
 
  2010   2009  

Assets

             

Investments in wholly owned subsidiaries

  $ 4,905,589   $ 4,707,466  

Short-term investments available for sale, at market value

    7,611     21,020  

Cash

    6,781     4,670  

Other assets

    1,326     4,330  
           

Total Assets

  $ 4,921,307   $ 4,737,486  
           

Liabilities

             

Senior notes

  $ 300,000   $ 300,000  

Revolving credit agreement borrowings

    100,000     100,000  

Accounts payable and other liabilities

    8,304     14,137  
           

Total Liabilities

    408,304     414,137  
           

Shareholders' Equity

             

Non-cumulative preferred shares—Series A and B

    325,000     325,000  

Common shares ($0.01 par, shares issued: 53,357,872 and 54,761,678)

    534     548  

Additional paid-in capital

    110,325     253,466  

Retained earnings

    4,422,553     3,605,809  

Accumulated other comprehensive income, net of deferred income tax

    204,503     138,526  

Common shares held in treasury, at cost (shares: 6,813,797)

    (549,912 )    
           

Total Shareholders' Equity

    4,513,003     4,323,349  
           

Total Liabilities and Shareholders' Equity

  $ 4,921,307   $ 4,737,486  
           

209


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES
CONDENSED FINANCIAL INFORMATION OF REGISTRANT (Continued)

Statement of Income
(Parent Company Only)
(U.S. dollars in thousands)

 
  Years Ended December 31,  
 
  2010   2009   2008  

Revenues

                   

Net investment income

  $ 0   $ 0   $ 506  

Net realized gains

    97         1,084  
               

Total revenues

    97     0     1,590  
               

Expenses

                   

Operating expenses

    29,367     31,007     29,249  

Interest expense

    22,887     22,815     23,838  
               

Total expenses

    52,254     53,822     53,087  
               

Loss before income taxes

    (52,157 )   (53,822 )   (51,497 )

Income tax benefit

             
               

Loss before equity in net income of wholly owned subsidiaries

    (52,157 )   (53,822 )   (51,497 )

Equity in net income of wholly owned subsidiaries

    894,745     930,767     342,463  
               

Net income

    842,588     876,945     290,966  

Preferred dividends

    (25,844 )   (25,844 )   (25,844 )
               

Net income available to common shareholders

  $ 816,744   $ 851,101   $ 265,122  
               

210


Table of Contents


ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES
CONDENSED FINANCIAL INFORMATION OF REGISTRANT (Continued)

Statement of Cash Flows
(Parent Company Only)
(U.S. dollars in thousands)

 
  Years Ended December 31,  
 
  2010   2009   2008  

Operating Activities

                   

Net income

  $ 842,588   $ 876,945   $ 290,966  

Adjustments to reconcile net income to net cash provided by operating activities:

                   
 

Equity in net income of wholly owned subsidiaries

    (894,745 )   (930,767 )   (342,463 )
 

Net realized gains

    (97 )       (1,084 )
 

Share-based compensation

    8,194     5,588     7,587  
 

Dividends received from subsidiary

    795,000     530,408     537,050  
 

Net change in other assets and liabilities

    (2,070 )   970     (145 )
               

Net Cash Provided By Operating Activities

    748,870     483,144     491,911  
               

Investing Activities:

                   
 

Net (purchases) sales of short-term investments

    13,504     (12,060 )   20,909  
 

Capital contributed to subsidiaries

            (100,000 )
 

Purchase of furniture, equipment and other

    (194 )   (8 )    
               

Net Cash Used For Investing Activities

    13,310     (12,068 )   (79,091 )
               

Financing Activities:

                   
 

Purchases of common shares under share repurchase program

    (761,874 )   (458,402 )   (513,130 )
 

Proceeds from common shares issued, net

    27,649     9,966     21,881  
 

Proceeds from borrowings

    135,000     50,000     100,000  
 

Repayments of borrowings

    (135,000 )   (50,000 )      
 

Proceeds from subsidiaries for share-based compensation

            4,516  
 

Preferred dividends paid

    (25,844 )   (25,844 )   (25,844 )
               

Net Cash Used For Financing Activities

    (760,069 )   (474,280 )   (412,577 )
               

Increase (decrease) in cash

    2,111     (3,204 )   243  

Cash beginning of year

    4,670     7,874     7,631  
               

Cash end of year

  $ 6,781   $ 4,670   $ 7,874  
               

211


Table of Contents

SCHEDULE III

ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES
SUPPLEMENTARY INSURANCE INFORMATION
(U.S. dollars in thousands)

 
  Deferred
Acquisition
Costs,
Net
  Reserves for
Losses and
Loss
Adjustment
Expenses
  Unearned
Premiums
  Net
Premiums
Earned
  Net
Investment
Income(1)
  Net Losses
and Loss
Adjustment
Expenses
Incurred
  Amortization
of Deferred
Acquisition
Costs
  Other
Operating
Expenses(2)
  Net
Premiums
Written
 

December 31, 2010

                                                       

Insurance

  $ 212,619   $ 5,422,297   $ 1,088,014   $ 1,651,106     NM   $ 1,117,564   $ 263,201   $ 312,404   $ 1,658,963  

Reinsurance

    65,242     2,676,157     282,061     901,377     NM     400,151     178,001     91,523     852,077  
                                       
 

Total

  $ 277,861   $ 8,098,454   $ 1,370,075   $ 2,552,483     NM   $ 1,517,715   $ 441,202   $ 403,927   $ 2,511,040  
                                       

December 31, 2009

                                                       

Insurance

  $ 206,866   $ 5,093,796   $ 1,109,283   $ 1,688,519     NM   $ 1,139,415   $ 238,261   $ 281,340   $ 1,704,284  

Reinsurance

    73,506     2,779,616     324,048     1,154,226     NM     515,259     255,299     80,567     1,058,828  
                                       
 

Total

  $ 280,372   $ 7,873,412   $ 1,433,331   $ 2,842,745     NM   $ 1,654,674   $ 493,560   $ 361,907   $ 2,763,112  
                                       

December 31, 2008

                                                       

Insurance

  $ 147,134   $ 4,818,219   $ 946,461   $ 1,675,089     NM   $ 1,194,528   $ 224,539   $ 288,883   $ 1,657,603  

Reinsurance

    148,058     2,848,738     580,221     1,170,365     NM     654,216     265,970     78,421     1,148,123  
                                       
 

Total

  $ 295,192   $ 7,666,957   $ 1,526,682   $ 2,845,454     NM   $ 1,848,744   $ 490,509   $ 367,304   $ 2,805,726  
                                       

(1)
The Company does not manage its assets by segment and, accordingly, net investment income is not allocated to each underwriting segment. See Note 3.

(2)
Certain other operating expenses relate to the Company's corporate and other segment (non-underwriting). Such amounts are not reflected in the table above. See Note 3.

212


Table of Contents

SCHEDULE IV

ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES
REINSURANCE
(U.S. dollars in thousands)

 
  Gross
Amount
  Ceded to Other
Companies(1)
  Assumed From
Other
Companies(1)
  Net
Amount
  Percentage of
Amount
Assumed to
Net
 

Year Ended December 31, 2010

                               

Premiums Written:

                               
 

Insurance

  $ 2,338,428   $ (743,239 ) $ 63,774   $ 1,658,963     3.8 %
 

Reinsurance

        (22,880 )   874,957     852,077     102.7 %
                       
   

Total

  $ 2,338,428   $ (755,747 ) $ 928,359   $ 2,511,040     37.0 %
                       

Year Ended December 31, 2009

                               

Premiums Written:

                               
 

Insurance

  $ 2,427,027   $ (807,843 ) $ 85,100   $ 1,704,284     5.0 %
 

Reinsurance

    17     (35,112 )   1,093,923     1,058,828     103.3 %
                       
   

Total

  $ 2,427,044   $ (829,819 ) $ 1,165,887   $ 2,763,112     42.2 %
                       

Year Ended December 31, 2008

                               

Premiums Written:

                               
 

Insurance

  $ 2,385,790   $ (833,316 ) $ 105,129   $ 1,657,603     6.3 %
 

Reinsurance

    17     (53,780 )   1,201,886     1,148,123     104.7 %
                       
   

Total

  $ 2,385,807   $ (863,350 ) $ 1,283,269   $ 2,805,726     45.7 %
                       

(1)
Certain amounts included in the gross premiums written of each segment are related to intersegment transactions and are included in the gross premiums written of each segment. Accordingly, the sum of gross premiums written for each segment does not agree to the total gross premiums written as shown in the table above due to the elimination of intersegment transactions in the total. For 2010, 2009 and 2008, the insurance segment results include $1.0 million, $1.1 million and $1.9 million, respectively, of gross premiums written and assumed through intersegment transactions. For 2010, 2009 and 2008, the reinsurance segment results include $9.3 million, $12.0 million and $21.8 million, respectively, of gross premiums written and assumed through intersegment transactions. See Note 3.

213


Table of Contents

SCHEDULE VI

ARCH CAPITAL GROUP LTD. AND SUBSIDIARIES
SUPPLEMENTARY INFORMATION FOR PROPERTY AND CASUALTY INSURANCE UNDERWRITERS
(U.S. dollars in thousands)

Column A   Column B   Column C   Column D   Column E   Column F   Column G   Column H   Column I   Column J   Column K  
 
   
   
   
   
   
   
  Net Losses and Loss
Adjustment Expenses
Incurred Related to
   
   
   
 
 
   
  Reserves for
Losses and
Loss
Adjustment
Expenses
  Discount,
if any,
deducted
in
Column C
   
   
   
   
  Net Paid
Losses and
Loss
Adjustment
Expenses
   
 
 
  Deferred
Acquisition
Costs,
Net
   
   
   
  Amortization
of Deferred
Acquisition
Costs
   
 
Affiliation
with
Registrant
  Unearned
Premiums
  Net
Premiums
Earned
  Net
Investment
Income(1)
  (a) Current
Year
  (b) Prior
Years
  Net
Premiums
Written
 

Insurance

                                                                   

2010

  $ 212,619   $ 5,422,297   $ 8,009   $ 1,088,014   $ 1,651,106     NM   $ 1,136,665   $ (19,101 ) $ 263,201   $ 865,510   $ 1,658,963  

2009

    206,866     5,093,796     6,151     1,109,283     1,688,519     NM     1,186,475     (47,060 )   238,261     865,894     1,704,284  

2008

    147,134     4,818,219     4,904     946,461     1,675,089     NM     1,273,482     (78,954 )   224,539     739,976     1,657,603  

Reinsurance

                                                                   

2010

  $ 65,242   $ 2,676,157       $ 282,061   $ 901,377     NM   $ 527,746   $ (127,595 ) $ 178,001   $ 441,775   $ 852,077  

2009

    73,506     2,779,616         324,048     1,154,226     NM     657,400     (142,141 )   255,299     573,196     1,058,828  

2008

    148,058     2,848,738         580,221     1,170,365     NM     885,432     (231,216 )   265,970     519,898     1,148,123  

(1)
The Company does not manage its assets by segment and, accordingly, net investment income is not allocated to each underwriting segment. See Note 3.

214